Vows
And Honor Book 1: The Oathbound
by
Mercedes Lackey
Introduction
This is
the tale of an unlikely partnership, that
of the
Shin'a'in swordswoman and celibate
Kal'enedral,
Tarma shena Tale'sedrin and the nobly-
born
sorceress Kethry, member of the White Winds
school,
whose devotees were sworn to wander the
world
using their talents for the greatest good. How
these
two met is told in the tale "Sword Sworn,"
published
in Marion Zimmer Bradley's anthology
SWORD
AND SORCERESS III. A second of the accounts
of
their wandering life will be seen in the fourth
volume
of that series. But this story begins where
that
first tale left off, when they have recovered
from
their ordeal and are making their way back to
the
Dhorisha Plains and Tarma's home.
One
The sky
was overcast, a solid gray sheet that
seemed
to hang just barely above the treetops,
with no
sign of a break in the clouds anywhere.
The sun
was no more than a dimly glowing spot
near
the western horizon, framed by a lattice of
bare
black branches. Snow lay at least half a foot
thick
everywhere in the forest, muffling sound. A
bird
flying high on the winter wind took dim notice
that
the forest below him extended nearly as far as
he
could see no matter which way he looked, but
was
neatly bisected by the Trade Road immedi-
ately
below him. Had he flown a little higher (for
the
clouds were not as low as they looked), he
might
have seen the rooftops and smokes of a city
at the
southern end of the road, hard against the
forest.
Although the Trade Road had seen enough
travelers
of late that the snow covering it was packed
hard,
there were only two on it now. They had
stopped
in the clearing halfway through the forest
that
normally saw heavy use as an overnighting
point.
One was setting up camp under the shelter
of a
half-cave of rock and tree trunks piled together—
partially
the work of man, partially of nature. The
other
was a short distance away, in a growth-free
pocket
just off the main area, picketing their beasts.
The
bird circled for a moment, swooping lower,
eyeing
the pair with dim speculation. Humans some-
times
meant food—
But
there was no food in sight, at least not that
the
bird recognized as such. And as he came lower
still,
the one with the beasts looked up at him
suddenly,
and reached for something slung at her
saddlebow.
The
bird had been the target of arrows often
enough
to recognize a bow when he saw one. With a
squawk
of dismay, he veered off, flapping his wings
with
all his might, and tracing a twisty, convoluted
course
out of range. He wanted to be the eater, not
the
eaten!
Tarma
sighed as the bird sped out of range, un-
strung
her bow, and stowed it back in the saddle-
quiver.
She hunched her shoulder a little beneath
her heavy
wool coat to keep her sword from shift-
ing on
her back, and went back to her task of scrap-
ing the
snow away from the grass buried beneath it
with
gloved hands. Somewhere off in the far dis-
tance
she could hear a pair of ravens calling to each
other,
but otherwise the only sounds were the sough
of wind
in branches and the blowing of her horse
and
Kethry's mule. The Shin'a'in place of eternal
punishment
was purported to be cold; now she had
an idea
why.
She
tried to ignore the ice-edged wind that seemed
to cut
right through the worn places in her nonde-
script
brown clothing. This was no place for a
Shin'a'in
of the Plains, this frozen northern forest.
She had
no business being here. Her garments, more
than
adequate to the milder winters in the south,
were
just not up to the rigors of the cold season
here.
Her
eyes stung, and not from the icy wind.
Home—Warrior
Dark, she wanted to be home! Home,
away
from these alien forests with their unfriendly
weather,
away from outClansmen with no under-
standing
and no manners . .. home. ...
Her
little mare whickered at her, and strained
against
her lead rope, her breath steaming and her
muzzle
edged with frost. She was no fonder of this
chilled
wilderness than Tarma was. Even the
Shin'a'in
winter pastures never got this cold, and
what
little snow fell on them was soon melted. The
mare's
sense of what was "right" was deeply of-
fended
by all this frigid white stuff.
"Kathal,
dester'edra," Tarma said to the ears that
pricked
forward at the first sound of her harsh
voice.
"Gently, windborn-sister. I'm nearly finished
here."
Kessira
snorted back at her, and Tarma's usually
solemn
expression lightened with an affectionate
smile.
"Li'ha'eer,
it is ice-demons that dwell in this place,
and
nothing else."
When
she figured that she had enough of the
grass
cleared off to at least help to satisfy her mare's
hunger,
she heaped the rest of her foragings into
the
center of the area, topping the heap with a
carefully
measured portion of mixed grains and a
little
salt. What she'd managed to find was poor
enough,
and not at all what her training would
have
preferred—some dead seed grasses with the
heads
still on them, the tender tips from the
branches
of those trees and bushes she recognized
as
being nourishing, even some dormant cress and
cattail
roots from the stream. It was scarcely enough
to keep
the mare from starving, and not anywhere
near
enough to provide her with the energy she
needed
to carry Tarma on at the pace she and her
partner
Kethry had been making up until now.
She
loosed little Kessira from her tethering and
picketed
her in the middle of the space she'd cleared.
It
showed the measure of the mare's hunger that
she
tore eagerly into the fodder, poor as it was.
There
had been a time when Kessira would have
turned
up her nose in disdain at being offered such
inferior
provender.
"Ai,
we've come on strange times, haven't we,
you and
I," Tarma sighed. She tucked a stray lock
of
crow-wing-black hair back under her hood, and
put her
right arm over Kessira's shoulder, resting
against
the warm bulk of her. "Me with no Clan
but one
weirdling outlander, you so far from the
Plains
and your sibs."
Not
that long ago they'd been just as any other
youngling
of the nomadic Shin'a'in and her saddle
mare;
Tarma learning the mastery of sword, song,
and
steed, Kessira running free except when the
lessoning
involved her. Both of them had been safe
and
contented in the heart of Clan Tale'sedrin—
true, free
Children of the Hawk.
Tarma
rubbed her cheek against Kessira's furry
shoulder,
breathing in the familiar smell of clean
horse
that was so much a part of what had been
home.
Oh, but they'd been happy; Tarma had been
the pet
of the Clan, with her flute-clear voice and
her
perfect memory for song and tale, and Kessira
had
been so well-matched for her rider that she
almost
seemed the "four-footed sister" that Tarma
frequently
named her. Their lives had been so close
to
perfect—in all ways. The king-stallion of the
herd
had begun courting Kessira that spring, and
Tarma
had had Dharin; nothing could have spoiled
what
seemed to be their secure future.
Then
the raiders had come upon the Clan; and
all
that carefree life was gone in an instant beneath
their
swords.
Tarma's
eyes stung again. Even full revenge
couldn't
take away the ache of losing them, all,
all-
In one candlemark all that Tarma had ever
known
or
cared about had been wiped from the face of the
earth.
"What
price your blood, my people? A few pounds
of
silver? Goddess, the dishonor that your people
were
counted so cheaply!"
The
slaughter of Tale'sedrin had been the more
vicious
because they'd taken the entire Clan un-
awares
and unarmed in the midst of celebration;
totally
unarmed, as Shin'a'in seldom were. They
had
trusted to the vigilance of their sentries.
But the
cleverest sentry cannot defeat foul magic
that
creeps upon him out of the dark and smothers
the
breath in his throat ere he can cry out.
The
brigands had not so much as a drop of honor-
able
blood among them; they knew had the Clan
been
alerted they'd have had stood the robbers off,
even
outnumbered as they were, so the bandit's
hired
mage had cloaked their approach and stifled
the guards.
And so the Clan had fought an unequal
battle,
and so they had died; adults, oldsters, chil-
dren,
all....
"Goddess,
hold them—" she whispered, as she
did at
least once each day. Every last member of
Tale'sedrin
had died; most had died horribly. Ex-
cept
Tarma. She should have died; and unaccount-
ably
been left alive.
If you
could call it living to have survived with
everything
gone that had made life worth having.
Yes,
she had been left alive—and utterly, utterly
alone.
Left to live with a ruined voice that had once
been
the pride of the Clans, with a ravaged body,
and
most of all, a shattered heart and mind. There
had
been nothing left to sustain her but a driving
will to
wreak vengeance on those who had left her
Clanless.
She pulled
a brush from an inside pocket of her
coat,
and began needlessly grooming Kessira while
the
mare ate. The firm strokes across the familiar
chestnut
coat were soothing to both of them. She
had
been left Clanless, and a Shin'a'in Clanless is
one without
purpose in living. Clan is everything to
a
Shin'a'in. Only one thing kept her from seeking
oblivion
and death-willing herself, that burning need
to
revenge her people.
But
vengeance and blood-feud were denied the
Shin'a'in—the
ordinary Shin'a'in. Else too many of
the
people would have gone down on the knives of
their
own folk, and to little purpose, for the God-
dess
knew Her people and knew their tempers to
be
short. Hence, Her law. Only those who were the
Kal'enedral
of the Warrior—the Sword Sworn,
outClansmen
called them, although the name meant
both
"Children of Her Sword" and "Her Sword-
Brothers"—could
cry blood-feud and take the trail
of
vengeance. That was because of the nature of
their
Oath to Her—first to the service of the God-
dess of
the New Moon and South Wind, then to the
Clans
as a whole, and only after those two to their own
particular
Clan. Blood-feud did not serve the Clans
if the
feud was between Shin'a'in and Shin'a'in;
keeping
the privilege of calling for blood-price in
the
hands of those by their very nature devoted to
the
welfare of the Shin'a'in as a whole kept interClan
strife
to a minimum.
"If
it had been you, what would you have chosen,
hmm?"
she asked the mare. "Her Oath isn't a light
one."
Nor was it without cost—a cost some might
think
far too high. Once Sworn, the Kal'enedral
became
weapons in Her hand, and not unlike the
sexless,
cold steel they wore. Hard, somewhat aloof,
and
totally asexual were the Sword Sworn—and
this,
too, ensured that their interests remained Hers
and
kept them from becoming involved in interClan
rivalry.
So it was not the kind of Oath one involved
in a
simple feud was likely to even consider taking.
But the
slaughter of the Tale'sedrin was not a
matter
of private feud or Clan against Clan—this
was a
matter of more, even, than personal ven-
geance.
Had the brigands been allowed to escape
unpunished,
would that not have told other wolf-
heads
that the Clans were not invulnerable—would
there
not have been another repetition of the slaugh-
ter?
That may have been Her reasoning; Tarma
had
only known that she was able to find no other
purpose
in living, so she had offered her Oath to
the
Star-Eyed so that she could pledge her life to
revenge
her Clan. An insane plan—sprung out of a
mind
that might be going mad with grief.
There
were those who thought she was already
mad,
who were certain She would accept no such
Oath
given by one whose reason was gone. But
much to
the amazement of nearly everyone in the
Clan
Liha'irden who had succored, healed, and pro-
tected
her, that Oath had been accepted. Only the
shamans
had been unsurprised.
She had
never in her wildest dreaming guessed
what
would come of that Oath and that quest for
justice.
Kessira
finished the pile of provender, and moved
on to
tear hungrily at the lank, sere grasses. Be-
neath
the thick coat of winter hair she had grown,
her
bones were beginning to show in a way that
Tarma
did not in the least like. She left off brush-
ing,
and stroked the warm shoulder, and the mare
abandoned
her feeding long enough to nuzzle her
rider's
arm affectionately.
"Patient
one, we shall do better by you, and soon,"
Tarma
pledged her. She left the mare to her graz-
ing and
went to check on Kethry's mule. That sturdy
beast
was capable of getting nourishment from much
coarser
material than Kessira, so Tarma had left
him
tethered amid a thicket of sweetbark bushes.
He had
stripped all within reach of last year's
growth,
and was straining against his halter with
his
tongue stretched out as far as it would reach for
a tasty
morsel just out of his range.
"Greedy
pig," she said with a chuckle, and moved
him
again, giving him a bit more rope this time,
and
leaving his own share of grain and foraged
weeds
within reach. Like all his kind he was a
clever
beast; smarter than any horse save one
Shin'a'in-bred.
It was safe enough to give him plenty
of
lead; if he tangled himself he'd untangle himself
just as
readily. Nor would he eat to foundering, not
that
there was enough browse here to do that. A
good,
sturdy, gentle animal, and even-tempered, well
suited
to an inexperienced rider like Kethry. She'd
been
lucky to find him.
His
tearing at the branches shook snow down on
her;
with a shiver she brushed it off as her thoughts
turned
back to the past. No, she would never have
guessed
at the changes wrought in her life-path by
that
Oath and her vow of vengeance.
"Jel'enedra,
you think too much. It makes you
melancholy."
She recognized
the faintly hollow-sounding tenor
at the
first word; it was her chief sword-teacher.
This
was the first time he'd come to her since the
last
bandit had fallen beneath her sword. She had
begun
to wonder if her teachers would ever come
back again.
All of
them were unforgiving of mistakes, and
quick
to chastise—this one more than all the rest
put
together. So though he had startled her, though
she had
hardly expected his appearance, she took
care
not to display it.
"Ah?"
she replied, turning slowly to face him.
Unfair
that he had used his other-worldly powers
to come
on her unawares, but he himself would
have
been the first to tell her that life—as she well
knew—was
unfair. She would not reveal that she
had not
detected his presence until he spoke.
He had
called her "younger sister," though, which
was an
indication that he was pleased with her for
some
reason. "Mostly you tell me I don't think
enough."
Standing
in a clear spot amid the bushes was a
man,
garbed in fighter's gear of deepest black, and
veiled.
The ice-blue eyes, the sable hair, and the
cut of
his close-wrapped clothing would have told
most
folk that he was, like Tarma, Shin'a'in. The
color
of the clothing would have told the more
knowledgeable—since
most Shin'a'in preferred a car-
nival
brightness in their garments—that he, too,
was
Sword Sworn; Sword Sworn by custom wore
only
stark black or dark brown. But only one very
sharp-eyed
would have noticed that while he stood
amid
the snow, he made no imprint upon it. It
seemed
that he weighed hardly more than a shadow.
That
was scarcely surprising since he had died
long
before Tarma was born.
"Thinking
to plan is one case; thinking to brood
is
another," he replied. "You accomplish nothing
but to increase
your sadness. You should be devis-
ing a
means of filling your bellies and those of your
jel'suthro'edrin.
You cannot reach the Plains if you
do not
eat."
He had
used the Shin'a'in term for riding beasts
that
meant "forever-younger-Clanschildren." Tarma
was
dead certain he had picked that term with
utmost
precision, to impress upon her that the wel-
fare of
Kessira and Kethry's mule Rodi were as
important
as her own—more so, since they could
not
fend for themselves in this inhospitable place.
"With
all respect, teacher, I am ... at a loss.
Once I
had a purpose. Now?" She shook her head.
"Now
I am certain of nothing. As you once told
me—"
"Li'sa'eer!
Turn my own words against me, will
you?"
he chided gently. "And have you nothing?"
"My
she'enedra. But she is outClan, and strange
to me,
for all that the Goddess blessed our oath-
binding
with Her own fire. I know her but little.
I—only—"
"What,
bright blade?"
"I
wish—I wish to go home—" The longing she
felt
rose in her throat and made it hard to speak.
"And
so? What is there to hinder you?"
"There
is," she replied, willing her eyes to stop
stinging,
"the matter of money. Ours is nearly gone.
It is a
long way to the Plains."
"So?
Are you not now of the mercenary calling?"
"Well,
unless there be some need for blades
hereabouts—the
which I have seen no evidence for,
the
only way to reprovision ourselves will be if my
she'enedra
can turn her skill in magic to an honor-
able
profit. For though I have masters of the best,"
she
bowed her head in the little nod of homage a
Shin'a'in
gave to a respected elder, "sent by the
Star-Eyed
herself, what measure of attainment I
have
acquired matters not if there is no market for
it."
"Hai'she'li!
You should market that silver tongue,
jel'enedra!"
he laughed. "Well, and well. Three things
I have
come to tell you, which is why I arrive
out-of-time
and not at moonrise. First, that there
will be
storm tonight, and you should all shelter,
mounts
and riders together. Second, that because of
the
storm, we shall not teach you this night, though
you may
expect our coming from this day on, every
night
that you are not within walls."
He
turned as if to leave, and she called out, "And
third?"
"Third?"
he replied, looking back at her over his
shoulder.
"Third—is that everyone has a past. Ere
you
brood over your own, consider another's."
Before
she had a chance to respond, he vanished,
melting
into the wind.
Wrinkling
her nose over that last, cryptic re-
mark,
she went to find her she'enedra and partner.
Kethry
was hovering over a tiny, nearly smoke-
less
fire, skinning a pair of rabbits. Tarma almost
smiled
at the frown of concentration she wore; she
was
going at the task as if she were being rated on
the
results! They were a study in contrasts, she
and her
outClan blood-sister. Kethry was sweet-
faced
and curvaceous, with masses of curling am-
ber
hair and startling green eyes; she would have
looked
far more at home in someone's court circle
as a
pampered palace mage than she did here, at
their
primitive hearth. Or even more to the point,
she
would not have looked out of place as someone's
spoiled,
indulged wife or concubine; she really
looked
nothing at all like any mage Tarma had ever
seen.
Tarma, on the other hand, with her hawklike
face,
forbidding ice-blue eyes and nearly sexless
body,
was hardly the sort of person one would ex-
pect a
mage or woman like Kethry to choose as a
partner,
much less as a friend. As a hireling,
perhaps—in
which case it should have been Tarma
skinning
the rabbits, for she looked to have been
specifically
designed to endure hardship.
Oddly
enough, it was Kethry who had taken to
this
trip as if she were the born nomad, and Tarma
who was
the one suffering the most from their
circumstances,
although that was mainly due to the
unfamiliar
weather.
Well,
if she had not foreseen that becoming
Kal'enedral
meant suddenly acquiring a bevy of
long-dead
instructors, this partnership had come as
even
more of a surprise. The more so as Tarma had
really
not expected to survive the initial confronta-
tion
with those who had destroyed her Clan.
"Do
not reject aid unlooked-for," her instructor
had
said the night before she set foot in the ban-
dit's
town. And unlooked-for aid had materialized,
in the
form of this unlikely sorceress. Kethry, too,
had her
interests in seeing the murderers brought
low, so
they had teamed together for the purpose of
doing
just that. Together they had accomplished
what
neither could have done alone—they had ut-
terly
destroyed the brigands to the last man.
And so
Tarma had lost her purpose. Now—now
there
was only the driving need to get back to the
Plains;
to return before the Tale'sedrin were deemed
a dead
Clan. Farther than that she could not, would
not
think or plan.
Kethry
must have sensed Tarma's brooding eyes
on her,
for she looked up and beckoned with her
skinning
knife.
"Fairly
good hunting," Tarma hunched as close
the
fire as she could, wishing they dared build
something
larger.
"Yes
and no. I had to use magic to attract them,
poor
things." Kethry shook her head regretfully as
she
bundled the offal in the skins and buried the
remains
in the snow to freeze hard. Once frozen,
she'd
dispose of them away from the camp, to avoid
attracting
scavengers. "I felt so guilty, but what
else
was I to do? We ate the last of the bread
yesterday,
and I didn't want to chance on the hunt-
ing
luck of just one of us."
"You
do what you have to, Keth. Well, we're able
to live
off the land, but Kessira and Rodi can't,"
Tarma
replied. "Our grain is almost gone, and we've
still a
long way to go to get to the Plains. Keth, we
need
money."
"I
know."
"And
you're the one of us best suited to earning
it.
This land is too peaceful for the likes of me to
find a
job—except for something involving at least
a
one-year contract, and that's something we can't
afford
to take the time for. I need to get back to the
Plains
as soon as I can if I'm to raise Tale'sedrin's
banner
again."
"I
know that, too." Kethry's eyes had become
shadowed,
the lines around her mouth showed strain.
"And
I know that the only city close enough to
serve
us is Mornedealth."
And
there was no doubt in Tarma's mind that
Kethry
would rather have died than set foot in that
city,
though she hadn't the vaguest notion why.
Well,
this didn't look to be the proper moment to
ask—
"Storm
coming; a bad one," she said, changing
the
subject. "I'll let the hooved ones forage for as
long as
I dare, but by sunset I'll have to bring them
into
camp. Our best bet is going to be to shelter all
together
because I don't think a fire is going to
survive
the blow."
"I
wish I knew where you get your information,"
Kethry
replied, frown smoothing into a wry half-
smile.
"You certainly have me beat at weather-
witching."
"Call
it Shin'a'in intuition," Tarma shrugged,
wishing
she knew whether it was permitted to an
outland
she'enedra—who was a magician to boot—to
know of
the veiled ones. Would they object? Tarma
had no
notion, and wasn't prepared to risk it. "Think
you can
get our dinner cooked before the storm gets
here?"
"I
may be able to do better than that, if I can
remember
the spells." The mage disjointed the rab-
bits,
and spitted the carcasses on twigs over the
fire.
She stripped off her leather gloves, flexed her
bare
fingers, then held her hands over the tiny fire
and
began whispering under her breath. Her eyes
were
half-slitted with concentration and there was
a faint
line between her eyebrows. As Tarma
watched,
fascinated, the fire and their dinner were
enclosed
in a transparent shell of glowing gold mist.
"Very
pretty; what's it good for?" Tarma asked
when
she took her hands away.
"Well,
for one thing, I've cut off the wind; for
another,
the shield is concentrating the heat and
the
meat will cook faster now."
"And
what's it costing you?" Tarma had been in
Kethry's
company long enough now to know that
magic
always had a price. And in Kethry's case,
that
price was usually taken out of the resources of
the
spell-caster.
Kethry
smiled at her accusing tone. "Nowhere
near so
much as you might think; this clearing has
been
used for overnighting a great deal, and a good
many of
those camping here have celebrated in one
way or
another. There's lots of residual energy here,
energy
only another mage could tap. Mages don't
take
the Trade Road often, they take the Courier's
Road
when they have to travel at all."
"So?"
"So
there's more than enough energy here not
only to
cook dinner but to give us a little more
protection
from the weather than our bit of canvas."
Tarma
nodded, momentarily satisfied that her
blood-sister
wasn't exhausting herself just so they
could
eat a little sooner. "Well, while I was scroung-
ing for
the hooved ones, I found a bit for us, too—"
She
began pulling cattail roots, mallow-pith, a
few
nuts, and other edibles from the outer pockets
of her
coat. "Not a lot there, but enough to supple-
ment
dinner, and make a bit of breakfast besides."
"Bless
you! These bunnies were a bit young and
small,
and rather on the lean side—should this stuff
be
cooked?"
"They're
better raw, actually."
"Good
enough; want to help with the shelter,
since
we're expecting a blow?"
"Only
if you tell me what to do. I've got no
notion
of what these winter storms of yours are
like."
Kethry
had already stretched their canvas tent
across
the top and open side of the enclosure of
rocks
and logs, stuffed brush and moss into the
chinks
on the inside, packed snow into the chinks
from
the outside, and layered the floor with pine
boughs
to keep their own bodies off the snow. Tarma
helped
her lash the canvas down tighter, then
weighted
all the loose edges with packed-down snow
and
what rocks they could find.
As they
worked, the promised storm began to
give
warning of its approach. The wind picked up
noticeably,
and the northern horizon began to darken.
Tarma
cast a wary eye at the darkening clouds. "I
hope you're
done cooking because it doesn't look
like we
have too much time left to get under cover."
"I
think it's cooked through."
"And
if not, it won't be the first time we've eaten
raw
meat on this trip. I'd better get the grazers."
Tarma
got the beasts one at a time; first the
mule,
then her mare. She backed them right inside
the
shelter, coaxing them to lie down inside, one on
either
side of it, with their heads to the door-flap
just in
case something should panic them. With the
two
humans in the space in the middle, they should
all
stay as close to warm as was possible. Once
again
she breathed a little prayer of thankfulness
for the
quality of mule she'd been able to find for
Kethry;
with a balky beast or anything other than
another
Shin'a'in-bred horse this arrangement would
have
been impossible.
Kethry
followed, grilled rabbit bundled into a
piece
of leather. The rich odor made Tarma's mouth
water
and reminded her that she hadn't eaten since
this
morning. While Kethry wormed her way in
past
her partner, Tarma lashed the door closed.
"Hold
this, and find a comfortable spot," the
mage
told her. While Tarma snuggled up against
Kessira's
shoulder, Kethry knelt in the space re-
maining.
She held her hands just at chin height,
palms
facing outward, her eyes completely closed
and her
face utterly vacant. By this Tarma knew
she was
attempting a much more difficult bit of
magery
than she had with their dinner.
She
began an odd, singsong chant, swaying a lit-
tle in
time to it. Tarma began to see a thin streak of
weak
yellow light, like a watered-down sunbeam,
dancing
before her. In fact, that was what she prob-
ably
would have taken it for—except that the sun
was
nearly down, not overhead.
As
Kethry chanted, the light-beam increased in
strength
and brightness. Then, at a sharp word
from
her, it split into six. The six beams remained
where
the one had been for a moment, perhaps a
little
longer. Kethry began chanting again, a differ-
ent
rhythm this time, and the six beams leapt to
the
walls of their shelter, taking up positions spaced
equally
apart.
When
they moved so suddenly, Tarma had nearly
jumped
out of her skin—especially since one of
them
had actually passed through her. But when
she
could feel no strangeness—and certainly no harm
from
the encounter—she relaxed again. The ani-
mals
appeared to be ignoring the things, whatever
they
were.
Now
little tendrils of light were spinning out
from
each of the beams, reaching out until they met
in a
kind of latticework. When this had spread to
the
canvas overhead, Tarma began to notice that
the
wind, which had been howling and tugging at
the
canvas, had been cut off, and that the shelter
was
noticeably warmer as a result.
Kethry
sagged then, and allowed herself to half-
collapse
against Rodi's bulk.
"Took
less than I might think, hmm?"
"Any
more comments like that and I'll make you
stay
outside."
"First
you'd have to fight Kessira. Have some
dinner."
Tarma passed her half the rabbit; it was
still
warm and amazingly juicy and both of them
wolfed
down their portions with good appetite, nib-
bling
the bones clean, then cracking them and suck-
ing out
the last bit of marrow. With the bones
licked
bare, they finished with the roots of Tarma's
gleaning,
though more than half of Tarma's share
went
surreptitiously to Kessira.
When
they had finished, the sun was gone and
the
storm building to full force. Tarma peeked out
the
curtain of tent-canvas at the front of the shel-
ter;
the fire was already smothered. Tarma noticed
then
that the light-web gave off a faint illumina-
tion;
not enough to read by, but enough to see by.
"What
is—all this?" she asked, waving a hand at
the
light-lattice. "Where'd it come from?"
"It's
a variation of the fire-shield I raised; it's
magical
energy manifesting itself in a physical fash-
ion.
Part of that energy came from me, part of it
was
here already and I just reshaped it. In essence,
I told
it I thought it was a wall, and it believed me.
So now
we have a 'wall' between us and the storm."
"Uh,
right. You told that glowing thing you
thought
it was a wall, and it believed you—"
Kethry
managed a tired giggle at her partner's
expression.
"That's why the most important tool a
magician
has is his will; it has to be strong in order
to
convince energy to be something else."
"Is
that how you sorcerers work?"
"All
sorcerers, or White Winds sorcerers?"
"There's
more than one kind?"
"Where'd
you think magicians came from any-
way? Left
in the reeds for their patrons to find?"
Kethry
giggled again.
"No,
but the only 'magicians' the Clans have are
the
shamans, and they don't do magic, much. Heal-
ing,
acting as advisors, keepers of outClan know-
ledge—that's
mostly what they do. When we need
magic,
we ask Her for it."
"And
She answers?" Kethry's eyes widened in
fascination.
"Unless
She has a damn good reason not to. She's
very
close to us—closer than most deities are to
their
people, from what I've been able to judge. But
that
may be because we don't ask Her for much, or
very
often. There's a story—" Tarma half smiled.
"—there
was a hunter who'd been very lucky and
had
come to depend on that luck. When his luck
left
him, his skills had gotten very rusty, and he
couldn't
manage to make a kill. Finally he went to
the
shaman, and asked him if he thought She would
listen
to a plea for help. The shaman looked him up
and
down, and finally said, 'You're not dead yet.' "
"Which
means he hadn't been trying hard enough
by
himself?"
"Exactly.
She is the very last resort—and you
had
damned well better be careful what you ask
Her
for—She'll give it to you, but in Her own way,
especially
if you haven't been honest with Her or
with
yourself. So mostly we don't ask." Tarma
warmed
to Kethry's interest, and continued when
that
interest didn't flag. This was the first chance
she'd
had to explain her beliefs to Kethry; before
this,
Kethry had either been otherwise occupied or
there
hadn't been enough privacy. "The easiest of
Her
faces to deal with are the Maiden and the
Mother,
they're gentler, more forgiving; the hard-
est are
the Warrior and the Crone. Maiden and
Mother
don't take Oathbound to themselves, War-
rior
and Crone do. Crone's Oathbound—no, I won't
tell
you—you guess what they do."
"Uh,"
Kethry's brow furrowed in thought, and
she
nibbled a hangnail. "Shamans?"
"Right!
And Healers and the two Elders in each
Clan,
who may or may not also be Healers or sha-
mans.
Those the Crone Binds are Bound, like the
Kal'enedral,
to the Clans as a whole, serving with
their
minds and talents instead of their hands.
Now—you
were saying about magicians?" She was
as
curious to know about Kethry's teaching as Keth
seemed
to be about her own.
"There's
more than one school; mine is White
Winds.
Um, let me go to the very basics. Magic has
three
sources. The first is power from within the
sorcerer
himself, and you have to have the Talent
to use
that source—and even then it isn't fully
trained
by anyone I know of. I've heard that up
north a
good ways they use pure mind-magic, rather
than
using the mind to find other sources of power."
"That
would be—Valdemar, no?"
"Yes!"
Kethry looked surprised at Tarma's knowl-
edge.
"Well, the second is power created by living
things,
rather like a fire creates light just by being
a fire.
You have to have the Talent to sense that
power,
but not to use it so long as you know it's
there.
Death releases a lot of that energy in one
burst;
that's why an unTalented sorcerer can turn
to dark
wizardry; he knows the power will be there
when he
kills something. The third source is from
creatures
that live in places that aren't this world,
but
touch this world—like pages in a book. Page one
isn't
page two, but they touch all along each other.
Other
Planes, we call them. There's one for each
element,
one for what we call 'demons,' and one
for
very powerful creatures that aren't quite gods,
but do
seem kindly inclined to humans. There may
be
more, but that's all anyone has ever discovered
that I
know of. The creatures of the four Elemental
Planes
can be bargained with—you can build up
credit
with them by doing them little favors, or you
can
promise them something they want from this
Plane."
"Was
that what I saw fighting beside you when
you
took out that wizard back in Brether's Cross-
roads ?
Other-whatsit creatures ?"
"Exactly—and
that fight is why my magic is so
limited
at the moment—I used up all the credit I
had
built with them in return for that help. Fortu-
nately
I didn't have to go into debt to them, or we'd
probably
be off trying to find snow-roses for the
Ethereal
Varirs right now. There is another way of
dealing
with them. You can coerce them with magi-
cal
bindings or with your will. The creatures from
the
Abyssal Plane can be bought with pain-energy
and
death-energy—they feed off those—or coerced
if your
will is strong enough, although the only way
you can
'bind' them magically is to hold them to
this
Plane; you can't force them to do anything if
your
own will isn't stronger than theirs. The crea-
tures
of the Sixth Plane—we call it the 'Empyreal
Plane'—can't
be coerced in any way, and they'll
only
respond to a call if they feel like it. Any
magician
can contact the Other-Planar creatures,
it's
just a matter of knowing the spells that open
the
boundaries between us and them. The thing
that
makes schools of magic different is their eth-
ics,
really. How they feel about the different kinds
of
power and using them."
"So
what does yours teach?" Tarma lay back
with
her arms stretched along Kessira's back and
neck;
she scratched gently behind the mare's ears
while
Kessira nodded her head in drowsy content-
ment.
This was the most she'd gotten out of Kethry
in the
past six months.
"We
don't coerce; not ever. We don't deal at all
with
the entities of the Abyssal Planes except to
send
them back—or destroy them if we can. We
don't
deliberately gain use of energy by killing or
causing
pain. We hold that our Talents have been
given
us for a purpose; that purpose is to use them
for the
greatest good. That's why we are wander-
ers,
why we don't take up positions under perma-
nent
patrons."
"Why
you're dirt-poor and why there're so few of
you,"
Tarma interrupted genially.
"
'Fraid so," Kethry smiled. "No worldly sense,
that's
us. But that's probably why Need picked
me."
"She'enedra,
why don't you want to go to Morne-
dealth?"
"I---"
"And
why haven't you ever told me about your
home
and kin?" Tarma had been letting her spirit-
teacher's
last remark stew in the back of her mind,
and
when Kethry had begun giving her the "les-
son"
in the ways of magic had realized she knew
next to
nothing about her partner's antecedents.
She'd
been brooding on her own sad memories, but
Kethry's
avoidance of the subject of the past could
only
mean that hers were as sorry. And Tarma
would
be willing to bet the coin she didn't have
that
the mystery was tied into Mornedealth.
Kethry's
mouth had tightened with an emotion
Tarma
recognized only too well. Pain.
"I'll
have to know sooner or later, she'enedra. We
have no
choice but to pass through Mornedealth,
and no
choice but to try and raise money there, or
we'll
starve. And if it's something I can do any-
thing
about—well, I want doubly to know about it!
You're
my Clan, and nobody hurts my Clan and
gets
away with it!"
"It—it
isn't anything you can deal with—"
"Let
me be the judge of that, hmm?"
Kethry
sighed, and visibly took herself in hand.
"I—I
guess it's only fair. You know next to nothing
about
me, but accepted me anyway."
"Not
true," Tarma interrupted her, "She accepted
you
when you oathbound yourself to me as blood-
sib.
That's all I needed to know then. She wouldn't
bind
two who didn't belong together."
"But
circumstances change, I know, and it isn't
fair
for me to keep making a big secret out of where
I come
from. All right." Kethry nodded, as if mak-
ing up
her mind to grasp the thorns. "The reason I
haven't
told you anything is this; I'm a fugitive. I
grew up
in Mornedealth; I'm a member of one of
the
Fifty Noble Houses. My real name is Kethryveris
of
House Pheregrul."
Tarma
raised one eyebrow, but only said, "Do I
bow, or
can I get by with just kissing your hand?"
Kethry
almost smiled. "It's a pretty empty title
—or it
was when I ran away. The House estates
had
dwindled to nothing more than a decaying man-
sion in
the Old City by my father's time, and the
House
prerequisites to little more than an invita-
tion to
all Court functions—which we generally
declined
graciously—and permission to hunt the
Royal
Forests—which kept us fed most of the year.
Father
married mother for love, and it was a disas-
ter.
Her family disowned her, she became ill and
wouldn't
tell him. It was one of those long declin-
ing
things, she just faded bit by bit, so gradually
that
he, being absent-minded at best, really didn't
notice.
She died three years after I was born. That
left
just the three of us."
"Three?"
Kethry
hadn't ever mentioned any sibs before.
"Father,
my brother Kavin—that's Kavinestral—
and me.
Kavin was eight years older than me, and
from
what everyone said, the very image of Father
in his
youth. Handsome—the word just isn't ade-
quate
to describe Kavin. He looks like a god."
"And
you worshiped him." Tarma had no trouble
reading
that between the lines.
It
wasn't just the dim light that was making
Kethry
look pale. "How could I not? Father died
when I
was ten, and Kavin was all I had left, and
when he
exerted himself he could charm the moss
off the
wall. We were fine until Father died; he'd
had
some income or other that kept the house going,
well,
that dried up when he was gone. That left
Kavin
and me with no income and nowhere to go
but a
falling-down monstrosity that we couldn't
even
sell, because it's against the law for the Fifty
Families
to sell the ancestral homes. We let the few
servants
we had go—all but one, my old nurse Tildy.
She
wouldn't leave me. So Tildy and I struggled to
run the
household and keep us all clothed and fed.
Kavin
hunted the Royal Forests when he got hun-
gry
enough, and spent the rest of his time being
Kavin.
Which, to me, meant being perfection."
"Until
you got fed up and ran away?" Tarma
hazarded,
when Kethry's silence had gone too long.
She
knew it it wasn't the right answer, but she
hoped
it would prod Kethry back into speaking.
"Hardly."
Kethry's eyes and mouth were bitter.
"He
had me neatly twined 'round his finger. No,
things
went on like that until I was twelve, and
just
barely pubescent. Two things happened then
that I
had no knowledge of. The first was that
Kavin
himself became fed up with life on the edge,
and
looked around for something to make him a lot
of
money quickly. The second was that on one of
his
dips in the stews with his friends, he acciden-
tally
encountered the richest banker in Mornedealth
and
found out exactly what his secret vice was.
Kavin
may have been lazy, but he wasn't stupid.
He was
fully able to put facts together. He also
knew
that Wethes Goldmarchant, like all the other
New
Money moguls, wanted the one thing that all
his
money couldn't buy him—he wanted inside the
Fifty
Families. He wanted those Court invitations
we
declined; wanted them so badly it made him
ache.
And he'd never get them—not unless he some-
how
saved the realm single-handedly, which wasn't
bloody
likely."
Kethry's
hands were clenched tightly in her lap,
she
stared at them as if they were the most fasci-
nating
things in the universe. "I knew nothing of
all
this, of course, mewed up in the house all day
and
daydreaming about finding a hidden cache of
gold
and gems and being able to pour them in Kavin's
lap and
make him smile at me. Then one day he did
smile
at me; he told me he had a surprise for me. I
went
with him, trusting as a lamb. Next thing I
knew,
he was handing me over to Wethes; the mar-
riage
ceremony had already taken place by proxy.
You
see, Wethes' secret vice was little girls—and
with
me, he got both his ambition and his lust
satisfied.
It was a bargain too good for either of
them to
resist—"
Kethry's
voice broke in something like a sob;
Tarma
leaned forward and put one hard, long hand
on the
pair clenched white-knuckled in her part-
ner's lap.
"So
your brother sold you, hmm? Well, give him a
little
credit, she'enedra; he might have thought he
was
doing you a favor. The merchant would give
you
every luxury, after all; you'd be a valued and
precious
possession."
"I'd
like to believe that, but I can't. Kavin saw
some of
those little girls Wethes was in the habit of
despoiling.
He knew what he was selling me into,
and he
didn't care, he plainly did not care. The
only
difference between them and me was that the
chains
and manacles he used on me were solid gold,
and I
was raped on silk sheets instead of linen. And
it was
rape, nothing else! I wanted to die; I prayed
I would
die. I didn't understand anything of what
had
happened to me. I only knew that the brother I
worshiped
had betrayed me." Her voice wavered a
moment,
and faded against the howl of the storm-
winds
outside their shelter. Tarma had to strain to
hear
her.
Then
she seemed to recover, and her voice streng-
thened
again. "But although I had been betrayed, I
hadn't
been forgotten. My old nurse managed to
sneak
her way into the house on the strength of the
fact
that she was my nurse; nobody thought to deny
her
entry. When Wethes was finished with me, she
waited
until he had left and went inquiring for me.
When
she found me, she freed me and smuggled
me
out."
Kethry
finally brought her eyes up to meet her
partner's;
there was pain there, but also a hint of
ironic
humor. "You'd probably like her; she also
stole
every bit of gold and jewelry she found with
me and
carried them off, too."
"A
practical woman; you're right, I think I would
like
her. I take it she had somewhere to hide you?"
"Her
brother's farm—it's east of here. Well, I
wasn't
exactly in my right mind for a while, but
she
managed to help with that for a bit. But then—
then I
started having nightmares, and when I did,
every
movable thing in my room would go flying
about.
Mind you, I never broke anything—"
"Since
I gather this was a 'flying about' without
benefit
of hands, I would think it would be rather
unnerving."
"Tildy
knew she hadn't any way of coping with
me
then, so she took me to the nearest mage-school
she
knew, which was White Winds. It only took one
nightmare
to convince them that I needed help—
and
that I was going to be a pretty good mage after I
got
that help. That's where I got Need."
Kethry's
hands unclenched, and one of them
strayed
to the hilt of a plain short-sword wedged in
among
the supplies tucked into the shelter.
"Now
that's another tale you never told me."
"Not
for any reason, just because there isn't much
to
tell. We had a guard there, an old mercenary
who'd
been hired on to give us a bit of protection,
and to
give her a kind of semi-retirement. Baryl
Longarm
was her name. When I was ready to take
the
roads, she called me into her rooms."
"That
must have had you puzzled."
"Since
she didn't have a reputation for chasing
other
females, it certainly did. Thank goodness she
didn't
leave me wondering for long. 'You're the
first
wench we've had going out for a dog's age,' she
said,
'and there's something I want you to have. It's
time it
went out again, anyway, and you'll probably
have to
use it before you're gone a month.' She took
down
this sword from the wall, unsheathed it, and
laid it
in my hands. And the runes appeared on the
blade."
"I
remember when you showed me. 'Woman's
Need
calls me, as Woman's Need made me. Her
Need I
will answer as my maker bade me.' " Tarma
glanced
at Kethry's hand on the hilt. "Gave me a
fair
turn, I can tell you. I always thought magic
blades
were gold-hiked and jewel-bedecked."
"Then
she told me what little she knew—that
the
sword's name was Need, that she was in-
destructible
so far as Baryl had been able to tell.
That
she only served women. And that her service
was
such that she only gave what you yourself did
not
already have. That to her, a fighter, Need gave
a
virtual immunity to all magic, but didn't add so
much as
a fillip to her fighting skills—but that for
me, a mage,
if I let it take control when it needed
to, it
would make me a master swordswoman, though
it
wouldn't make the least difference to any spell I
cast.
And that it would help Heal anything short of
a
death-wound."
"Rather
like one of Her gifts, you know?" Tarma
interrupted.
"Makes you do your utmost, to the
best of
your abilities, but bails you out when you're
out of
your depth."
"I
never thought about it that way, but you're
right.
Is there any way Need could be Shin'a'in?"
"Huh-uh.
We've few metal-workers, and none of
them
mages—and we don't go in for short-swords,
anyway.
Now, what's the problem with you going
back to
Mornedealth? Changing the subject isn't
going
to change my wanting to know."
"Well,
you can't blame me for trying—she'enedra,
I have
angered a very powerful man, my husband—"
"Crap!
He's no more your husband than I am, no
matter
what charade he went through."
"—and
a very ruthless one, my brother. I don't
know
what either of them would do if they learned
I was
within their reach again." Kethry shuddered,
and
Tarma reached forward and clasped both her
hands
in her own.
"I
have only one question, my sister and my
friend,"
she said, so earnestly that Kethry came out
of her
own fear and looked deeply into the shad-
owed
eyes that met hers. "And that is this; which
way do
you want them sliced—lengthwise, or
widthwise?"
"Tarma!"
The sober question struck Kethry as so
absurd
that she actually began laughing weakly.
"In
all seriousness, I much doubt that either of
them is
going to recognize you; think about it, you're
a woman
grown now, not a half-starved child. But
if they
do, that's what I'm here for. If they try
anything,
I'll ask you that question again, and you'd
best
have a quick answer for me. Now, are you
satisfied?"
"You
are insane!"
"I
am Shin'a'in; some say there is little differ-
ence. I
am also Kal'enedral, and most say there is
no
difference. So believe me; no one is going to
touch
you with impunity. I am just crazed enough
to cut
the city apart in revenge."
"And
this is supposed to make me feel better?"
"You're
smiling, aren't you?"
"Well,"
Kethry admitted reluctantly, "I guess I
am."
"When
a child of the Clans falls off her horse, we
make
her get right back on again. She'enedra, don't
you
think it's time you remounted this one?"
"I--"
"Or do you prefer to live your life with
them
dictating
that you shall not return to your own
city?"
Her
chin came up; a stubborn and angry light
smoldered
in her eyes. "No."
"Then
we face this city of yours and we face it to-
gether.
For now, make a mattress of Rodi, she'enedra;
and
sleep peacefully. I intend to do the same. To-
morrow
we go to Mornedealth and make it deal
with us
on our terms. Hai?"
Kethry
nodded, convinced almost against her will,
and
beginning to view the inevitable encounter with
something
a little more like confidence.
"Hai,"
she agreed.
Two
Kethry
envied her partner's ability to drop
immediately
into sleep under almost any cir-
cumstances.
Her own thoughts were enough to keep
her
wakeful; add to them the snoring of her mule
and the
wailing of the wind outside their shelter,
and
Kethry had a foolproof recipe for insomnia.
She
wanted to avoid Mornedealth no matter what
the
cost. Just the thought that she might encounter
Wethes
was enough to make her shudder almost
uncontrollably.
In no way was she prepared to deal
with
him, and she wondered now if she would ever
be....
And
yet, Tarma was right. She would never truly
be
"free" unless she dealt with her fear. She would
never
truly be her own woman if she allowed fear
and old
memories to dictate where she would or
would
not go.
The
disciplines of the Order of White Winds
mandated
self-knowledge and self-mastery. She had
deceived
herself into thinking she had achieved
that
mastery of self; Tarma had just shown her
how
wrong she was.
It's
been seven years, she thought bitterly. Seven
long
years—and those bastards still have power over
me. And
I'll never be an adept until I break that power.
For
that, after all, was the heart of the White
Winds
discipline; that no negative tie be permitted
to bind
the sorcerer in any way. Positive ties—like
the
oath of she'enedran she had sworn with Tarma,
like the
bond of lover to lover or parent to child—
were
encouraged to flourish, for the sorcerer could
draw
confidence and strength from them. But the
negative
bonds of fear, hatred, or greed must be
rooted
out and destroyed, for they would actually
drain
the magician of needed energy.
Sometimes
Tarma can be so surprising, see things so
clearly.
And yet she has such peculiar blind spots. Or
does
she? Does she realize that she's driving us both to
the
Plains as if she was geas-bound? She's like a
messenger-bird,
unable to travel in any direction but
the one
appointed.
Kethry
hadn't much cared where she wandered;
this
was her time of journey, she wouldn't settle in
any one
place until she reached the proficiency of
an
Adept. Then she would either found a school of
her
own, or find a place in an established White
Winds
enclave. So Tarma's overwhelming need to
return
home had suited her as well as anything
else.
Until
she had realized that the road they were on
led
directly to Mornedealth.
It all
comes back to that, doesn't it? And until I face
it, I'm
stalemated. Dammit, Tarma's right. I'm a full
sorceress,
I'm a full adult, and I have one damned fine
swordswoman
for a partner. What in Teslat's name am
I
afraid of? There is nothing under the law that they
can
really do to me—I've been separated from Wethes
for
seven years, and three is enough to unmake the
marriage,
assuming there really was one. I'm not going
in
under my full name, and I've changed so much. How
are
they even going to recognize me?
Across
the shelter Tarma stirred, and curled her-
self
into a tighter ball. Kethry smiled and shook her
head,
thinking about her partner's words on the
subject.
"Do
you want them sliced lengthwise or widthwise"
—Windborn,
she is such a bundle of contradictions.
We have
got to start talking; we hardly know anything
about
one another. Up until now, we've had our hands
full of
bandit-extermination, then there just wasn't the
privacy.
But if I'd had all the world to choose a sister
from, I
would have picked her over any other. Goddess-
oath
and all, I would have chosen her. Though that
Warrior
of hers certainly took the decision right out of
our
hands.
Kethry
contemplated the sleeping face of her part-
ner. In
repose she lost a great deal of the cold
harshness
her expression carried when she was
awake.
She looked, in fact, a great deal younger
than
Kethry was.
When
she sleeps, she's the child she was before she
lost
her Clan. When she's awake—I'm not sure what
she is.
She eats, drinks and breathes the Warrior, that's
for
certain, yet she hasn't made any move to convert
me. I
know it would please her if I did, and it wouldn't
be any
great change to do so; her Goddess just seems to
me to
be one more face of the Windborn Soulshaper.
She
seems like any other mercenary hire-sword—insisting
on
simple solutions to complicated problems, mostly
involving
the application of steel to offending party.
Then
she turns around and hits me with a sophisticated
proverb,
or some really esoteric knowledge—like know-
ing
that mind-magic is used in Valdemar. And she's
hiding
something from me; something to do with that
Goddess
of hers, I think. And not because she doesn't
trust
me . . . maybe because I don't share her faith. Her
people—nobody
really knows too much about the
Shin'a'in;
they keep pretty much to themselves. Of
course
that shouldn't be too surprising; anyone who
knew
the Dhorisha Plains the way they do could dive
into
the grass and never be seen again, if that's what he
wanted
to do. You could hide the armies of a dozen
nations
out there, and they'd likely never run into each
other.
Assuming the Shin'a'in would let them past the
Border.
1 suspect if Tale'sedrin had been on the Plains
instead
of camped on the road to the Great Horse Fair
the
bandits would be dead and the Hawk's Children
still
riding. And I would be out a sister.
Kethry
shook her head. Well, what happened, hap-
pened.
Now I have to think about riding into Morne-
dealth
tomorrow. Under a glamour?
She
considered the notion for a moment, then
discarded
it. No. I'll go in wearing my own face,
dammit!
Besides, the first sorcerer who sees I'm wear-
ing a
glamour is likely to want to know why—and
likely
to try to find out. If I'm luckly, he'll come to us
with
his hand out. If I'm not, he'll go to Wethes or
Kavin.
No, a glamour would only cause trouble, not
avoid
it. I think Tarma's right; we'll go in as a merce-
nary
team, no more, no less, and under her Clanname.
We'll
stay quiet, draw no attention to ourselves, and
maybe
avoid trouble altogether. The more complicated
a plan
is, the more likely it is to go wrong. . . .
Kethry
began formulating some simple story for
her
putative background, but the very act of having
faced
and made the decision to go in had freed her
of the
tension that was keeping her sleepless. She
had
hardly begun, when her weariness claimed her.
The
blizzard cleared by morning. Dawn brought
cloudless
skies, brilliant sun, and still, cold air that
made
everything look sharp-edged and brightly-
painted.
They cleared camp and rode off into a
world
that seemed completely new-made.
Tarma
was taken totally by surprise by the change-
ling
forest; she forgot her homesickness, forgot her
worry
over Kethry, even temporarily forgot how
cold
she was.
Birdcalls
echoed for miles through the forest, as
did the
steady, muffled clop of their mounts' hooves.
The
storm had brought a fine, powder like snow,
snow
that frosted every branch and coated the un-
derbrush,
so that the whole forest reflected the
sunlight
and glowed so that they were surrounded
by a
haze of pearly light. Best of all, at least to
Tarma's
mind, the soft snow was easy for the beasts
to move
through, so they made good time. Just past
midafternoon,
glimpses of the buildings and walls
of
Mornedealth could be seen above and through
the
trees.
It was
a city made of the wood that was its staple
in
trade; weathered, silver-gray wooden palisades,
wooden
walls, wooden buildings; only the founda-
tions
of a building were ever made of stone. The
outer
wall that encircled it was a monument to
man's
ingenuity and Mornedealth's woodworkers;
it was
two stories tall, and as strong as any corres-
ponding
wall of stone. Granted, it would never
survive
being set afire, as would inevitably happen
in a
siege, but the wall had never been built with
sieges
in mind. It was intended to keep the beasts
of the
forest out of the city when the hardships of
winter
made their fear of man less than their hun-
ger,
and to keep the comings and goings of strang-
ers
limited to specific checkpoints. If an enemy
penetrated
this realm so far as to threaten Morne-
dealth,
all was lost anyway, and there would be
nothing
for it but surrender.
Since
the only city Tarma had ever spent any
length
of time in was Brether's Crossroads—less
than
half the size of Mornedealth—the Shin'a'in
confessed
to Kethry that she was suitably impressed
by it
long before they ever entered the gates.
"But
you spent more than a year hunting down
Gregoth
and his band. Surely you—"
"Don't
remember much of that, she'enedra. It was
a bit
like being in a drug haze. I only really came
awake
when I was tr—" she suddenly recalled that
Kethry
knew nothing of her faceless trainers and
what
they were, and decided that discretion was in
order.
"When I had to. To question someone, or to
read a
trail. The rest of the time, I might just as
well
not have been there, and I surely wasn't in any
kind of
mood for seeing sights."
"No—you
wouldn't be. I'm sorry; I wasn't think-
ing at
all."
"Nothing
to apologize for. Just tell me what I'm
getting
into here. You're the native; where are we
going?"
Kethry
reined in, a startled look on her face.
"I—I've
spent so much time thinking about Kavin
and
Wethes . . ."
"Li'sa'eer!"
Tarma exclaimed in exasperation, pull-
ing
Kessira up beside her. "Well, think about it
now,
dammit!" She kneed her mare slightly; Kessira
obeyed
the subtle signal and shouldered Rodi to
one
side until both of the beasts had gotten off onto
the
shoulder of the road, out of the way of traffic.
There
wasn't anybody in sight, but Tarma had had
yuthi'so'coro—road-courtesy—hammered
into her
from
the time she was old enough to sit a horse
unaided.
No Shin'a'in omitted road-courtesy while
journeying,
not even when among deadly enemies.
And
road-courtesy dictated that if you were going
to sit
and chat, you didn't block the progress of
others
while you were doing it.
"We'll
have to use the Stranger's Gate," Kethry
said
after long thought, staring at the point where
the
walls of Mornedealth began paralleling the road.
"That's
no hardship, it's right on the Trade Road.
But
we'll have to register with the Gate Guard,
give
him our names, where we're from, where we're
going,
and our business here."
"Warrior's
Oath! What do they want, to write a
book
about us?" Tarma replied with impatience.
"Look,
this is as much for our sakes as theirs.
Would
you want total strangers loose in your Clan
territory?"
"Sa-hai.
You're right. Not that strangers ever get
past
the Border, but you're right."
"The
trouble is, I daren't tell them what I really
am, but
I don't want to get caught in a complicated
falsehood."
"Now
that's no problem," Tarma nodded. "We
just
tell him a careful mixture of the truth with
enough
lie in it to keep your enemies off the track.
Then?"
"There
are specific inns for travelers; we'll have
to use
one of them. They won't ask us to pay straight
off,
we'll have three days to find work and get our
reckoning
taken care of. After that, they confiscate
everything
we own except what we're wearing."
Tarma
snorted a little with contempt, which ob-
viously
surprised Kethry.
"I
thought you'd throw a fit over the notion of
someone
taking Kessira."
"I'd
rather like to see them try. You've never
seen
her with a stranger. She's not a battle-steed,
but
nobody lays a finger on her without my permis-
sion.
Let a stranger put one hand on her rein and
he'll come
away with a bloody stump. And while
he's
opening his mouth to yell about it, she'll be off
down
the street, headed for the nearest gate. If I
were
hurt and gave her the command to run for it,
she'd
carry me to the closest exit she could remem-
ber
without any direction from me. And if she
couldn't
find one, she might well make one. No, I've
no fear
of anyone confiscating her. One touch, and
they
wouldn't want her. Besides, I have something I
can
leave in pledge—I'd rather not lose it, but it's
better
than causing a scene."
Tarma
took off her leather glove, reached into
the
bottom of her saddlebag and felt for a knobby,
silk-wrapped
bundle. She brought the palm-sized
package
out and unwrapped it carefully, uncover-
ing to
the brilliant sunlight an amber necklace. It
was
made of round beads alternating with carved
claws
or teeth; it glowed on the brown silk draped
over
her hand like an ornament of hardened sun-
beams.
"Osberg
wore that!"
"He
stole it from me. I took it back off his dead
body.
It was the last thing Dharin gave me. Our
pledge-gift.
I never found the knife I gave him."
Kethry
said nothing; Tarma regarded the neck-
lace
with a stony-cold expression that belied the
ache in
her heart, then rewrapped it and stowed it
away.
"As I said, I'd rather not lose it, but losing
it's
better than causing a riot. Now how do we find
work?"
"We'd
be safest going to a Hiring Hall. They
charge
employers a fee to find people with special
talents."
"Well,
that's us."
"Of
course, that's money we won't see. We could
get
better fees if we went out looking on our own,
but it
would probably take longer."
"Hiring
Hall; better the safe course."
"I
agree, but they're sure to notice at the gate
that my
accent is native. Would you mind doing the
talking?"
Tarma
managed a quirk of the lips that approxi-
mated a
half-smile. "All right, I'll do all the talking
at the
gate. Look stupid and sweet, and let them
think
you're my lover. Unless that could get us in
trouble."
Kethry
shook her head. "No, there's enough of
that in
Mornedealth. Virtually anything is allowed
provided
you're ready to pay for it."
"And
they call this civilization! Vai datha; let's
get on
with it."
They
turned their beasts once more onto the road,
and
within a candlemark were under scrutiny of
the
sentries on the walls. Tarma allowed a lazy,
sardonic
smile to cross her face. One thing she had
to give
them; these guards were well disciplined.
No
catcalls, no hails, no propositions to Kethry—
just a
steady, measuring regard that weighed them
and
judged them unthreatening for the moment.
These
"soft, city-bred" guards were quite impressive.
The
Stranger's Gate was wide enough for three
wagons
to pass within, side by side, and had an
ironwork
portcullis as well as a pair of massive
bleached-wood
doors, all three now standing open.
They
clattered under the wall, through a wooden-
walled
tunnel about three horse-lengths deep. When
they
reached the other entrance, they found them-
selves
stopped by a chain stretched across the in-
ner
side of the gate. One of the men standing sentry
approached
them and asked them (with short words,
but
courteous) to follow him to a tiny office built
right
into the wall. There was always a Gate Guard
on duty
here; the man behind the desk was, by the
insignia
pinned to his brown leather tunic, a cap-
tain.
Kethry had told her partner as they approached
the
walls that those posted as Gate Guards tended
to be
high-ranking, and above the general cut of
mercenary,
because they had to be able to read and
write.
Their escort squeezed them inside the door,
and
returned to his own post. The Gate Guard was
a
middle-aged, lean, saturnine man who glanced up
at them
from behind his tiny desk, and without a
word,
pulled a ledger, quill and ink from under-
neath
it.
The
Gate Guard was of the same cut as the men
on the
walls; Tarma wondered if Kethry would be
able to
pass his careful scrutiny. It didn't look like
he
missed much. Certainly Kethry looked nothing
like a
Shin'a'in, so she'd have to be one damn con-
vincing
actress to get away with claiming a Shin'a'in
Clanname.
Tarma
stole a glance sideways at her partner and
had to
refrain from a hoarse chuckle. Kethry wore a
bright,
vapid smile, and was continuously fussing
with
the way her cloak draped and smoothing down
her
hair. She looked like a complete featherhead.
No
problem. The Guard would have very little
doubt
why the partner of a rather mannish swords-
woman
was claiming her Clanname!
At the
Guard's brusque inquiry as to their names
and
business, Tarma replied as shortly, "We're
Shin'a'in
mercenaries. Tarma shena Tale'sedrin,
Kethry
shena Tale'sedrin. We're on our way back
to the
Dhorisha Plains; I've got inheritance coming
from my
Clan I need to claim. But we've run out of
provisions;
we're going to have to take some tempo-
rary
work to restock."
"Not
much call for your kind on a temporary
basis,
Swordlady," he replied with a certain gruff
respect.
"Year contract or more, sure; Shin'a'in have
a
helluva reputation. You'd be able to get top wage
as any
kind of guard, guard-captain or trainer; but
not
temporary. Your pretty friend's in mage-robes;
that
just for show, or can she light a candle?"
"Ah,
Keth's all right. Good enough to earn us
some
coin, just no horse-sense, he shala? She's worth
the
trouble taking care of, and for more reasons
than
one, bless her."
"Eyah,
and without you to keep the wolves away,
a
pretty bit like that'd get eaten alive in a week,"
the
Guard answered with a certain gleam of sym-
pathy
in his eyes. "Had a shieldmate like that in
my
younger days, fancied himself a poet; didn't
have
sense enough to come in out of a storm. Caught
himself
a fever standing out in a blizzard, admiring
it;
died of it eventually—well, that's the way of
things.
You being short of coin; tell you what, one
professional
to another—you go find the Broken
Sword,
tell 'em Jervac sent you. And I hear tell the
Hiring
Hall over by the animal market was on the
lookout
for a mage on temp."
"Will
do—luck on your blade, captain."
"And
on yours. Ah—don't mount up; lead your
beasts,
that's the law inside the gates."
As they
led their mounts in the direction the
Gate
Guard had indicated, Kethry whispered, "How
much of
that was good advice?"
"We'll
find out when we find this inn; chances
are
he's getting some kickback, but he could be
doing
us a good turn at the same time. Thanks for
the
help with the ruse of being your protector; that
should
warn off anybody that might be thinking
your
services other than magery are for hire. We
couldn't
have done better for a sympathizer if we'd
planned
this, you know, that's why I played it a bit
thick.
He had the feeling of a she'chorne; that bit
about a
'shieldmate' clinched it. If you're not lov-
ers,
you call your partner 'shieldbrother,' not
'shieldmate.'
How are you doing?"
Kethry
looked a bit strained, but it was some-
thing
likely only someone who knew her would
have
noticed. "Holding up; I'll manage. The more
time I
spend with nobody jumping me out of the
shadows,
the easier it'll get. I can handle it."
"Vai
datha." If Kethry said she'd be able to han-
dle her
understandable strain, Tarma was willing
to
believe her. Tarma took the chance to look around,
and was
impressed in spite of herself. "Damn,
Greeneyes,
you never told me this place was so
big!"
"I'm
used to it," Kethry shrugged.
"Well,
I'm not," Tarma shook her head in amaze-
ment.
The street they led their beasts on was fully
wide
enough for two carts with plenty of space for
them to
pass. It was actually paved with bricks,
something
Tarma didn't ever remember seeing be-
fore,
and had a channel down the middle and a
gutter
on either side for garbage and animal drop-
pings.
There were more people than she ever re-
called
seeing in one place in her life; she and Kethry
were
elbow to elbow in the crush. Kessira snorted,
not
liking so many strangers so close. "Why isn't
anyone
riding? Why'd the Guard say riding was
counter
the law?" Tarma asked, noticing that while
there
were beasts and carts in plenty, all were
being
led, like theirs—just as the guard had told
them.
"No
one but a member of one of the Fifty is
allowed
to ride within the walls, and for good rea-
son.
Think what would happen if somebody lost
control
of his beast in this crush!"
"Reasonable.
Look, there's our inn—"
The
sign was plain enough-—the pieces of an ac-
tual
blade nailed up to a shingle suspended above
the
road. They turned their mounts' heads into a
narrow
passage that led into a square courtyard.
The inn
itself was built entirely around this yard.
It was
two-storied, of the ubiquitous wood stained a
dark
brown; old, but in excellent repair. The court-
yard
itself was newly swept. The stabling was to
the
rear of the square, the rest of the inn forming
the
other three sides.
"Stay
here, I want to have a look at the stabling.
That
will tell me everything I need to know." Tarma
handed
over her mare's reins to Kethry, and strode
purposefully
toward the stable door. She was inter-
cepted
by a gray-haired, scar-faced man in a leather
apron.
"Swordlady,
welcome," he said. "How may we
serve
you?"
"Bed,
food and stabling for two—if I like what I
see.
And I'd like to see the stables first."
He
grinned with the half of his mouth not puck-
ered
with a scar. "Shin'a'in? Thought so—this way,
lady."
He
himself led the way into the stables, and
Tarma
made up her mind then and there. It was
clean
and swept, there was no smell of stale dung
or
urine. The mangers were filled with fresh hay,
the
buckets with clean water, and the only beasts
tied
were those few whose wild or crafty eyes and
laid-back
ears told Tarma were that they were safer
tied
than loose.
"Well,
I do like what I see. Now if you aren't
going
to charge us like we were gold-dripping pal-
ace
fatheads, I think you've got a pair of boarders.
Oh, and
Jervac sent us."
The man
looked pleased. "I'm Hadell; served with
Jervac
until a brawl got me a cut tendon and
mustering
out pay. About the charges; two trade-
silver
a day for both of you and your beasts, if you
and the
mage are willing to share a bed. Room isn't
big,
I'll warn you, but it's private. That two pieces
gets
you bed and breakfast and supper; dinner you
manage
on your own. Food is guard-fare; it's plain,
but
there's plenty of it and my cook's a good one.
I'll go
the standard three days' grace; more, if you've
got
something to leave with me as a pledge. Suits?"
"Suits,"
Tarma replied, pleased. "I do have a
pledge,
but I'd rather save it until I need it. Where's
your
stableboy? I don't want my mare to get a
mouthful
of him."
"Her,"
Hadell corrected her. "My daughter. We're
a
family business here. I married the cook, my girl
works
the stables, my boys wait tables."
"Safer
than the other way 'round, hey? Espe-
cially
as she gets to the toothsome age." Tarma
shared
a crooked grin with him, as he gave a pierc-
ing
whistle. A shaggy-haired urchin popped out of
the
door of what probably was the grain room, and
trotted
up, favoring Tarma with an utterly fearless
grin.
"This
is—" he cocked his head inquiringly.
"Tarma
shena Tale'sedrin. Shin'a'in, as you said."
"She
and her partner are biding here for a bit,
and she
wants to make sure her mount doesn't eat
you."
"Laeka,
Swordlady." The urchin bobbed her head.
"At
your service. You're Shin'a'in?" Her eyes wid-
ened
and became eager. "You got a battlesteed?"
"Not
yet, Laeka. If I can make it back to the
Plains
in one piece, though, I'll be getting one.
Kessira
is a saddle-mare; she fights, but she hasn't
the
weight or the training of a battlesteed."
"Well,
Da says what the Shin'a'in keep for
thesselves
is ten times the worth o' what they sells
us."
The
innmaster cuffed the girl—gently, Tarma
noticed.
"Laeka! Manners!" Laeka rubbed her ear
and
grinned, not in the least discomfited.
Tarma
laughed. "No insult taken, Keeper, it's
true.
We sell you outClan folk our culls. Come with
me,
Laeka, and I'll introduce you to what we keep."
With
the child trotting at her side and the inn-
keeper
following, Tarma strolled back to Kethry.
"This's
a good place, she'enedra, and they aren't
altogether
outrageous in what they're charging. We'll
be
staying. This is Laeka, she's our Keeper's daugh-
ter,
and his chief stableman."
Laeka
beamed at the elevation in her station
Tarma
granted her.
"Now,
hold out your hand to Kessira, little lady;
let her
get your measure." She placed her own
hand on
Kessira's neck and spoke a single com-
mand
word under her breath. That told Kessira
that
the child was not to be harmed, and was to be
obeyed—though
she would only obey some com-
mands
if they were given in Shin'a'in, and it wasn't
likely
the child knew that tongue. Just as well, they
didn't
truly need a new back door to their stabling.
The
mare lowered her head with grave dignity
and
snuffled the child's hand once, for politeness'
sake,
while the girl's eyes widened in delight. Then
when
Tarma put the reins in Laeka's hands, Kessira
followed
her with gentle docility, taking careful,
dainty
steps on the unfamiliar surface. Kethry
handed
her the reins to the mule as well; Rodi, of
course,
would follow anyone to food and stabling.
Hadell
showed them their room; on the first floor,
it was
barely big enough to contain the bed. But it
did
have a window, and the walls were freshly
whitewashed.
There were plenty of blankets—again,
well-worn
but scrupulously clean—and a feather
comforter.
Tarma had stayed in far worse places,
and
said as much.
"So
have I," Kethry replied, sitting on the edge
of the
bed and pulling off her riding boots with a
grimace
of pain. "The place where I met you, for
one. I
think we've gotten a bargain, personally."
"Makes
me wonder, but I may get the answer
when I
see the rest of the guests. Well, what's
next?"
Tarma handed her a pair of soft leather
half-boots
meant for indoor wear.
"Dinner
and bed. It's far too late to go to the
Hiring
Hall; that'll be for first thing in the morn-
ing? I
wonder if we could manage a bath out of
Hadell?
I do not like smelling like a mule!"
As if
to answer that question, there came a gentle
rap on
the door. "Lady-guests?" a boy's soprano
said
carefully, "Would ye wish th' use o' the
steamhouse?
If ye be quick, Da says ye'll have it t'
yerselves
fer a candlemark or so."
Tarma
opened the door to him; a sturdy, dark
child,
he looked very like his father. "And the charge,
lad?"
she asked, "Though if it's in line with the
rest of
the bill, I'm thinking we'll be taking you up
on
it."
"Copper
for steamhouse and bath, copper for soap
and
towels," he said, holding out the last. "It's at
the end
of the hallway."
"Done
and done, and point us the way." Kethry
took
possession of what he carried so fast he was
left
gaping. "Pay the lad, Tarma; if I don't get
clean
soon, I'm going to rot of my own stink."
Tarma
laughed, and tossed the boy four coppers.
"And
here I was thinking you were more trail-
hardened
than me," she chuckled, following Kethry
down
the hall in the direction the boy pointed.
"Now
you turn out to be another soft sybarite."
"I
didn't notice you saying no."
"We
have a saying—"
"Not
another one!"
"
'An enemy's nose is always keener than your
own.'
"
"When
I want a proverb, I'll consult a cleric.
Here we
are," Kethry opened the door to the bath-
house,
which had been annexed to the very end of
the
inn. "Oh, heaven!"
This
was, beyond a doubt, a well managed place.
There
were actually three rooms to the bathing
area;
the first held buckets and shallow tubs, and
hot
water bubbled from a wooden pipe in the floor
into a
channel running through it, while against the
wall
were pumps. This room was evidently for ac-
tual
bathing; the bather mixed hot water from the
channel
with cold from the pumps, then poured
the
dirty water down the refuse channel. The hot-
water
channel ran into the room beside this one,
which
contained one enormous tub sunk into the
floor,
for soaking out aches and bruises. Beyond
this
room was what was obviously a steamroom.
Although
it was empty now, there were heated
rocks
in a pit in the center of the floor, buckets
with
dippers in them to pour water on the rocks,
and
benches around the pit. The walls were plain,
varnished
wood; the windows of something white
and
opaque that let light in without making a mock-
ery of
privacy.
"Heaven,
in very deed," Tarma was losing no
time in
shedding her clothing. "I think I'm finally
going
to be warm again!"
One
candlemark later, as they were blissfully
soaking
in hot mineral water—"This is a hot spring,"
Kethry
remarked after sniffing the faint tang of
copper
in the air. "That's why he can afford to give
his
baths away"—a bright grin surmounted by a
thatch
of tousled brown hair appeared out of the
steam
and handed them their towels.
"Guard-shift's
changin', miladies; men as stays
here'll
be lookin' fer their baths in a bit. You wants
quiet,
ye'd best come t' dinner. You wants a bit o'
summat
else—you jest stays here, they'll gie' ye
that!"
"No
doubt," Tarma said wryly, taking the towel
Laeka
held out to her and emerging reluctantly
from
the hot tub, thinking that in some ways a
child
being raised in an inn grew up even faster
than a
child of the Clans. "We'll take the quiet,
thanks.
What's wrong?"
The
child was staring at her torso with stricken
eyes.
"Lady—you—how did—who did—"
Tarma
glanced down at her own hard, tawny-
gold
body, that was liberally latticed with a net-
work of
paler scars and realized that the child had
been
startled and shocked by the evidence of so
many
old wounds on one so relatively young. She
also
thought about the adulation that had been in
Laeka's
eyes, and the concern in her father's when
the man
had seen it there. This might be a chance
to do
the man a good turn, maybe earn enough
gratitude
that he'd exert himself for them.
"A
lot of people did that to me, child," she said
quietly.
"And if you've ever thought to go adven-
turing,
think of these marks on me first. It isn't like
the
tales, where people go to battle one candlemark
and go
feast the next, with never a scratch on them.
I was
months healing from the last fight I had, and
the
best that those I fought for could give me was a
mule,
provisions, and a handful of coin as reward.
The
life of a mercenary is far from profitable most
of the
time."
Laeka
gulped, and looked away. "I like horses,"
she
ventured, finally. "I be good with 'em."
"Then
by all means, become a horse-trainer,"
Tarma
answered the unspoken question. "Train 'em
well,
and sell 'em to fools like me who earn their
bread
with swords instead of brains. Tell you what—
you
decide to do that, you send word to the Clans
in my
name. I'll leave orders you're to get a better
choice
than we give most outlanders. Hmm?"
"Aye!"
The girl's eyes lighted at the promise,
and she
relaxed a little as Tarma donned her close-
fitting
breeches, shirt, and wrapped Shin'a'in jacket,
covering
the terrible scars. "Da says t' tell you
supper
be stew, bread 'n' honey, an' ale."
"Sounds
fine—Keth?"
"Wonderful."
"Tell
him we'll be there right behind you."
The
child scampered out, and Kethry lifted an
eyebrow.
"Rather overdoing it, weren't you?"
"Huh!
You didn't see the hero-worship in the
kid's
eyes, earlier, or the worry in her Da's. Not too
many
female mercenaries ride through here, I'd
guess;
the kid's seen just enough to make it look
glamorous.
Well, now she knows better, and I'm
thinking
it's just as well."
"You
knew better, but you took this road anyway."
"Aye,
I did," Tarma laced her boots slowly, her
harsh
voice dropping down to a whisper. "And the
only
reason I left the Plains was to revenge my
Clan.
All Shin'a'in learn the sword, but that doesn't
mean we
plan to live by it. We—we don't live to
fight,
we fight when we have to, to live. Sometimes
we
don't manage the last. As for me, I had no
choice
in taking up the blade, in becoming a merce-
nary;
no more than did you."
Kethry
winced, and touched Tarma's arm lightly.
"Put
my foot in it, didn't I? She'enedra, I'm sorry—I
meant
no offense—"
Tarma
shook off her gloom with a shake of her
head.
"I know that. None taken. Let's get that food.
I could
eat this towel, I'm that hungry."
The
whitewashed common room was quite empty,
although
the boy who brought them their supper
(older
than the other two children, darker, and
quieter)
told them it would be filling shortly. And
so it
proved; men of all ages and descriptions slowly
trickling
in to take their places at table and bench,
being
served promptly by Hadell's two sons. The
room
could easily hold at least fifty; the current
crowd
was less than half that number. Most of the
men
looked to be of early middle-age with a sprin-
kling
of youngsters; all wore the unconsciously com-
petent
air of a good professional soldier. Tarma
liked
what she saw of them. None of these men
would
ever be officers, but the officers they did
serve
would be glad to have them.
The
talk was muted; the men were plainly weary
with
the day's work. Listening without seeming to,
the
women soon gleaned the reason why.
As
Tarma had already guessed, these men were
foreign
mercenaries, like themselves. This would
be
Hadell's lean season—one reason, perhaps, that
his
prices were reasonable, and that he was so glad
to see
them. The other reason was that he was that
rare
creature, an honest man, and one who chose to
give
the men he had served beside a decent break.
Right
now, only those hire-swords with contracts
for a
year or more—or those one or two so prosper-
ous
that they could afford to bide out the merce-
nary's
lean season in an inn—were staying at the
Broken
Sword. Normally a year-contract included
room
and board, but these men were a special case.
All of
them were hired on with the City Guard,
which
had no barracks for them. The result was
that
their pay included a stipend for board, and a
good
many of them stayed at inns like the Broken
Sword.
The job was never the easy one it might
appear
to the unknowing to be; and today had been
the
occasion of a riot over bread prices. The Guard
had
been ordered to put down the riot; no few of
these
men had been of two minds about their or-
ders.
On the one hand, they weren't suffering; but
on the
other, most of them were of the same lower-
classes
as those that were rioting, and could re-
member
winters when they had gone hungry. And
the
inflated grain prices, so rumor had it, had no
basis
for being so high. The harvest had been good,
the
granaries full. Rumor said that shortages were
being
created. Rumor said, by Wethes Goldmarchant.
Both
Tarma and her partner took to their bed
with
more than a bellyful of good stew to digest.
"Are
you certain you want to come with me, even
knowing
there probably won't be work for you?
You
deserved a chance to sleep in for a change."
Kethry,
standing in the light from the window,
gave
her sorcerer's robe a good brushing and slipped
it on
over her shirt and breeches—and belted on
her
blade as well.
"Eyah.
I want to be lurking in the background
looking
protective and menacing. I want to start
rumors
about how it's best to approach my partner
with
respect. You put on whatever act you think
will
reinforce mine. And I don't think you should
be
wearing that."
Kethry
glanced down at Need and pursed her
lips.
"You're probably right, but I feel rather naked
without
her."
"We
don't want to attract any attention, right?
You
know damn well mages don't bear steel other
than
eating knives and ritual daggers." Tarma
lounged
fully-clothed—except for her boots—on the
bed,
since there wasn't enough room for two people
to be
standing beside it at the same time.
"Right,"
Kethry sighed, removing the blade and
stowing
it under the bed with the rest of their
goods.
"All right, let's go."
The
Hiring Hall was no more than a short stroll
from
the inn; an interesting walk from Tarma's
point
of view. Even at this early an hour the streets
were
full of people, from ragged beggars to well-
dressed
merchants, and not all from around here—
Tarma
recognized the regional dress of more than a
dozen
other areas, and might have spotted more
had she
known what to look for. This might be the
lean
season, but it was evident that Mornedealth
always
had a certain amount of trade going.
At the
Hiring Hall—just that, a hall lined with
benches
on both sides, and a desk at the end, all of
the
ubiquitous varnished wood—they gave essen-
tially
the same story they'd given the guard. Their
tale
differed only in that Kethry was being more of
herself;
it wouldn't do to look an idiot when she
was
trying to get work. As they had been told, the
steward
of the hall shook his blond head regretfully
when
Tarma informed him that she was only inter-
ested
in short-term assignments.
"I'm
sorry, Swordlady," he told her, "Very sorry.
I could
get you your pick of a round dozen one-to-
five-year
contracts. But this is the lean season, and
there
just isn't anything for a hire-sword but long-
term.
But your friend—yes."
"Oh?"
Kethry contrived to look eager.
"There's
a fellow from a cadet branch of one of
the
Fifty; he just came into a nice fat Royal grant.
He's
getting the revenue from Upvale wine taxes,
and
he's bent on showing the City how a real aristo
does
things when he gets the cash to work with.
He's
starting a full stable; hunters, racers, carriage
beasts
and pleasure beasts. He knows his horse-
flesh;
what he doesn't know is how to tell if there's
been a
glamour put on 'em. Doesn't trust City mages,
as who
could blame him. They're all in the pay of
somebody,
and it's hard to say who might owe whom
a favor
or three. So he's had me on the lookout for
an
independent, and strictly temporary. Does that
suit your
talents?"
"You
couldn't have suited me better!" Kethry
exclaimed
with delight. "Mage-sight's one of my
strongest
skills."
"Right
then," the steward said with satisfaction.
"Here's
your address; here's your contract—sign
here—"
Kethry
scrutinized the brief document, nodded,
and
made her mage-glyph where he indicated.
"—and
off you go; and good luck to you."
They
left together; at the door, Tarma asked,
"Want
me with you?"
"No,
I know the client, but he won't know me.
He's
not one of Kavin's crowd, which is all I was
worried
about. I'll be safe enough on my own."
"All
right then; I'll get back to the inn. Maybe
Hadell
has a connection to something."
Hadell
poured Tarma a mug of ale, sat down
beside
her at the bench, and shook his head with
regret.
"Not a thing, Swordlady. I'm—"
"Afraid
this is the lean season, I know. Well look,
I'm
half mad with boredom, is there at least some-
where I
can practice?" Her trainers would not come
to her
while she was within city boundaries, so it
was up
to her to stay in shape. If she neglected
to—woe
betide her the next time they did come to
her!
"There's
a practice ground with pells set up be-
hind
the stable, if you don't mind that it's outside
and a
simple dirt ring."
"I
think I'll survive," she laughed, and went to
fetch
her blades.
The
practice ground was easy enough to find;
Tarma
was pleased to find it deserted as well.
There
was a broom leaning against the fence to
clear
off the light snow; she used it to sweep the
entire
fenced enclosure clean. The air was crisp
and
still, the sun weak but bright, and close enough
to the
zenith that there would be no "bad" sides to
face.
She stood silently for a moment or two, eyes
closed;
shaking off the "now" and entering that
timeless
state that was both complete concentra-
tion
and complete detachment. She began with the
warmup
exercises; a series of slow, deliberate move-
ment
patterns that blurred, each into the next. When
she had
finished with them, she did not stop, but
proceeded
to the next stage, drawing the sword at
her
back and executing another movement series,
this
time a little faster. With each subsequent stage
her
moves became more intricate, and a bit more
speed
was added, until her blade was a shining
blur
and an onlooker could almost see the invisible
opponent
she dueled with.
She
ended exactly where she had begun, slowing
her
movements down again to end with the reshea-
thing
of her blade, as smooth and graceful as a leaf
falling.
As it went home in the scabbard with a
metallic
click, the applause began.
Startled,
Tarma glanced in the direction of the
noise;
she'd been so absorbed in her exercises that
she
hadn't noticed her watchers. There were three
of
them—Hadell, and two fur-cloaked middle-aged
men who
had not been part of the Guard contingent
last
night.
She
half-bowed (with a wry grin), and let them
approach
her.
"I'd
heard Shin'a'in were good—Swordlady, you've
just
proved to me that sometimes rumor speaks
truth,"
said the larger of the two, a weathered-
looking
blond with short hair and a gold clasp to his
cloak.
"Lady, I'm Justin Twoblade, this is my
shieldbrother
Ikan Dry vale."
"Tarma
shena Tale'sedrin," she supplied, "And
my
thanks. A compliment comes sweeter from a
brother
in the trade."
"We'd
like to offer you more than compliments,
if
you're willing," said the second, amber-haired,
like
Kethry, but with blue eyes; and homely, with a
plowboy's
ingenuous expression.
"Well,
since I doubt it's a bid for bed-services,
I'll at
least hear you out."
"Lessons.
We'll pay your reckoning and your part-
ner's
in return for lessons."
Tarma
leaned on the top bar of the practice-
enclosure
and gave the notion serious thought. "Hmm,
I'll
admit I like the proposition," she replied, squint-
ing
into the sunlight. "Question is, why, and for
how
long? I'd hate to miss a chance at the only
short-term
job for months and then have you two
vanish
on me."
Hadell
interceded for them. "They'll not van-
ish,
Swordlady," he assured her. "Justin and Ikan
are
wintering here, waiting for the caravans to start
up
again in spring. They're highly valued men to
the
Jewel Merchant's Guild—valued enough that
the
merchants pay for 'em to stay here idle during
the
lean season."
"Aye,
valued and bored!" Ikan exclaimed. "That's
one
reason for you. Few enough are those willing to
spar
with either of us—fewer still with the leisure
for it.
And though I've seen your style before, I've
never
had a chance to learn it—or how to counter
it. If
you wouldn't mind our learning how to counter
it,
that is,"
"Mind?
Hardly. Honest guards like you won't see
Clan
facing your blades, and anyone else who's
learned
our style thinking he'll have an easy time
against
hirelings deserves to meet someone with
the
counters. Done, then; for however long it takes
Keth to
earn us the coin to reprovision, I'll be your
teacher."
"And
we'll take care of the reckoning," Justin
said,
with a sly grin. "We'll just add it to our
charges
on the Guild. Odds are they'll think we've
just
taken to drinking and wenching away the win-
ter
nights!"
"Justin,
I think I'm going to like you two," Tarma
laughed.
"You think a lot like me!"
Three
Yellow
lamplight made warm pools around the
common
room of the Broken Sword, illuminat-
ing a
scene far more relaxed than that of the night
before.
The other residents of the inn were much
more
cheerful, and certainly less weary, for there
had
been no repetition of yesterday's riot.
The two
women had taken a table to themselves
at the
back of the room, in the corner. It was
quieter
there, and easier for them to hear each
other.
A lamp just over the table gave plenty of
light,
and Kethry could see that Tarma was quite
well
pleased with herself.
".
. . so I've got a pair of pupils. Never thought
I'd
care for teaching, but I'm having a rare good
time of
it," Tarma concluded over fish stew and
fried
potatoes. "Of course it helps that Ikan and
Justin
are good-tempered about their mistakes, and
they've
got the proper attitude about learning
swordwork."
"Which
is?" Kethry asked, cheered to see a smile
on
Tarma's face for a change. A real smile, one of
pleasure,
not of irony.
"That
inside that enclosure, I'm the only author-
ity
there is."
Kethry
sniffed in derision; it was quiet enough
in the
back-wall corner they'd chosen that Tarma
heard
the sniff and grinned. "Modest, aren't you?"
the
mage teased.
She was
feeling considerably better herself. No
spies
of Wethes or Kavin had leapt upon her during
the
day, and nothing that had occurred had brought
back
any bad memories. In point of fact she had
frequently
forgotten that she was in Mornedealth
at all.
All her apprehension now seemed rather
pointless.
"No,
seriously," Tarma replied to her japing.
"That's
the way it is; no matter what your relation-
ship is
outside the lessons, inside the lesson the
master
is The Master. The Master's word is law,
and
don't argue about the way you learned some-
thing
before." Tarma wiped her plate clean with a
last
bit of bread, and settled back against the wall.
"A
lot of hire-swords don't understand that rela-
tionship—especially
if it's a woman standing in the
Master's
place—but Ikan and Justin have had good
teaching,
and got it early enough to do some good.
They're
able, and they're serious, and they're going
to come
along fast."
"What
if you wanted to learn something from one
of
them?" Kethry asked, idly turning a ring on her
finger.
"Wouldn't all this Master business cause
problems?"
"No,
because when I become the pupil, my teacher
becomes
the Master—actually that's already hap-
pened.
Just before we wrapped up for the day, I
asked
Justin to show me a desperation-counter he'd
used on
me earlier." Tarma sighed regretfully. "Wish
you
knew something of swordwork, Greeneyes—that
was a
clever move he showed me. If you knew
enough
to appreciate it, I could go on about it for a
candlemark.
Could get you killed if you tried it
without
timing it exactly right, but if you did, it
could
save your getting spitted in a situation I
couldn't
see any way out of."
Kethry
shook her head. "I don't see how you keep
things
straight. Back at the School, we only had one
Master
for each pupil, so we didn't get mixed up in
trying
to learn two different styles of magery."
"But
half of your weaponry as a hire-sword is
flexibility.
You've got to be able to learn anything
from
anybody," Tarma replied. "If you can't be
flexible
enough mentally to accept any number of
Masters,
you've no business trying to make your
living
with a blade, and that's all there is to say.
How did
your day go?"
"Enlightening."
Kethry wore a fairly wry smile.
She
raised her voice slightly so as to be heard above
the hum
of conversation that filled the room. "I
never
quite realized the extent to which polite feud-
ing
among the Fifty goes before I took this little
job."
"Ah?"
Tarma cocked an inquiring eyebrow and
washed
down the last bite of bread and butter with
a long
pull on her mug.
"Well,
I thought that business the fellow at the
Hiring
Hall told us was rather an exaggeration—
until I
started using mage-sight on some of the
animals
my client had picked out as possibles. A
good
half of them had been beglamoured, and I
recognized
the feel of the kind of glamour that's
generally
used by House mages around here. Some
of what
was being covered was kind of funny, in a
nasty-brat
sort of way—like the pair of matched
grays
that turned out to be fine animals, just a
particularly
hideous shade of muddy yellow."
"What
would that have accomplished? A horse is
a
horse, no matter the color."
"Well,
just imagine the young man's chagrin to
be
driving these beasts hitched to his maroon rig;
in a
procession, perhaps—and then the glamour is
lifted,
with all eyes watching and tongues ready to
flap."
Tarma
chuckled. "He'd lose a bit of face over it,
not
that I can feel too sorry for any idiot that would
drive a
maroon rig."
"You're
heartless, you are. Maroon and blue are
his
House colors, and he hasn't much choice but to
display
them. He'd lose more than a little face over
it; he
wouldn't dare show himself with his rig in
public
until he got something so spectacular to pull
it that
his embarrassment would be forgotten, and
for a
trick like that, he'd practically have to have
hitched
trained griffins to overcome his loss of
pride.
By the way, that's my client you're calling an
idiot,
and he's paying quite well."
"In
that case, I forgive him the rig. How long do
you
think you'll be at this?"
"About
a week, maybe two."
"Good;
that will give my pupils their money's
worth
and get us back on the road in good time."
"I
hope so," Kethry looked over her shoulder a
little,
feeling a stirring of her previous uneasiness.
"The
longer I stay here, the more likely it is I'll be
found
out."
"I
doubt it," Tarma took another long pull at her
mug.
"Who'd think to look for you here?"
"She's
where?" The incredulous voice echoed in
the
high vaulting and bounced from the walls of
the
expensively appointed, blackwood paneled office.
"At
one of the foreigner's inns; the Broken Sword.
It's
used mostly by mercenaries," Kavin replied,
leaning
back in his chair and dangling his nearly-
empty
wineglass from careless fingers. He half-closed
his
gray eyes in lazy pleasure to see Wethes squirm-
ing and
fretting for his heirloom carpet and fragile
furniture.
"She isn't using her full name, and is
claiming
to be foreign herself."
"What's
she doing there?" Wethes ran nervous
fingers
through his carefully oiled black locks, then
played
with the gold letter opener from his desk
set.
"Has she any allies? I don't like the notion of
going
after her in an inn full of hire-swords. There
could
be trouble, and more than money would cover."
"She
wears the robes of a sorceress, and from all
I could
tell, has earned the right to—"
"That's
trouble enough right there," Wethes
interrupted.
Kavin's
eyes narrowed in barely-concealed anger
at the
banker's rudeness. "That is what you have a
house
mage to take care of, my gilded friend. Use
him.
Besides, I strongly doubt she could be his
equal,
else she'd have a patron, and be spending the
winter
in a cozy little mage-tower. Instead of that,
she's
wandering about as an itinerant, doing noth-
ing
more taxing than checking horses for beglamour-
ing. As
to her allies, there's only one that matters.
A
Shin'a'in swordswoman."
"Shin'a'in?
One of the sword-dancers? I don't
like
the sound of that."
"They
seem," he continued, toying with a lock of
his
curly, pale gold hair, "to be lovers."
"I
like that even less."
"Wethes,
for all your bold maneuvering in the
marketplace,
you are a singularly cowardly man."
Kavin
put his imperiled glass safely on one of
Wethes'
highly-polished wooden tables, and smiled
to
himself when Wethes winced in anticipation of
the
ring its moist bottom would cause. He stood up
and
stretched lazily, consciously mirroring one of
the
banker's priceless marbles behind him; then
smoothed
his silk-velvet tunic back into its proper
position.
He smiled to himself again at the flash of
greed
in Wethes' eyes; the banker valued him as
much
for his decorative value as for his lineage.
With
Kavin as a guest, any party Wethes held was
certain
to attract a high number of Mornedealth's
acknowledged
beauties as well as the younger mem-
bers of
the Fifty. It was probably time again to
grace
one of the fat fool's parties with his presence,
after
all, he did owe him something. His forbear-
ance in
not negating their bargain when Kavin's
brat-sister
vanished deserved some reward.
Of
course, their arrangement was not all one-
sided.
Wethes would have lost all he'd gained by
the
marriage and more had it become known that
his
child-bride had fled him before the union was a
day
old. And now that she'd been gone more than
three
years—by law, she was no longer his wife at
all.
That would have been infinitely worse. It had
been
Kavin who had suggested that they pretend
that
Kethry had gone to stay on Wethes' country
estate.
Kethry was unused to dealing with people
in any
numbers, and found her new position as
Wethes'
helpmeet somewhat overwhelming—so they
told
the curious. She was happier away from the
city
and the confusion of society. Kavin was only
too
pleased to represent her interests with Wethes,
and
play substitute for her at formal occasions.
They'd
kept up the fiction for so long that even
Kavin
was starting to half-believe in Wethes' "shy"
spouse.
"The
Shin'a'in will be no problem," Kavin said
soothingly,
"She's a stranger in this city; she doesn't
know
it, she has no friends; All we need do is take
your
wayward wife when she's out from under the
swordswoman's
eye, and the Shin'a'in will be help-
less to
find her. She wouldn't even begin to know
where
to look. Although why you're bothering with
this is
beyond me. Kethry's hardly of an age to
interest
you anymore. And you have the connec-
tions
you want without the burden of a real wife."
"She's
mine," Wethes said, and the expression in
his
eyes was cold and acquisitive. "What's mine, I
keep.
No one robs me or tricks me with impunity.
I'll
keep her in chains for the insult she's done
me—chains
of her own body. She'll do to breed a
dozen
heirs, and they tell me no pregnant mage can
work
her tricks while so burdened."
Kavin
raised a sardonic eyebrow, but made no
further
comment except to say, "I wouldn't believe
that
particular peasant's tale if I were you—I've
had
friends thought the same and didn't live to
admit
they were wrong. Now, I suspect your next
question
was going to be whether or not the Shin'a'in
might
be able to get a hearing with the Council. It
might
be possible—but who would believe a for-
eigner's
tale of abduction against the word of the
wealthiest
man in Mornedealth?"
"Put
that way, I see no risk of any kind to us,"
Wethes
put down the gold paper knife. "And cer-
tainly
I wish above all to have this accomplished at
no risk
of exposure. There are enough stories about
why I
mew my wife up in the country as it is. I'd
rather
no one ever discovered she's never been in
my
possession at all. But how do we get her away
from
her lover?"
"Just
leave that—" Kavin smiled, well aware that
his
slow smile was not particularly pleasant to look
on,
"—to me."
Kethry
woke with an aching head and a vile taste
in her
mouth; lying on her side, tied hand and foot,
in
total darkness. It hurt even to think, but she
forced
herself to attempt to discipline her thoughts
and
martial them into coherency, despite their ten-
dency
to shred like spiderwebs in a high wind.
What
had happened to her—where was she?
Think—it
was so hard to think—it was like swim-
ming
through treacle to put one thought after an-
other. Everything
was fogged, and her only real
desire
was to relax and pass back into oblivion.
Which
meant she'd been drugged.
That
made her angry; anger burned some of the
befuddlement
away. And the resulting temporary
surge
in control gave her enough to remember a
cleansing
ritual.
Something
like a candlemark later, she was still
tied
hand and foot and lying in total darkness. But
the
rest of the drug had been purged from her body
and she
was at last clearheaded and ready to think—
and
act. Now, what had happened?
She
thought back to her last clear memory—
parting
with her client for the day. It had been a
particularly
fruitless session, but he had voiced
hopes
for the morrow. There were supposed to be
two
horse tamers from the North arriving in time
for
beast-market day. Her client had been optimis-
tic,
particularly over the rumored forest-hunters
they
were said to be bringing. They had parted, she
with
her day's wages safely in the hidden pocket of
her
robe, he accompanied by his grooms.
And
she'd started back to the inn by the usual
route.
But—now
she had it!—there'd been a tangle of
carts
blocking the Street of the Chandlers. The
carters
had been swearing and brawling, laughingly
goaded
on by a velvet-clad youth on his high-bred
palfrey
who'd probably been the cause of the acci-
dent in
the first place. She'd given up on seeing the
street
cleared before supper, and had ducked into
an
alley.
Then
had come the sound of running behind her.
Before
she could turn to see who it was, she was
shoved
face-first against the rough wood of the wall,
and a
sack was flung over her head. A dozen hands
pinned
her against the alley wall while a sickly-
sweet
smelling cloth was forced over her mouth
and
nose. She had no chance to glimpse the faces of
her
assailants, and oblivion had followed with the
first
breath of whatever-it-was that had saturated
the
cloth.
But for
who had done this to her—oh, that she
knew
without seeing their faces. It could only be
Kavin
and his gang of ennobled toughs—and to pay
for it
all, Wethes.
As if
her thought had conjured him, the door to
her
prison opened, and Wethes stood silhouetted
against
the glare of light from the torch on the wall
of the
hallway beyond him.
Terror
overwhelmed her, terror so strong as to
take
the place of the drug in befuddling her. She
could
no longer think, only feel, and all she felt was
fear.
He seemed to be five hundred feet tall, and
even
more menacing than her nightmares painted
him.
"So,"
he laughed, looking down at her as she
tried
to squirm farther away from him, "My little
bride
returns at last to her loving husband."
"Damn,
damn, damn!" Tarma cursed, and paced
the icy
street outside the door of the Broken Sword;
exactly
twenty paces east, then twenty west, then
twenty
east again. It was past sunset: Kethry wasn't
back
yet; she'd sent no word that she'd be late, and
that
wasn't like her. And—
She
suddenly went cold, then hot, then her head
spun
dizzily. She clutched the lintel for support
while
the street spun before her eyes. The door of
the inn
opened, but she dared not try and move.
Her
ears told her of booted feet approaching, yet
she was
too giddy to even turn to see who it was.
"I'd
ask if you had too much wine, except that I
didn't
see you drink more than a mouthful or two
before
you left the room," Justin spoke quietly, for
her
ears alone, as he added his support to that of
the
lintel. "Something's wrong?"
"Keth—something's
happened to Keth—" Tarma
gasped
for air.
"I
know she's late, but—"
"The—bond,
the she'enedran-oath we swore to each
other—it
was Goddess-blessed. So if anything hap-
pens to
one of us—"
"Ah—the
other knows. Ikan and I have some-
thing
of the kind, but we're spell-bound and we
had it
done a-purpose; useful when scouting. Sit.
Put
your head between your knees. I'll get Ikan. He
knows a
bit more about leechcraft and magery than
I."
Tarma
let him ease her down to the ice-covered
doorstep,
and did as she was told. The frosted stone
was
very cold beneath her rump, but the cold seemed
to
shake some of the dizziness away, getting her
head
down did a bit more. Just as her head began to
clear,
there were returning footsteps, and two pairs
of
booted feet appeared beside her.
"Drink
this—" Ikan hunched on his heels beside
her as
she cautiously raised her head; he was hold-
ing out
a small wooden bottle, and his whole pos-
ture
showed concern. "Just a swallow; it's only for
emergencies."
She
took a gingerly mouthful, and was glad she'd
been
cautious. The stuff burned all the way down
her
gullet, but left a clear head and renewed energy
behind
it.
"Goddess—oh,
Goddess, I have to—" she started
to
rise, but Justin's hands on her shoulders pre-
vented
her.
"You
have to stay right where you are. You want
to get
yourself killed?" Ikan asked soberly. "You're
a
professional, Shin'a'in—act like one."
"All
right;" Justin said calmly, as she sank back
to the
stone. "Something's happened to your oath-
sister.
Any clue as to what—"
"—or
who?" Ikan finished. "Or why? You're not
rich
enough to ransom, and too new in Mornedealth
to have
acquired enemies."
"Why
and who—I've got a damn good idea," Tarma
replied
grimly, and told them, in brief, Kethry's
history.
"Gods,
how am I to get her away from them? I
don't
know where to look, and even if I did, what's
one
sword against what Wethes can hire?" she fin-
ished
in despair. "Why, oh why didn't I listen to
her?"
"Kavin—Kavinestral—hmm,"
Justin mused. "Now
that
sounds familiar."
"It
bloody well should," Ikan replied, stoppering
his
precious bottle tightly and tucking it inside his
tunic.
"He heads the Blue faction."
"The—what?"
Tarma blinked at him in bewilder-
ment.
"There
are five factions among the wilder off-
spring
of the Fifty; Blue, Green, Red, Yellow, and
Black.
They started out as racing clubs, but it's
gotten
down to a nastier level than that within the
last
few years," Ikan told her. "Duels in plenty, one
or two
deaths. Right now only two factions are
strong
enough to matter; Blue and Green. Kavin
heads
the Blues; a fellow called Helansevrith heads
Green.
They've been eyeblinks away from each oth-
er's
throats for years, and the only thing that has
kept
them from taking each other on, is that Kavin
is
essentially a coward. He'd rather get his follow-
ers to
do his dirty work for him. He makes a big
pose of
being a tough, but he's never personally
taken
anyone out. Mostly that doesn't matter, since
he's
got his followers convinced."
He
stood up, offering his hand to Tarma. "I can
give
you a quick guess who could find out where
Kethry
is, because I know where Wethes won't take
her. He
won't dare take her to his home, his ser-
vants
would see and gossip. He won't risk that,
because
the tale he's given out all these years is
that
Kethry is very shy and has been staying in
seclusion
on his country estate. No, he'll take her to
his
private brothel; I know he has one, I just don't
know
where. But Justin's got a friend who could
tell
us."
"That
she could—and be happy to. Any harm she
could
bring that man would make her right glad."
Even in
the dim light from the torch over the door
Tarma
could see that Justin looked grim.
"How
do you know all this about Wethes and
Kavin?"
Tarma looked from one to the other of
them.
"Because,
Swordlady," Ikan's mouth stretched in
something
that bore very little resemblance to a
smile,
"my name wasn't always Dryvale."
Kethry
had wedged herself back into a corner of
her
barren, stone-floored cell. Wethes stood over
her,
candle-lantern in one hand, gloating. It was the
very
worst of her nightmares come true.
"What's
mine remains mine, dear wife," he
crowed.
"You won't be given a second chance to
escape
me. I bought you, and I intend to keep you."
He was
enjoying every moment, was taking plea-
sure in
her fright, just as he had taken pleasure in
her
pain when he'd raped her.
Kethry
was paralyzed with fear, her skin crawl-
ing at
the bare presence of him in the same room
with
her. What would she do if he touched her?
Her
heart was pounding as if she'd been running
for
miles. And she thought wildly that if he did
touch
her, perhaps her heart would give out.
He bent
and darted his hand forward suddenly,
as if
intending to catch one of her arms, and she
gave a
little mew of terror and involuntarily kicked
out at
him with her bound feet.
His
startled reaction took her completely by
surprise.
He
jumped backward, eyes widening, hands shak-
ing so
that the candle flame wavered. Fear was a
mask
over his features—absolute and utter fear of
her.
For one long moment he stared at her, and she
at him,
hardly able to believe what her own eyes
were
telling her.
He was
afraid of her. For all his puffing and
threatening,
he was afraid of her!
And in
that moment she saw him for what he
was—an
aging, paunchy, greedy coward. Any sign
of
resistance in an adult woman obviously terrified
him.
She
kicked out again, experimentally, and he
jumped
back another pace.
Probably
the only females he could dominate were
helpless
children; probably that was why he chose
them
for his pleasures. At this moment he was as
terrified
of her as she had been of him.
And the
nightmare-monster of her childhood re-
vealed
itself to be a thing of old clothes stuffed
with
straw.
Her
fear of him evaporated, like a thing spun of
mist.
Anger quickly replaced the fear; and while
fear
paralyzed her magecraft, anger fed her pow-
ers.
That she had been held in thrall for seven long
years
by fear of this!
He saw
the change from terror to rage on her
face;
she could see his realization that she was no
longer
cowed mirrored on his. He bit his lip and
stepped
backward another three or four paces.
With
three barked words she burned through the
ropes
on her hands and feet. She rose swiftly to her
feet,
shaking the bits off her wrists as she did so,
her
eyes never once leaving his face.
"Kidnap
me, will you?" she hissed at him, eyes
narrowed.
"Drug me and leave me tied up, and
think
you can use me as you did before—well, I've
grown
up, even if you haven't. I've learned how to
deal
with slime like you."
Wethes
gulped, and backed up again.
"I'll
teach you to mend your ways, you fat, slob-
bering bastard!
I'll show you what it feels like to be
a
victim!"
She
pointed a finger at him, and miniature light-
ning
leapt from it to his feet.
Wethes
yelped, hopping from one foot to the other.
Kethry
aimed her finger a bit higher.
"Let's
see how you like being hurt."
He
screeched, turned, and fled, slamming the
door
behind him. Kethry was at it in an eyeblink,
clawing
at it in frustration, for there was no handle
on this
side. She screamed curses at him; in her
own
tongue, then in Shin'a'in when that failed her,
pounding
on the obdurate portal with both fists.
"Come
back here, you half-breed son of a pig and
an ape!
I'll wither your manhood like a fifty-year-
old
sausage! Coward! Baby-raper! If I ever get my
hands
on your neck, I'll wrap a rope around it and
spin
you like a top! I'll peel your skull like a chest-
nut!
Come back here!"
Finally
her bruised fists recalled her to her senses.
She
stopped beating senselessly on the thick wood
of the
door, and rested for a moment, eyes closed as
she
reined in her temper. Anger did feed her power,
but
uncontrolled anger kept her from using it. She
considered
the door, considered her options, then
acted.
A
half-dozen spells later, her magic energies were
becoming
exhausted; the wood of the door was black-
ened
and splintered, and the floor before it warped,
but the
door remained closed. It had been warded,
and by
a mage who was her equal at the very least.
She
used the last of her power to fuel a feeble
mage-light;
it hovered over her head, illuminating
the
barren cell in a soft blue radiance. She leaned
her
back against the far wall and allowed herself to
slide
down it, wearily. Wrapping her arms around
her
tucked-up knees, she regarded the warded door
and
planned her next move.
If
Wethes could have seen the expression on her
face,
he'd have died of fright on the spot.
Tarma
had been expecting Justin's "friend" to be
a
whore. Certainly she lived on a street where
every
other door housed one or more who practiced
that
trade—and the other doors led to shops that
catered
to their needs or those of their customers.
They
stopped midway down the block to tap lightly
at one
of those portals that plainly led to a small
apartment,
and Tarma expected it to be opened by
another
of the painted, bright-eyed trollops who
bestowed
themselves on doorways and windows all
up and
down this thoroughfare. She was shivering
at the
sight of most of them, not from dislike, but
from
sympathy. She was half-frozen (as usual), and
could
not imagine for a moment how they managed
to stay
warm in the scarves and shreds of silk they
wore
for bodices and skirts.
She
didn't hold them in low esteem for selling
themselves
to earn their bread. After all, wasn't
that
exactly what she and Keth were doing? It was
too bad
that they had no other commodity to offer,
but
that was what fate had dealt them.
But the
dark-eyed creature who opened her door
at
Justin's coded knock was no whore, and was
unlikely
to ever be mistaken for one, no matter how
murky
the night or intoxicated the customer.
In some
ways she was almost a caricature of
Tarma
herself; practically sexless. Nothing other
than
Justin's word showed she was female—her
sable
hair cut so short it was hardly more than a
smooth
dark cap covering her skull; the thin, half-
starved-looking
body of an acrobat. She wore mid-
night
blue; the only relief of that color came from
the
dozens of knives she wore, gleaming in the light
that
streamed from the room behind her, the torches
of the
street, and the lantern over the door, which
Tarma
noticed belatedly was of blue glass, not red.
Two
bandoliers were strapped across her slim chest,
and
both housed at least eight or nine matched
throwing
daggers. More were in sheaths strapped
to her
arms and legs; two longer knives, almost
short
swords, resided on each hip. Her face was as
hard as
marble, with deeply etched lines of pain.
"Justin,
it's late," she said in a soft voice, frown-
ing a
little. "I take my shift soon."
"Cat-child,
I know," Justin replied; Tarma real-
ized in
that instant that the hard lines of the girl's
face
had deceived her; she couldn't have been more
than
fifteen or sixteen. "But we have a chance to
get at
Wethes Goldmarchant and—"
The
girl's face blazed with an unholy light.
"When?
How? I'll have somebody else sub for me;
Gesta
owes me a favor—"
"Easy,
girl," Ikan cautioned. "We're not sure what
we're
going to be doing yet, or how much we're
going
to be able to hurt him, if at all."
She
gave Ikan a sidelong look, then fixed her
attention
again on Justin. "Him—who?" she asked,
shortly,
jerking her head at Ikan.
"My
shieldbrother; you've heard me talk about him
often
enough," he replied, interpreting the brief
query,
"And this swordlady is Tarma shena Tale'sed-
rin,
Shin'a'in mercenary. Wethes has her oathsister,
a
sorceress—it's rather too long a tale to go into, but
we know
he took her, he's got his reasons for want-
ing her
and we know he won't be taking her to his
house
in the District."
"And
you want to know if I know where his
latest
pleasure-house is. Oh, aye; I do that. But
unless
you swear to let me in on this, I won't tell
you."
"Cat,
you don't know what you're asking—"
"Let
her buy in,"" Tarma interrupted, and spoke
to the
girl directly. "I'm guessing you're one of
Wethes'
discards."
"You're
not wrong. I hate his littlest nail-paring.
I want
a piece of him—somehow, some way—prefer-
ably
the piece he prizes the most."
"That's
a reasonable request, and one I'm in-
clined
to give you a chance at. Just so long as you
remember
that our primary goal is the rescue of my
oathsister,
and you don't jeopardize getting Keth
out in
one piece."
"Let
me roust out Gesta."
The
girl darted between Tarma and Justin; ran
up the
staircase to the second floor to knock on
another
nondescript door. The ugliest man Tarma
had
ever seen in her life answered it; Cat whis-
pered
something inaudible. He grinned, pulled a
savage-looking
half-ax from somewhere just inside
the
door, and sauntered down the stairs with it,
whistling
tunefully. He gave all three of them a
wink as
he passed them, said shortly, "Good hunt-
ing,"
and passed out of sight around a corner. The
girl
returned with a thoughtful look in her eyes.
"Come
on in. Let's sit and plan this over. Being
too
hasty to look before I acted got me into Wethes'
hands."
"And
you won't be making that mistake a second
time,
will you, my girl?" Justin finished for her.
They
filed into the tiny room; it held a few
cushions
and a pallet, a small clothes chest, more
knives
mounted on the wall, and a lantern, nothing
more.
"You
say your friend's a sorceress? The old bas-
tard
probably has her under binding from his house
mage,"
she mused as she dropped down cross-legged
on the
pallet, leaving them to choose cushions.
"Think
she could break herself free if we gave him
something
else to think about?"
"Probably;
Keth's pretty good—"
"The
mage isn't all we have to worry about.
Kavinestral's
crowd is bound to be hanging around,"
Ikan
interrupted.
"Damn—there's
only four of us, and that lot is
nearly
thirty strong." The girl swore under her
breath.
"Where in sheva are we going to get enough
bodies
to throw at them?"
Whatever
had been in that drink Ikan had given
her
seemed to be making Tarma's mind work at
high
speed. " 'Find your enemy's enemy.' That's
what my
people would say."
Ikan
stared at her, then began to grin.
The
last explosion from the sealed room below
made the
whole house rattle. Wethes turned to
Kavin
with stark panic in his face. "What have you
gotten
me into?" he choked hysterically, grabbing
Kavin
by the front of his tunic and shaking him.
"What
kind of monster has she become?"
Kavin
struck the banker's hands away, a touch of
panic
in his own eyes. Kethry wasn't going to be
any
happier with him than she was with Wethes—
and if
she got loose— "How was I to know? Mage-
craft
doesn't breed true in my family! Mages don't
show up
oftener than one in every ten births in my
House!
She never gave any indication she had that
much
power when I was watching her! Can't your
mage
contain her?"
"Barely—and
then what do I do? She'll kill me if
I try
and let her go, and may the gods help us if
Regyl has
to contend with more than simply con-
taining
her."
He
might have purposefully called the sounds of
conflict
from the yard beyond the house. Shouts
and
cries of pain, and the sound of steel on steel
penetrated
the door to the courtyard; mingled in
those
shouts was the rally cry of the Greens. That
galvanized
Kavin into action; he started for the
door to
the rear of the house and the only other
exit,
drawing his sword as he ran, obviously hoping
to
escape before the fracas penetrated into the
building.
But he
stopped dead in his tracks as the door
burst
inward, and narrowly missed being knocked
off his
feet by the force that blew it off its hinges.
His
blade dropped from numb fingers, clattering on
the
slate-paved floor. His eyes grew round, and he
made a
tiny sound as if he were choking. Behind
him,
Wethes was doing the same.
There
were five people standing in the doorway;
whether
Wethes knew all of them, he didn't know,
but
Kavin recognized only two.
First
in line stood Kethry. Her robes were slightly
torn
and scorched in one place; she was disheveled,
smoke-stained,
and dirty. But she was very clearly
in
control of the situation—and Kavin found him-
self
completely cowed by her blazing eyes.
Behind
her was the Shin'a'in Tarma; a sword in
one
hand, a dagger in the other, and the look of an
angry
wolf about her. Should Kethry leave any-
thing
of him, he had no doubt that his chances of
surviving
a single candlemark with her were nil.
Next to
Tarma stood a young girl in midnight
blue
festooned with throwing daggers and with a
long
knife in either hand. She was the only one of
the lot
not dividing her attention between himself
and
Wethes. Kavin looked sideways over his shoul-
der at
the banker, and concluded that he would
rather
not be in Wethes' shoes if that girl were
given
her way with him; Wethes looked as if he
were as
frightened of her as of the rest combined.
Behind
those three stood a pair of men, one of
whom
looked vaguely familiar, although Kavin
couldn't
place him. They took one look at the situa-
tion,
grinned at each other, sheathed their own
weapons,
and left, closing what remained of the
door
behind the three women.
Kavin
backed up, feet scuffling on the floor, until
he ran
into Wethes.
"Surprise,
kinsmen," Kethry said. "I am so glad
to find
you both at home."
The
Broken Sword was the scene of general cele-
bration;
Hadell had proclaimed that the ale was on
the
house, in honor of the victory the five had just
won. It
was a double victory, for not only had they
rescued
Kethry, but Ikan had that very day gotten
them a
hearing and a highly favorable verdict from
the
Council. Wethes was, insofar as his ambitions
went, a
ruined man. Worse, he was now a laughing-
stock
to the entire city.
"Cat-child,
I expected you at least to want him
cut up
into collops." Justin lounged back precari-
ously
in his chair on the hearth, balancing it on two
legs.
"I can't fathom why you went along with
this."
"I
wanted to hurt him," the girl replied, trim-
ming
her nails with one of her knives. "And I knew
after
all these years of watching him that there's
only
two ways to hurt that bastard; to hit his pride
or his
moneybags. Revenge, they say, is a dish best
eaten
cold, and I've had three years of cooling."
"And
here's to Kethry, who figured how to get
both at
the same time," Ikan raised his mug in a
toast.
Kethry
reciprocated. "And to you, who convinced
the
Council I was worth heeding."
Ikan
smiled. "Just calling in a few old debts,
that's
all. You're the one who did the talking."
"Oh,
really? I was under the impression that you
did at
least half of it."
"Some,
maybe. Force of habit, I'm afraid. Too
many
years of listening to my father. You may
know
him—Jonis Revelath—"
"Gods,
yes, I remember him!" Kethry exclaimed.
"He's
the legal counsel for half the Fifty!"
"Slightly
more than half."
"That
must be why you're the one who remem-
bered
it's against the law to force any female of the
Fifty
into any marriage without her consent," Kethry
said
admiringly. "Ikan, listening to you in there—I
was
truly impressed. You're clever, you're persua-
sive,
you're a good speaker. Why aren't you . . ."
"Following
in my father's footsteps? Because he's
unable
to fathom why I am more interested in jus-
tice
than seeing that every client who hires me gets
off
without more than a reprimand."
"Which
is why the old stick wouldn't defend
Wethes
for all the gold that bastard threw at him,"
Justin
chuckled, seeing if he could balance the chair
on one
leg. "Couldn't bear to face his son with Ikan
on the
side of Good, Truth, and Justice. Well,
shieldbrother,
going to give up the sword and Fight
for
Right?" The irony in his voice was so strong it
could
have been spread on bread and eaten.
"Idiot!"
Ikan grinned. "What do you think I am,
a
dunderhead like you? Swords are safer and usu-
ally
fairer than the law courts any day!"
"Well,
I think you were wonderful," Kethry began.
"I
couldn't have done it without you and Cat
being
so calm and clear. You had an answer for
everything
they could throw at you."
"Enough!"
Tarma growled, throwing apples at
all of
them. "You were all brilliant. So now Wethes
is
poorer by a good sum; Cat has enough to set
herself
up as anything she chooses, we have enough
to see
us to the Plains, and the entire town knows
Wethes
isn't potent with anything over the age of
twelve.
He's been the butt of three dozen jokes that
I've
heard so far; there are gangs of little boys
chanting
rude things in front of his house at this
moment."
"I've
heard three songs about him out on the
street,
too," Cat interrupted with an evil grin.
"And
last of all, Keth's so-called marriage has
been
declared null. What's left?"
"Kavin?"
Justin hazarded. "Are we likely to see
any
more trouble from him?"
"Well,
I saw to it that he's been declared disin-
herited
by the Council for selling his sister. Keth
didn't
want the name or the old hulk of a house
that
goes with it, so it's gone to a cadet branch of
her
family."
"With
my blessings; they're very religious, and I
think
they intend to set up a monastic school in it.
As for
my brother, when last seen, Kavin was fleeing
for his
life through the stews with the leader of the
Greens
in hot pursuit," Kethry replied with a cer-
tain
amount of satisfaction. "I saw him waiting for
Kavin
outside the Council door, and I was kind
enough
to pinpoint my brother for him with a ball
of
mage-light. I believe his intention was to paint
Kavin a
bright emerald when he caught him."
Justin
burst into hearty guffaws—and his chair
promptly
capsized.
The
rest of them collapsed into helpless laughter
at the
sight of him, looking surprised and indig-
nant,
amid the ruins of his chair.
"Well!"
he said, crossing his arms and snorting.
"There's
gratitude for you! That's the last time I
ever do
any of you a fav—"
Whatever
else he was going to say ended in a
splutter
as Ikan dumped his mug over his head.
"Still
set on getting back to the Plains?" Kethry
asked
into the darkness.
A sigh
to her right told her that Tarma wasn't
asleep
yet. "I have to," came the reluctant answer.
"I
can't help it. I have to. If you want to stay ..."
Kethry
heard the unspoken plea behind the words
and
answered it. "I'm your she'enedra, am I not?"
"But
do you really understand what that means?"
"Understand—no.
Beginning to understand, yes.
You
forget, I'm a mage; I'm used to taking internal
inventory
on a regular basis. I've never had a Tal-
ent for
Empathy, but now I find myself knowing
what
you're feeling, even when you're trying to
hide
it. And you knew the instant I'd been taken,
didn't
you?"
"Yes."
"And
now you're being driven home by some-
thing
you really don't understand."
"Yes."
"Does
it have anything to do with that Goddess
of
yours, do you think?"
"It
might; I don't know. We Sworn Ones move
mostly
to Her will, and it may be She has some
reason
to want me home. I know She wants Tale'-
sedrin
back as a living Clan."
"And
She wants me as part of it."
"She
must, or She wouldn't have marked the
oathtaking."
Kethry
stretched tired muscles, and put her hands
under
her head. "How much time do you have
before
you have to be back?"
"Before
Tale'sedrin is declared dead? Four years,
maybe
five. Kethry ..."
"It's
all right, I told you, I can feel some of what
you're
feeling now, I understand."
"You're—you're
better. I'm—I'm feeling some of
what
you're feeling, too."
"This
whole mess was worth it," Kethry replied
slowly,
only now beginning to articulate what she'd
only
sensed. "It really was. My ghosts have been
laid to
rest. And revenge—great Goddess, I couldn't
have
hoped for a better revenge! Kavin is terrified
of me;
he kept expecting me to turn him into a
toad,
or something. And Wethes is utterly ruined.
He's
still got his money, but it will never buy him
back
his reputation. Indirectly, you got me that,
Tarma.
I finally realized that I would never reach
Adept
without coming to terms with my past. You
forced
me into the confrontation I'd never have
tried
on my own. For that alone I would be in-
debted
to you."
"She'enedran
don't have debts."
"I
rather figured that. But—I want you to know,
I'm
going with you because I want to, not because I
think
that I owe you. I didn't understand what this
oath
meant at first, but I do now, and I would
repeat
it any time you asked."
A long
silence. Then, "Gestena, she'enedra."
That
meant "thank you," Kethry knew—thanks,
and a
great deal more than thanks.
"Yai
se corthu," she replied uncertainly. "Two
are
one." For she suddenly felt all Tarma's loneli-
ness
and her own as well, and in the darkness of
the
night it is sometimes possible to say things that
are too
intense and too true for daylight.
"Yai
se corthu." And a hand came from the dark-
ness to
take hers.
It was
enough.
Four
"Tarma,
we've been riding for weeks, and I
still
haven't seen any sign that this country
is
going to turn into grass-plains," Kethry com-
plained,
shifting uncomfortably in Rodi's saddle.
"Brush-hills,
yes. Near-desert, certainly. Forest, ye
gods!
I've seen more trees than I ever want to see
again!"
"What's
wrong with forest, other than that you
can't
do a straight-line gallop or get a clear shot at
anything,
that is?"
Kethry
gazed in all directions, and then glanced
up to
where branches cut off every scrap of sky
overhead.
Huge evergreens loomed wherever she
looked;
the only sunlight came from those few beams
that
managed to penetrate the canopy of needles. It
seemed
as if she'd been breathing resin forever, the
smell
clung to everything; clothing, hair—it even
got
into the food. It wasn't unpleasant; the oppo-
site,
in fact, especially after they'd first penetrated
the
edges of the forest after days of fighting a dusty
wind.
But after days of eating, drinking, and breath-
ing the
everlasting odor of pine, she was heartily
tired
of it.
It was
chilly and damp on the forest floor, and
lonely.
Kethry hadn't seen a bird in days, for they
were
all up where the sun was. She could hear
them
calling, but the echoes of their far-off singing
only
made the empty corridors between the tree
trunks
seem more desolate. This forest had to be
incredibly
ancient, the oldest living thing she'd ever
seen,
perhaps. Certainly the trees were larger than
any she
was familiar with. They towered for yards
before
branching out, and in the case of a few
giants
she had noticed, their trunks were so large
that
several adults could have circled the biggest of
them
with their arms without touching hand to
hand.
The road they followed now was hardly more
than a
goat track; the last person they had seen had
been
two weeks ago, and since that time they'd
only
had each other's voices to listen to.
At
first it had been pleasurable to ride beneath
these
branches, especially since they had spent
weeks
skirting that near-desert she had mentioned,
riding
through furlong after furlong of stony, brush-
covered
hills with never anything taller than a man
growing
on them. While the spring sun had no-
where
near the power it would boast in a mere
month,
it had been more than hot enough for Kethry
during
the height of the day. She couldn't imagine
how
Tarma, dressed in her dark Sword Sworn cos-
tume,
could bear it. When the hills began to grow
into
something a bit more impressive, and the brush
gave
way to real trees, it was a genuine relief to
spend
all day in their cool shade. But now ...
"It's
like they're—watching. I haven't sensed any-
thing,
either with mage-senses or without, so I know
it must
be my imagination, but..."
"It's
not your imagination; something is watch-
ing,"
Tarma interrupted calmly. "Or rather, someone.
I
thought I'd not mention it unless you saw or felt
something
yourself, since they're harmless to MS.
Hadn't
you ever wondered why I haven't taken any
shots
at birds since we entered the trees?"
"But—"
"Oh,
the watchers themselves aren't within sens-
ing
distance, and not within the scope of your mage-
senses
either—just their feathered friends. Hawks,
falcons,
ravens and crows by day, owls and night-
hawks
by dark. Tale'edras, my people call them—
the
Hawkbrothers. We really don't know what they
call
themselves. We don't see them much, though
they've
been known to trade with us."
"Will
we see any of them?"
"Why,
do you want to?" Tarma asked, with a
half-grin
at Kethry's nod. "You mages must be curi-
osity
incarnate, I swear! Well, I might be able to do
something
about that. As I said, we're in no danger
from
them, but if you really want to meet one—
let's
see if I still have my knack for identifying
myself."
She
reined in Kessira, threw back her head, and
gave an
ear-piercing cry—not like the battle shriek
of a
hawk, but a bit like the mating cry, or the cry
that
identifies mate to mate. Rodi started, and
backed
a few steps, fighting his bit, until Kethry
got him
back into control. A second cry echoed
hers,
and at first Kethry thought it was an echo, but
it was
followed by a winged streak of gold lightning
that
swooped down out of the highest branches to
land on
Tarma's outstretched arm.
It
braked its descent with a thunder of wings,
wings
that seemed to Kethry to belong to something
at
least the size of an eagle. Talons like ivory knives
bit
into the leather of Tarma's vambrace; the wings
fanned
the air for a heartbeat more, then the bird
settled
on Tarma's forearm, regal and gilded.
"Well
if I'd wanted a good omen, I couldn't have
asked
for a better," Tarma said in astonishment.
"This
is a vorcel-hawk; you see them more on the
plains
than in the forests—it's my Clan's standard."
The
bird was half-again larger than any hawk
Kethry
had ever seen; its feathers glistened with
an
almost metallic gold sheen, no more than a shade
darker
than the bird's golden eyes. It cocked its
head to
one side and regarded Kethry with an intel-
ligent
air she found rather disturbing. Rodi snorted
at the
alien creature, but Kessira stood calmly when
one
wing flipped a hair's-breadth from her ear,
apparently
used to having huge birds swoop down
at her
rider from out of nowhere.
"Now,
who speaks for you, winged one?" Tarma
turned
her attention fully to the bird on her arm,
stroking
his breast feathers soothingly until he set-
tled,
then running her hand down to his right leg
and
examining it. Kethry edged closer, cautiously;
wary of
the power in that beak and those sharp
talons.
She saw that what Tarma was examining
was a
wide band on its leg, a band of some shiny
stuff
that wasn't metal and wasn't leather.
"Moonsong
k'Vala, hmm? Don't know the name.
Well,
let's send the invitation to talk. I really should
at
least pay my respects before leaving the trees, if
anyone
wants to take them, so ..."
Tarma
lowered her arm a little, and the hawk
responded
by moving up it until he perched on her
shoulder.
His beak was in what Kethry considered
to be
uncomfortably close proximity to Tarma's face,
but
Tarma didn't seem at all concerned. Thinking
about
the uncertain temperament of all the raptors
she'd
ever had anything do to with, Kethry shivered
at
Tarma's casualness.
When
the bird was safely on her shoulder, Tarma
leaned
over a little and rummaged in her saddle-
bag,
finally coming up with a cluster of three small
medallions.
Kethry could see that they were light
copper
disks, beautifully enameled with the image
of the
bird that sat her shoulder.
She
selected one, dropped the other two back in
her
bag; then with great care, took a thong from a
collection
of them looped to a ring on her belt,
passed
the thong through the hole in the top of the
medallion
and knotted it securely. She offered the
result
to the bird, who looked at it with a surpris-
ing
amount of intelligence before opening his beak
slowly
and accepting the thong. He bobbed his head
twice,
the medallion bouncing below his head, and
Tarma
raised her arm again. He sidled along it
until
he reached her wrist, and she launched him
into
the air. His huge wings beat five or six times,
raising
a wind that fanned their hair, then he was
lost to
sight among the branches.
"What
was that all about?"
"Politeness,
more than anything. The Hawk-
brothers
have known we were here from the mo-
ment we
entered the forest, and they knew I was
Shin'a'in
Kal'enedral when they came to look at us
in
person—that would have been the first night we
camped.
Since then they've just been making sure
we
didn't wander off the track, or get ambushed by
something
we couldn't handle. We'll be leaving the
forest
soon."
"Soon?
When?"
"Keep
your breeches on, girl! Tomorrow after-
noon at
the latest. Anyway, you wanted to see one
of the
Hawkbrothers, and it's only polite for me to
acknowledge
the fact that they've been guarding
us."
"I
thought you said they were watching us."
"Since
I'm Shin'a'in and we're allies, it amounts
to the
same thing. Sa-hai; I just sent my Clan token
off to
our current guardian, whoever it is. If he or
she
chooses, we'll get a response before we leave."
"Moonsong
sounds like a female name to me,"
Kethry
replied.
"Maybeso,
maybeno. The Hawkbrothers are v-e-r-y
different—well,
you'll see if we get a visitor. Keep
your
eyes busy looking for a good campsite; stick to
the
road. As Shin'a'in I have certain privileges here,
and I'm
tired of dried beef. I'm going hunting."
She
swung Kessira off under the trees, following
the
path the hawk had taken, leaving Kethry alone
on the
track. With a shrug, Kethry urged Rodi back
into a
walk and did as she'd been told.
Still
homing in on the Plains; she's been easier than
she was
before Mornedealth, but still—home is draw-
ing her
with a power even I can feel. 1 wonder if it's
because
she hasn't a real purpose anymore, not since
she
accomplished her revenge.
Kethry
kept Rodi to a walk, listening with half
her
attention for the sound of water. Running sur-
face
water was somewhat scarce in the forest; find-
ing it
meant they made a campsite then and there.
I don't
really have a purpose either, except to learn
and
grow stronger in magic—but I expected that. I
knew
that's the way my life would be once 1 left the
school
until I could found my own. But Tarma—she
needs a
purpose, and this home-seeking is only a sub-
stitute
for one. I wonder if she realizes that.
When
Tarma caught up with her, it was a candle-
mark or
so before sunset, but it was already dark
under
the trees. Kethry had found a site that looked
perfect,
with a tiny, clear stream nearby and a
cleared
area where one of the giant trees had fallen
and
taken out a wide swath of seedlings with it.
That
had left a hole in the green canopy above
where
sunlight could penetrate, and there were
enough
grasses and plants growing that there was
browse
for their animals. The tree had been down
for at
least a season, so the wood was dry and
gathering
enough firewood for the evening had been
the
task of less than a candlemark.
Kethry
discovered when she was sweeping out
the
area for stones to line a firepit that others had
found
the site just as perfect, for many of the stones
bore
scorch marks. Now their camp was set up, and
the
tiny fire burning brightly in the stone-lined pit.
When
they had entered this forest, Tarma had em-
phasized
the importance of keeping their fires small
and
under strict control. Now that Kethry knew
about
the Hawkbrothers, she could guess why. This
tree-filled
land was theirs, and they doubtless had
laws
that a visitor to it had better keep, especially
with
winged watchers all about.
She heard
Tarma approaching long before she
saw
her; a dark shape looming back along the trail,
visible
only because it was moving.
"Ho,
the camp!" Tarma's hoarse voice called
cheerfully.
"Ho,
yourself—what was your luck?"
"Good
enough. From this place you take no more
than
you need, ally or not. Got browse?"
Tarma
appeared in the firelight, leading Kessira,
something
dangling from her hand.
"Behind
me about forty paces; Rodi's already
tethered
there, along a downed tree. If you'll give
me what
you've got, I'll clean it."
"Skinning
is all you need to do, I field-gutted
'em."
Tarma tossed two odd creatures at Kethry's
feet,
the size and shape of plump rabbits, but with
short,
tufted ears, long claws, and bushy, flexible
tails.
"I'll
go take care of Rodi and my baby, and I'll be
right
back." Tarma disappeared into the darkness
again,
and sounds from behind her told Kethry that
she was
unsaddling her mare and grooming both
the
animals. She had unsaddled Rodi but had left
the
rest to Tarma, knowing the Shin'a'in could tend
a
saddlebeast in the dark and half asleep. Rodi,
while
well-mannered for a mule, was too ticklish
about
being groomed for Kethry to do it in uncer-
tain
light.
When
Tarma returned, she brought with her their
little
copper traveling-kettle filled with water. "We'll
have to
stew those devils; they're tough as old boots
after
the winter," she said; then, so softly Kethry
could
hardly hear her, "I got a reply to my invita-
tion.
We'll have a visitor in a bit. Chances are he'll
pop in
out of nowhere; try not to look startled, or
we'll
lose face. I can guarantee he'll look very
strange;
in this case, the stranger the better—if he
really
looks odd it will mean he's giving us full
honors."
Just at
the moment the stewed meat seemed ready,
their
visitor appeared.
Even
though she'd been forewarned, Kethry still
nearly
jumped out of her skin. One moment the
opposite
side of the fire was empty—the next, it
was
not.
He was
tall; like Tarma, golden-skinned and blue-
eyed.
Unlike Tarma, his hair was a pure silver-
white;
it hung to his waist, two braids framing his
face,
part of the rest formed into a topknot, the
remainder
streaming unconfined down his back.
Feathers
had been woven into it—a tiny owlet nes-
tled at
the base of the topknot, a nestling Kethry
thought
to be a clever carving, until it moved its
head
and blinked.
His
eyes were large and slightly slanted, his fea-
tures
sharp, with no trace of facial hair. His eye-
brows
had a slight, upward sweep to them, like
wings.
His clothing was green, all colors of green—
Kethry
thought it at first to be rags, until she saw
how
carefully those seeming rags were cut to re-
semble
foliage. In a tree, except for that hair, he'd
be
nearly invisible, even with a wind blowing. He
wore
delicate jewelry of woven and braided silver
wire
and crystals.
He
carried in his right hand a strange weapon; a
spearlike
thing with a wicked, curving point that
seemed
very like a hawk's talon at one end and a
smooth,
round hook at the other. In his left he
carried
Tarma's medallion.
Tarma
rose to her feet, gracefully. "Peace, Moon-
song."
"And
upon you, Child of the Hawk." Both of
them
were speaking Shin'a'in—after months of tu-
toring
Kethry was following their words with rela-
tive
ease.
"Tarma,"
the Shin'a'in replied, "and Kethry. My
she'enedra.
You will share hearth and meal? It is
tree-hare,
taken as is the law; rejected suitors, no
mates,
no young, and older than this season's
birthing."
"Then
I share, and with thanks." He sank to the
ground
beside the fire with a smoothness, an ease,
that
Kethry envied; gracefully and soundlessly as a
falling
leaf. She saw then that besides the feathers
he had
also braided strings of tiny crystals into his
hair,
crystals that reflected back the firelight, as
did the
staring eyes of the tiny owlet. She remem-
bered
what Tarma had told her, and concluded
they
were being given high honor.
He
accepted the bowl of stewed meat and dried
vegetables
with a nod of thanks, and began to eat
with
his fingers and a strange, crystalline knife
hardly
longer than his hand. When Tarma calmly
began
her own portion, Kethry did the same, but
couldn't
help glancing at their visitor under cover
of eating.
He
impressed her, that was certain. There was
an air
of great calm and patience about him, like
that of
an ancient tree, but she sensed he could be a
formidable
and implacable enemy if his anger was
ever
aroused. His silver hair had made her think of
him as
ancient, but now she wasn't so certain of his
age.
His face was smooth and unlined; he could
have
been almost any age at all, from stripling to
oldster.
Then
she discovered something that truly fright-
ened
her; when she looked for him with mage-
sight,
he wasn't there.
It
wasn't a shielding, either—a shield either left
an
impression of a blank wall or of an absolute
nothingness.
No, it was as if there was no one
across
the fire from them at all, nothing but the
plants
and stones of the clearing, the woods beyond,
and the
owlet sitting in a young tree.
The
owlet sitting in a young tree!
It was
then she realized that he was somehow
appearing
to her mage-sight as a part of the forest,
perfectly
blended in with the rest. She switched
back to
normal vision and smiled to herself. And as
if he
had known all along that she had been scan-
ning
him—in fact, if he were practiced enough to
pull
off what he was doing, he probably did—he
looked
up from his dinner and nodded at her.
"The
banner of the Hawk's Children has not
been
seen for seasons," he said breaking the si-
lence.
"We heard ill tales. Tales of ambush on the
road to
the Horse Fair; tales of death come to their
very
tents."
"True
tales," Tarma replied, the pain in her voice
audible
to Kethry ... and probably to Moonsong. "I
am the
last."
"Ah.
Then the blood-price—"
"Has
been paid. I go to raise the banner again;
this,
my she'enedra, goes with me."
"Who
holds herds for Tale'sedrin?"
"Liha'irden.
You have knowledge of the camps
this
spring?
"Liha'irden
..." he brooded a moment. "At
Ka'tesik
on the border of their territory and yours.
So you
go to them. And after?"
"I
have given no thought to it." Tarma smiled
suddenly,
but it was with a wry twist to her mouth.
"Indeed,
the returning has been sufficient to hold
my
attention."
"You
may find," he said slowly, "that the Plains
are no
longer the home to you that they were."
Tarma
looked startled. "Has aught changed?"
"Only
yourself, Lone Hawk. Only yourself. The
hatched
chick cannot go back to the shell, the fal-
con who
has found the sky does not willingly sit
the
nest. When a task is completed, it is meet to
find
another task—and you may well serve the Lady
by
serving outlanders."
Tarma
looked startled and pale, but nodded.
"OutClan
Shin'a'in—" He turned his attention
abruptly
to Kethry. "You bear a sword—"
"Aye,
Elder."
He
chuckled. "Not so old as you think me, nor so
young
either. Three winters is age to a polekit, but
fifty
is youth to a tree. You bear a sword, yet you
touched
me with mage-sight. Strange to see a mage
with
steel. Stranger still to see steel with a soul."
"What?"
Kethry was too startled to respond
politely.
"Hear
me, mate of steel and magic," he said,
leaning
forward so that he and the owlet transfixed
her
with unblinking stares. "What you bear will
bind
you to herself, more and more tightly with
each
hour you carry her. It is writ that Need is her
name—you
shall come to need her, as she needs
you, as
both of you answer need. This is the price
of
bearing her, and some of this you knew already. I
tell
you that you have not yet reached the limit to
which
she can—and will—bind you to herself, to
her
goals. It is a heavy price, yet the price is worth
her
service; you know she can fight for you, you
know
she can heal you. I tell you now that her
powers
will extend to aid those you love, so long as
they
return your care. Remember this in future
times—"
His
blue eyes bored into hers with an intensity
that
would have been frightening had he not held
her
beyond fear with the power he now showed
himself
to possess. She knew then that she was
face-to-face
with a true Adept, though of a disci-
pline
alien to hers; that he was one such as she
hardly
dared dream of becoming. Finally he leaned
back,
and Kethry shook off the near-trance he had
laid on
her, coming to herself with a start.
"How
did you—"
He
silenced her with a wave of his hand.
"I
read what is written for me to see, nothing
more,"
he replied, rising with the same swift grace
he had
shown before. "Remember what I have read,
both of
you. As you are two-made-one, so your task
will be
one. First the binding, then the finding. For
the
hearth, for the meal, my thanks. For the future,
my
blessing. Lady light thy road—"
And as
abruptly as he had appeared, he was
gone.
Kethry
started to say something, but the odd look
of
puzzlement on Tarma's face stopped her.
"Well,"
she said at last, "I have only one thing to
say.
I've passed through this forest twenty times, at
least.
In all that time, I must have met Hawkbrothers
ten out
of the twenty, and that was extraordinary.
But
this—" she shook her head. "That's more words
at once
from one of them than any of my people has
ever
reported before. Either we much impressed
him—"
"Or?"
"Or,"
she smiled crookedly, "We are in deep
trouble."
Kethry
wasn't quite sure what it was that woke
her;
the cry of a bird, perhaps; or one of the riding
beasts
waking out of a dream with a snort, and so
waking
her in turn.
The air
was full of gray mist that hung at waist
height
above the needle-strewn forest floor. It glowed
in the
dim blue light that signaled dawn, and the
treetops
were lost beyond thought within it. It was
chill
and thick in the back of her throat; she felt
almost
as if she were drinking it rather than breath-
ing it.
The
fire was carefully banked coals; it was
Tarma's
watch. Kethry sighed and prepared to go
back to
another hour of sleep—then stiffened. There
were no
sounds beyond what she and the two saddle-
beasts
were making. Tarma was gone.
Then,
muffled by the fog, came the sound of
blade
on blade; unmistakable if heard once. And
Kethry
had heard that peculiar shing more times
than
she cared to think.
Kethry
had lain down fully-clothed against the
damp;
now she sprang to her feet, seizing her blade
as she
rose. Barefooted, she followed the sound
through
the echoing trunks, doing her own best to
make no
sound.
For
why, if this had been an attack, had Tarma
not
awakened her? An ambush then? But why hadn't
Tarma
called out to her? Why wasn't she calling
for
help now ? What of the Hawkbrothers that were
supposed
to be watching out for them?
She
slipped around tree trunks, the thick carpet
of
needles soft beneath her feet, following the noise
of
metal scissoring and clashing. Away from the
little
cup where they had camped the fog began to
wisp
and rise, winding around the trunks in woolly
festoons,
though still thick as a storm cloud an arm's
length
above her head. The sounds of blades came
clearer
now, and she began using the tree trunks to
hide
behind as she crept up upon the scene of
conflict.
She
rounded yet another tree, and shrank again
behind
it; the fog had deceived her, and she had
almost
stumbled into the midst of combat.
The fog
ringed this place, moving as if alive, a
thick
tendril of it winding out, now and again, to
interpose
itself between Tarma and her foe. It
glowed—it
glowed with more than the predawn
light.
To mage-sight it glowed with power, power
bright
and pure, power strong, true, and—strange.
It was
out of her experience—and it barred her
from
the charmed circle where the combatants
fenced.
Tarma's
eyes were bright with utter concentra-
tion,
her face expressionless as a sheet of polished
marble.
Kethry had never seen her quite like this,
except
when in the half-trance she induced when
practicing
or meditating. She was using both sword
and
dagger to defend herself—
Against
another Shin'a'in.
This
man was unmistakably of Tarma's race. The
tawny
gold skin of hands and what little Kethry
could
see of his face showed his kinship to her. So
did the
strands of raven hair that had been bound
out of
his face by an equally black headband, and
ice-blue
eyes that glinted above his veil.
For he
was veiled; this was something Tarma
never
had worn for as long as Kethry had known
her.
Kethry hadn't even known till this moment
that a
veil could be part of a Shin'a'in costume, but
the
man's face was obscured by one, and it did not
have
the feeling of a makeshift. He was veiled and
garbed
entirely in black, the black Tarma had worn
when on
the trail of those who had slaughtered her
Clan.
Black was for blood-feud—but Tarma had
sworn
that there was never blood-feud between
Shin'a'in
and Shin'a'in. And black was for Kal'ene-
dral—three
times barred from internecine strife.
There
was less in their measured counter and
riposte
of battle than of dance. Kethry held her
breath,
transfixed by more than the power of the
mist.
She was caught by the deadly beauty of the
weaving
blades, caught and held entranced, drawn
out of
her hiding place to stand in the open.
Tarma
did not even notice she was there—but
the
other did.
He
stepped back, breaking the pattern, and mo-
tioned
slightly with his left hand. Tarma instantly
broke
off her advance, and seemed to wake just as
instantly
from her trance, staring at Kethry with
the
startled eyes of a wild thing broken from hiding.
The
other turned, for his back had been to Kethry.
He
saluted the sorceress in slow, deliberate cere-
mony
with his own blade. Then he winked slowly
and
gravely over his veil, and—vanished, taking the
power
in the magic fog with him.
Released
from her entrancement, Kethry stared
at her
partner, not certain whether to be fright-
ened,
angry or both.
"What—was—that—"
she managed at last.
"My
trainer; my guide," Tarma replied sheep-
ishly.
"One of them, anyway." She sheathed her
sword
and stood, to all appearances feeling awk-
ward
and at a curious loss for words. "I ... never
told
you about them before, because I wasn't sure it
was
permitted. They train me every night we aren't
within
walls . .. one of them takes my watch to see
you
safe. I... I guess they decided I was taking too
long to
tell you about them; I suppose they figured it
was
time you knew about them."
"You
said your people didn't use magic—but
he—he
was alive with it! Only your Goddess—"
"He's
Hers. In life, was Kal'enedral; and now—"
she
lifted up her hand, "—as you saw. His magic is
Hers—"
"What
do you mean, 'in life'?" Kethry asked, an
edge of
hysteria in her voice.
"You
mean—you couldn't tell?"
"Tell
what?"
"He's
a spirit. He's been dead at least a hundred
years,
like all the rest of my teachers."
It took
Tarma the better part of an hour to calm
her
partner down.
They
broke out of the trees, as Tarma had prom-
ised,
just past midafternoon.
Kethry
stared; Tarma sat easily in Kessira's sad-
dle,
and grinned happily. "Well?" she asked, finally.
Kethry
sought for words, and failed to find them.
They
had come out on the edge of a sheer drop-
off;
the mighty trees grew to the very edge of it,
save
for the narrow path on which they stood. Be-
low
them, furlongs, it seemed, lay the Dhorisha
Plains.
Kethry
had pictured acres of grassland, a sea of
green,
as featureless as the sea itself, and as flat.
Instead
she saw beneath her a rolling country of
gentle,
swelling rises; like waves. Green grass there
was in
plenty—as many shades of green as Kethry
had
ever seen, and more—and golden grass, and a
faint
heathered purple. And flowers—it must have
been
flowers that splashed the green with irregular
pools
of bright blue and red, white and sunny yel-
low,
orange and pink. Kethry took an experimental
sniff
and yes, the breeze rising up the cliff carried
with it
the commingled scents of growing grass and
a
hundred thousand spring blossoms.
There
were dark masses, like clouds come to earth,
running
in lines along the bottoms of some of the
swells.
After a long moment Kethry realized that
they
must be trees, far-off trees, lining the water-
courses.
"How—"
she turned to Tarma with wonder in
her
eyes, "how could you ever bear to leave this?"
"It
wasn't easy, she'enedra," Tarma sighed, deep
and
abiding hunger stirring beneath the smooth
surface
of the mask she habitually wore. "Ah, but
you're
seeing it at its best. The Plains have their
hard
moments, and more of them than the soft.
Winter—aye,
that's the coldest face of all, with all
you see
out there sere and brown, and so barren all
the
life but the Clans and the herds sleeps beneath
the
surface in safe burrows. High summer is nearly
as
cruel, when the sun burns everything, when the
watercourses
shrink to tiny trickles, when you long
for a
handsbreadth of shade, and there is none to be
found.
But spring—oh, the Plains are lovely then,
as
lovely as She is when She is Maiden—and as
welcoming."
Tarma
gazed out at the blowing grasslands with a
faint
smile beginning to touch her thin lips.
"Ah,
I swear I am as sentimental as an old granny
with a
mouthful of tales of how golden the world
was
when she was young," she laughed, finally,
"and
none of this gets us down to the Plains. Fol-
low me,
and keep Rodi exactly in Kessira's foot-
steps.
It's a long way down from here if you slip."
They
followed a narrow trail along the face of the
drop-off,
a trail that switched back and forth con-
stantly
as it dropped, so that there was never more
than a
length or two from one level of the trail to
the
next below it. This was no bad idea, since it
meant
that if a mount and rider were to slide off
the
trail, they would have a fighting chance of
saving
themselves one or two levels down. But it
made
for a long ride, and all of it in the full sun,
with
nowhere to rest and no shade anywhere. Kethry
and her
mule were tired and sweat-streaked by the
time
they reached the bottom, and she could see
that
Tarma and Kessira were in no better shape.
But
there was immediate relief at the bottom of
the
cliff, in the form of a grove of alders and wil-
lows
with a cool spring leaping out of the base of
the
escarpment right where the trail ended. They
watered
the animals first, then plunged their own
heads
and hands into the tinglingly cold water,
washing
themselves clean of the itch of sweat and
dust.
Tarma
looked at the lowering sun, slicking back
wet
hair. "Well," she said finally, "We have a choice.
We can
go on, or we can overnight here. Which
would
you rather?"
"You
want the truth? I'd rather overnight here.
I'm
tired, and I ache; I'd like the chance to rinse all
of me
off. But I know how anxious you are to get
back to
your people."
"Some,"
Tarma admitted, "But . . . well, if we
quit
now, then made an early start of it in the
morning,
we wouldn't lose too much time."
"I
won't beg you, but—"
"All
right, I yield!" Tarma laughed, giving in to
Kethry's
pleading eyes.
Camp
was quickly made; Tarma went out with
bow and
arrow and returned with a young hare and
a pair
of grass-quail.
"This—this
is strange country," Kethry com-
mented
sleepily over the crackle of the fire. "These
grasslands
shouldn't be here, and I could swear
that
cliff wasn't cut by nature."
"The
gods alone know," Tarma replied, stirring
the
fire with a stick. It's possible, though. My peo-
ple
determined long ago that the Plains are the
bowl of
a huge valley that is almost perfectly circu-
lar,
even though it takes weeks to ride across the
diameter
of it. This is the only place where the rim
is that
steep, though. Everywhere else it's been
eroded
down, though you can still see the bound-
aries
if you know what to look for."
"Perfectly
circular—that hardly seems possible."
"You're
a fine one to say 'hardly possible,' " Tarma
teased.
"Especially since you've just crossed through
the
lowest reaches of the Pelagir Hills."
"I
what?" Kethry sat bolt upright, no longer sleepy.
"The
forest we just passed through—didn't you
know it
was called the Pelgiris Forest? Didn't the
name
sound awfully familiar to you?"
"I
looked at it on the map—I guess I just never
made
the connection."
"Well,
keep going north long enough and you're
in the
Pelagirs. My people have a suspicion that
the
Tale'edras are Shin'a'in originally, Shin'a'in who
went a
bit too far north and got themselves changed.
They've
never said anything, though, so we keep
our
suspicions to ourselves."
"The
Pelagirs ..." Kethry mused.
"And
just what are you thinking of? You surely
don't
want to go in there, do you?"
"Maybe."
"Warrior's
Oath! Are you mad? Do you know the
kind of
things that live up there? Griffins, fire-
birds,
colddrakes—things without names 'cause no
one
who's seen 'em has lived long enough to give
them
any name besides 'AAAARG!' "
Kethry
had to laugh at that. "Oh, I know," she
replied,
"Better than you. But I also know how to
keep us
relatively safe in there—"
"What
do you mean, 'us'?"
"—because
one of my order came from the heart
of the
Pelagirs. The wizard Gervase."
"Gervase?"
Tarma's jaw dropped. "The Lizard
Wizard?
You mean that silly song about the Wizard
Lizard
is true?"
"Truer
than many that are taken for pure fact.
Gervase
was a White Winds adept, because the
mage
that gifted him was White Winds—and it was
a good
day for the order when he made that gift.
Gervase,
being a reptile, and being a Pelagir change-
ling as
well, lived three times the span of a normal
sorcerer,
and we are notoriously long-lived. He be-
came
the High Adept of the order, and managed to
guide
it into the place it holds today."
"Total
obscurity," Tarma taunted.
"Oh,
no—protective obscurity. Those who need
us know
how to find us. Those we'd rather couldn't
find us
can't believe anyone who holds the power a
White
Winds Adept holds would ever be found ankle-
deep in
mud and manure, tending his own onions.
Let
other mages waste their time in politics and
sorcerer's
duels for the sake of proving that one of
them is
better—or at least more devious—than the
other.
We save our resources for those who are in
need of
them. There's this, too—we can sleep sound
of
nights, knowing nobody is likely to conjure an
adder into
one of our sleeping rolls."
"Always
provided he could ever find the place
where
you've laid that sleeping roll," Tarma laughed.
"All
right, you've convinced me."
"When
we find your people—"
"Hmm?"
"Well,
then what?"
"I'll
have to go before a Council of the Elders of
three
Clans, and present myself. They'll give me
back
the Clan banner, and—" Tarma stopped,
nonplussed.
"And—"
Kethry prompted.
"I
don't know; I hadn't thought about it. Liha'irden
has
been taking care of the herds; they'll get first
choice
of yearlings for their help. But—I don't know,
she'enedra;
the herds of an entire Clan are an awful
lot for
just two women to tend. My teacher told me
I
should turn mercenary ... and I'm not sure now
that he
meant it to be temporary."
"That
is how we've been living."
"I
suppose we could let Liha'irden continue as
caretakers,
at least until we're ready to settle down,
but—I
don't want to leave yet."
"I
don't blame you," Kethry teased, "After all,
you
just got here!"
"Well,
look—if we're going to really try and be-
come
mercenaries, and not just play at it to get
enough
money to live on, we're both going to have
to get
battlesteeds—and you are going to have to
learn
how to manage one."
Kethry
paled. "A battlesteed?" she faltered. "Me?
I've
never ridden anything livelier than a pony!"
"I
don't want you at my side in a fight on any-
thing
less than a Shin'a'in-bred and trained battle-
steed,"
Tarma said in a tone that brooked no
argument.
Kethry
swallowed, and bit her lip a little.
Tarma
grinned suddenly. "Don't go lathering your-
self,
she'enedra, we may decide to stay here, after
all,
and you can confine yourself to ponies and
mules
or your own two feet if that's what you
want."
"That
prospect," Kethry replied, "sounds more
attractive
every time you mention battlesteeds!"
Kethry
had no idea how she did it, but Tarma led
them
straight into the Liha'irden camp without a
single
false turning.
"Practice,"
she shrugged, when Kethry finally
asked,
"I know it looks all the same to you, but I
know
every copse and spring and hill of this end of
the
Plains. The Clans are nomadic, but we each have
territories;
Liha'irden's was next to Tale'sedrin's. I
expected
with two Clans' worth of herds they would
be
camped by one of the springs that divided the
two,
and pasturing in both territories. When the
Hawkbrother
told me which spring, I knew I was
right."
Tarma
in her costume of Kal'enedral created quite
a
stir—but Kethry was a wonder, especially to the
children.
When they first approached the camp,
Tarma
signaled a sentry who had then ridden in ahead
of
them. As they got nearer, more and more adoles-
cents
and older children came out on their saddle-
beasts,
forming a polite but intensely curious escort.
When
they entered the camp itself, the youngest
came
running out to see the visitors, voluble and
quite
audible in their surprise at the sight of Kethry.
"She
has grass-eyes!"
"And
sunset-hair!"
"Mata,
how come she's riding a mule? She doesn't
look
old or sick!"
"Is
she Sworn, too? Then why is she wearing
dust-colors?"
That from a tiny girl in blazing scar-
let and
bright blue.
"Is
she staying?" "Is she outClan?" "Is she from
the
magic place?"
Tarma
swung down off Kessira and took in the
mob of
children with a mock-stern expression. "What
is this
clamor? Is this the behavior of Shin'a'in?"
The
babble cut off abruptly, the children keeping
complete
silence.
"Better.
Who will take my mare and my she'-
enedra's
mule?"
One of
the adolescents handed his reins to a
friend
and presented himself. "I will, Sworn One."
"My
thanks," she said, giving him a slight bow.
He
returned a deeper bow, and took both animals
as soon
as Kethry had dismounted.
"Now,
will someone bring us to the Elders?"
"No
need," said a strong, vigorous voice from the
rear of
the crowd. "The Elders are here."
The
gathering parted immediately to allow a col-
lection
of four Shin'a'in through. One was a woman
of
middle years, with a square (for a Shin'a'in)
face,
gray-threaded hair, and a look of determina-
tion
about her. She wore bright harvest-gold breeches,
soft,
knee-high, fringed leather boots, a cream-colored
shirt
with embroidered sleeves, and a scarlet-and-
black
embroidered vest that laced closed in the
front.
By the headdress of two tiny antelope horns
she
wore, Kethry knew she was the Shaman of
Liha'irden.
The
second was a very old man, his face wrin-
kled so
that his eyes twinkled from out of the depths
of deep
seams, his hair pure white. He wore blue
felt
boots, embroidered in green; dark blue breeches,
a
lighter blue shirt, and a bright green vest embroi-
dered
with a pattern to match the boots, but in
blue.
The purely ornamental riding crop he wore at
his
belt meant he was the Clan Chief. He was far
from
being feeble; he walked fully erect with never
a hint
of a limp or a stoop, and though his steps
were
slow, they were firm.
Third
was a woman whose age lay somewhere
between
the Clan Chief and the Shaman. She wore
scarlet;
nothing but shades of red. That alone told
Kethry
that this was the woman in whose charge
lay
both the duties of warleader and of instructing
the
young in the use of arms.
Last
was a young man in muted greens, who
smiled
widely on seeing Tarma. Kethry knew this
one
from Tarma's descriptions; he was Liha'irden's
Healer
and the fourth Elder.
"Either
news travels on the wings of the birds, or
you've
had scouts out I didn't see," Tarma said,
giving
them the greeting of respect.
"In
part, it did travel with birds. The Hawk-
brothers
told us of your return," the Healer said.
"They
gave us time enough to bring together a
Council."
The
crowd parted a second time to let five more
people
through, all elderly. Tarma raised one eye-
brow in
surprise.
"I
had not expected to be met by a full Council,"
she
said, cautiously. "And I find myself wondering
if this
is honor, or something else."
"Kal'enedra,
I wish you to know that this was
nothing
of my doing," the Clan Chief of Liha'irden
replied,
his voice heavy with disapproval. "Nor
will my
vote be cast against you."
"Cast
against me? Me? For why?" Tarma flushed,
then
blanched.
"Tale'sedrin
is a dead Clan," one of the other
five
answered her, an old woman with a stubborn
set to
her mouth. "It only lacks a Council's pro-
nouncement
to make history what is already fact."
"I
still live! And while I live, Tale'sedrin lives!"
"A
Clan is more than a single individual, it is a
living,
growing thing," she replied, "You are Kal'ene-
dral;
you are barren seed by vow and by the War-
rior's
touch. How can Tale'sedrin be alive in you,
when
you cannot give it life?"
"Kal'enedra,
Tarma, we have no wish to take
from
you what is yours by right of inheritance," the
Warleader
of Liha'irden said placatingly. "The herds,
the
goods, they are still yours. But the Children of
the
Hawk are no more; you are vowed to the
Shin'a'in,
not to any single Clan. Let the banner be
buried
with the rest of the dead."
"No!"
Tarma's left hand closed convulsively on
the
hilt of her dagger, and her face was as white as
marble.
"Sooner than that I would die with them!
Tale'sedrin
lives!"
"It
lives in me." Kethry laid one restraining hand
on
Tarma's left and then stepped between her and
the
Council. "I am she'enedra to the Sworn One—
does
this not make me Shin'a'in also? I have taken
no vows
of celibacy; more, I am a White Winds
sorceress,
and by my arts I can prolong the period
of my
own fertility. Through me Tale'sedrin is a
living,
growing thing!"
"How
do we know the bond is a true one?" One
of the
group of five, a wizened old man, asked
querulously.
Kethry
held up her right hand, palm out, and
reached
behind her to take Tarma's right by the
wrist
and display it as well. Both bore silvered,
crescent-shaped
scars.
"By
the fact that She blessed it with Her own
fire,
it can be nothing but a true bond—" Tarma
began,
finding her tongue again.
"Sheka!"
the old man spat, interrupting her. "She
says
openly she is a sorceress. She could have pro-
duced a
seeming sign—could have tricked even you!"
"For
what purpose?"
"To
steal what outClan have always wanted; our
battlesteeds!"
Tarma
pulled her hand away from Kethry's and
drew her
sword at that venomous accusation.
"Kethry
has saved my life; she has bled at my
side to
help me avenge Tale'sedrin," Tarma spat,
holding
her blade before her in both hands, taking a
wide-legged,
defensive stance. "How dare you doubt
the
word of Kal'enedral? She is my true she'enedra
by a
Goddess-blessed vow, and you will retract
your
damned lie or die on my blade!"
Whatever
tragedy might have happened next was
forestalled
by the battle scream of a hawk high in
the sky
above Kethry. For some reason—she never
could
afterward say why—she flung up her arm as
Tarma
had to receive the hawk in the forest.
A
second scream split the air, and a golden me-
teor
plummeted down from the sun to land on
Kethry's
wrist. The vorcel-hawk was even larger
than
Moonsong's had been, and its talons bit into
Kethry's
arm as it flailed the air with its wings,
mantling
angrily at the Council. Pain raced up her
arm and
blood sprang out where the talons pierced
her,
for she had no vambrace such as Tarma wore.
Blood
was dying the sleeve of her robe a deep
crimson,
but Kethry had endured worse in her train-
ing as
a sorceress. She bit her lip to keep from
crying
out and kept her wrist and arm steady.
The
members of the Council—with the exception
of the
Clan Chief, the Shaman and the Healer of
Liha'irden—stepped
back an involuntary pace or
two,
murmuring.
Tarma
held out her arm, still gripping her blade
in her
right hand; the hawk lifted itself to the
proffered
perch, allowing Kethry to lower her
wounded
arm and clutch it to her chest in a futile
effort
to ease the pain. Need would not heal wounds
like
these; they were painful, but hardly life-
threatening.
She would have to heal them herself
when
this confrontation was over; for now, she
would
have to endure the agony in silence, lest
showing
weakness spoil Tarma's bid for the atten-
tion of
the Council.
"Is
this omen enough for you?" Tarma asked, in
mingled
triumph and anger. "The emblem of Tale'se-
drin
has come, the spirit of Tale'sedrin shows itself—-
and it
comes to Kethry, whom you call outClan and
deceiver!
To me, she'enedra!"
Again,
without pausing for second or third thoughts,
Kethry
reached out her wounded right hand and
caught
Tarma's blade-hand; the hawk screamed once
more,
and mantled violently. It hopped along Tarma's
arm
until it came to their joined hands, hands that
together
held Tarma's blade outstretched, pointing
at the
members of the Council. There it settled for
one
moment, one foot on each wrist.
Then it
screamed a final time, the sound of its
voice
not of battle, but of triumph, and it launched
itself
upward to be lost in the sun.
Kethry
scarcely had time to notice that the pain
of her
arm was gone, before the young Healer of
Liha'irden
was at her side with a cry of triumph of
his
own.
"You
doubt—you dare to doubt still?" he cried,
pulling
back a sleeve that was so soaked with blood
that
beneath it the flesh was surely pierced to the
bone.
"Look here, all of you—look!"
For
beneath Kethry's sleeve her arm was smooth
and
unwounded, without so much as a scar.
Five
The
gathering-tent was completely full; crowded
with
gaudily garbed Shin'a'in as it was, it would
have
been difficult to find space for even a small
child.
Tarma and Kethry had places of honor near
the
center and the firepit. Since the confrontation
with
the Council and their subsequent vindication,
their
credit had been very high with the Liha'irden.
"Keth—"
Tarma's elbow connected gently with
Kethry's
ribs.
"Huh?"
Kethry started; she'd been staring at the
fire,
more than half mesmerized by the hypnotic
music
three of her Liha'irden "cousins" had been
playing.
Except for her hair and eyes she looked as
Shin'a'in
as Tarma; weeks in the sun this summer
had
turned her skin almost the same golden color
as her
partner's, and she was dressed in the same
costume
of soft boots, breeches, vest and shirt, all
brightly
colored and heavily embroidered, that the
Shin'a'in
themselves wore. If anything, it was Tarma
who
stood out in her sober brown.
It had
been a good time, this past spring and
summer;
a peaceful time. And yet, Kethry was
feeling
a restlessness. Part of it had to be Need's
fault;
the sword wanted her about and doing. But
part of
it—part of it came from within her. And
Tarma
was often unhappy, too. She hadn't said any-
thing,
but Kethry could feel it.
"It's
your turn. What's it going to be; magic, or
tale?"
The
children, who had been lulled by the music,
woke
completely at that. Their young voices rose
above
the murmuring of their elders, all of them
trying
to have some say in the choice of entertain-
ment.
Half of them were clamoring for magic, half
for a
story.
These
autumn gatherings were anticipated all
year;
in spring there were the young of the herds to
guard
at night, in summer night was the time of
moving
the herds, and in winter it was too cold and
windy
to put up the huge gathering-tent. Children
were
greatly prized among the Clans, but normally
were
not petted or indulged—except here. During
the
gatherings, they were allowed to be a little
noisy;
to beg shamelessly for a particular treat.
This
was the first time Tarma had included her
she'enedra
in the circle of entertainment, and the
Liha'irden
were as curious about her as young cats.
"Does
it have to be one or the other?" Kethry
asked.
"Well,
no ..."
"All
right then," Kethry said, raising her voice to
include
all of them. "In that case, I'll tell you and
show
you a tale I learned when I was an apprentice
with
Melania of the White Winds Adepts." She
settled
herself carefully and spun out some of her
own
internal energy into an illusion-form. She held
out her
hands, which began to glow, then the thin
thread
of the illusion-form spun up away from them
like a
wisp of rising smoke. The tendril rose until it
was
just above the heads of the watching Shin'a'in,
then
the end thickened and began to rotate, draw-
ing the
rest of the glow up into itself until it was a
fat
globe dancing weightlessly up near the centerpole.
"This
is the tale as it was told me," Kethry be-
gan,
just as the Shin'a'in storytellers had begun,
while
the children oohed and whispered and the
adults
tried to pretend they weren't just as fasci-
nated
as the children. "Once in a hollow tree on
the top
of a hill, there lived a lizard."
Within
the globe the light faded and then bright-
ened,
and a scene came into focus; a stony, vetch-
covered
hill surmounted by a lightning-blasted tree
of
great girth, a tree that glowed ever so faintly. As
the
Clansfolk watched, a green and brown scaled
lizard
poked his head cautiously out of a crevice at
the
base of it; the lizard looked around, and appar-
ently
saw nothing, for the rest of him followed.
Now
even the adults gasped, for this lizard walked
erect,
like a man, and had a head more manlike
than
lizardlike.
"The
lizard's name was Gervase, and he was one
of the
hertasi folk that live still in the Pelagir Hills.
Hertasi
once were tree-lizards long, long ago, until
magic
changed them. Like humans, they can be of
any
nature; good or bad, kind or cruel, giving or
selfish.
But they all have one thing in common. All
are
just as intelligent as we are, and all were made
that
way long ago by magic wars. Now this Gervase
knew a
great deal about magic; it was the cause of
him
being the way he was, after all, and there was
so much
of it in the place where he lived that his
very
tree-home glowed at night with it. So it isn't
too
surprising that he should daydream about it,
now, is
it?"
The
scene changed; the children giggled, for the
lizard
Gervase was playing at being a wizard, just
as they
had often done, with a hat of rolled-up
birch
bark and a "wand" of a twisted branch.
"He
wanted very badly to be a wizard; he used to
dream
about how he would help those in trouble,
how he
would heal the sick and the wounded, how
he
would be so powerful he could stop wars with a
single
wave of his wand. You see, he had a very
kind
heart, and all he ever really wanted to do was
to make
the world a little better. But of course, he
knew he
couldn't; after all, he was nothing but a
lizard."
The
lizard grew sad-looking (odd how body-
language
could convey dejection when the crea-
ture's
facial expressions were nil), put aside his
hat and
wand, and crawled up onto a branch to sit
in the
sun and sigh.
"Then
one day while he was sunning himself, he
heard a
noise of hound and horse in the distance."
Now the
lizard jumped to his feet, balancing
himself
on the branch with his tail while he craned
his
neck to see as far as he could.
"While
he was trying to see what all the fuss was
about,
a man stumbled into his clearing."
A
tattered and bloody human of early middle age
fell
through the bushes, catching himself barely in
time to
keep from cracking his head open on the
rocks.
There was a gasp from the assembled Clans-
folk,
for the man had plainly been tortured. Kethry
had not
toned the illusion-narrative down much
from
the one she'd been shown; firstly, the chil-
dren of
the Clans were used to bloodshed, sec-
ondly,
it brought the fact home to all of them that
this
was a true tale.
The man
in the illusion was dark-haired and
bearded;
bruised and beaten-looking. And if one
looked
very carefully, it was possible to see that the
rags he
wore had once been a wizard's robe.
"Gervase
didn't stop to wonder about who the
man was
or why he was being chased; he only
knew
that no thinking creature should hunt an-
other
down like a rabbit with dogs and horses. He
ran to
the man—"
The
lizard slid down the tree trunk and scam-
pered
to the fallen wizard. Now it was possible to
see, as
he helped the man to his feet, that he was
very
close to being man-sized himself, certainly
the
size of a young adolescent. At first the man
was
plainly too dazed to realize what it was that
was
helping him, then he came to himself and did a
double
take. The shock and startlement on his face
made
the children giggle again—and not just the
children.
" 'Come,
human,' Gervase said. 'You must hide
in my
tree, it's the only place where you can be
safe. I
will keep the dogs away from you.' The
wizard—for
that was what he was—did not waste
any
breath in arguing with him, for he could clearly
hear
the dogs baying on his track."
The
lizard half-carried the man to the crevice in
the
tree; the man crawled inside. Gervase then ran
over to
a rock in the sun and arranged himself on it,
for all
the world like an ordinary (if overly-large)
lizard
basking himself.
"When
the dogs came over the hill, with the
hunters
close behind them, Gervase was ready."
As the
dogs and the horses burst through the
underbrush,
Gervase jumped high in the air, as if
startled
out of his wits. He dashed back and forth
on all
fours for a moment, then shot into the crack
in the
tree. There he remained, with his head stick-
ing
out, obviously hissing at the dogs that came to
bark
and snap at him and the man he was protect-
ing.
When one or two got too close, Gervase bit
their
noses. The dogs yelped and scuttled to the
rear of
the pack, tails between their legs, while the
entire
tent roared with laughter.
"Then
the man who had been hunting the wizard
arrived,
and he was not pleased. He had wanted
the
wizard to serve him; he had waited until the
wizard's
magics were either exhausted or nullified
by his
own magicians, then he had taken him pris-
oner
and tortured him. But our wizard had pre-
tended
to be unconscious and had escaped into the
Pelagirs.
The lord was so angry he had escaped
that he
had taken every hunter and dog he had and
pursued
him—but thanks to Gervase, he thought
now
that he had lost the trail."
The
plump and oily man who rode up on a sweat-
ing
horse bore no small resemblance to Wethes.
Tarma
smiled at that, as the "lord" whipped off his
hounds
and laid the crop across the shoulders of
his
fearful huntsman, all the while turning purple
with
rage. At length he wrenched his horse's head
around,
spurring it savagely, and led the lot out of
the
clearing. Gervase came out of hiding; so did the
wizard.
"The
wizard was very grateful. 'There is a great
deal of
magical energy stored in your home,' he
said.
'I can grant you nearly anything you want,
little
friend, if you'll let me use it. What way can I
reward
you?' Gervase didn't even have to think
about
it. 'Make me a man like you!' he said, 'I want
to be a
man like you!' Think carefully on what
you're
asking,' the mage said. 'Do you want to be
human,
or do you want to be a magician? You have
the
potential within you to be a great mage, but it
will
take all the magic of your tree to unlock it, and
even
then it will take years of study before you can
make
use of your abilities. Or would you rather
have
the form of a human? That, too, will take all
the
magic of your tree. So think carefully, and
choose.'
"
The
little lizard was plainly in a quandary; he
twitched
and paced, and looked up at the sky and
down at
the ground for help.
"Gervase
had a terrible decision, you see? If he
became
a human, people would listen to him, but
he
wouldn't have the magic to do what he wanted
to do.
But if he chose to have his Gifts unlocked,
where
would he find someone who would teach the
use of
them to a lizard? But finally, he chose. 'I
will be
a mage,' he said, 'and somewhere I will
find
someone willing to teach me, someone who
believes
that good inside is more important than
the way
I look on the outside.' "
The
wizard in the vision smiled and raised his
hands
over Gervase. The tree began to glow brightly;
then
the glow flowed off the tree and over the little
lizard,
enveloping him and sinking into him.
"
'You need look no further, little friend,' said
the
mage, when he'd done. Tor I myself will teach
you, if
you wish to be my apprentice.' "
Gervase
plainly went half-mad with joy; he
danced
comically about for a good several minutes,
then
dashed into the now-dark tree and emerged
again
with a few belongings tied into a cloth. To-
gether
he and the mage trudged down the path and
disappeared
into the forest. The glowing globe went
dark
then, and vanished slowly, dissolving like
smoke.
"And
that is the tale of how Gervase became an
apprentice
to Cinsley of White Winds. What hap-
pened
to him after that—is another tale."
The
applause Kethry received was as hearty as
ever
Tarma had gotten back in the days when her
voice
was the pride of the Clans.
"Well
done," Tarma whispered, when the atten-
tions
of those gathered had turned to the next to
entertain.
"I
was wondering if my doing magic would of-
fend
anyone—" Kethry began, then looked up, sud-
denly
apprehensive, seeing one of the Clansfolk
approaching
them.
And not
just any Shin'a'in, but the Shaman.
The
grave and imposing woman was dressed in
earthy
yellows this evening; she smiled as she ap-
proached
them, as if she sensed Kethry's apprehen-
sion.
"Peace, jel'enedra," she said quietly, voice barely
audible
to the pair of them over the noise of the
musicians
behind her. "That was well done."
She
seated herself on the carpeted floor beside
them.
"Then—you didn't mind my working magic?"
Kethry
replied, tension leaving her.
"Mind?
Li'sa'eer! Anything but! Our people sel-
dom see
outClan magic. It's well to remind them
that it
can be benign—"
"As
well as being used to aid the slaughter of an
entire
Clan?" Tarma finished. "It's well to remind
them
that it exists, period. It was that forgetfulness
that
lost Tale'sedrin."
"Hai,
you have the right of it. Jel'enedra. I sense a
restlessness
in you. More, I sense an unhappiness
in both
you and your oathkin."
"Is
it that obvious?" Kethry asked wryly. "I'm
sorry
if it is."
"Do
not apologize; as I said, I sense it in your
she'enedra
as well."
"Tarma?"
Kethry's eyebrows rose in surprise.
"Look,
I don't think this is where we should be
discussing
this," Tarma said uncomfortably.
"Will
you come to my tent, then, Kal'enedra; you
and
your oathsister?" The request was more than
half
command, and they felt almost compelled to
follow
her out of the tent, picking their way care-
fully
among the crowded Clansfolk.
Tarma
was curious to see what the Shaman's
dome-shaped
tent looked like within; she was
vaguely
disappointed to see that it differed very
little
from her own inside. There was the usual
sleeping
pad of sheepskins and closely-woven woolen
blankets,
the mule-boxes containing personal be-
longings
and clothing, two oil-lamps, and bright
rugs
and hangings in profusion. It was only when
Tarma
took a closer look at the hangings that she
realized
that they were something out of the ordinary.
They
seemed to be figured in random patterns,
yet
there was a sense of rhythm in the pattern—
like
writing.
The
Shaman seemed uncannily aware of what
Tarma
was thinking. "Hai, they are a written his-
tory of
our people; written in a language all their
own. It
is a language so concise that one hundred
years
of history can be contained in a single hanging."
Tarma
looked around the tent, and realized that
there
must be close to fifty of these hangings, lay-
ered
one upon the other. But—that meant five thou-
sand
years!
Again
the Shaman seemed to sense Tarma's
thoughts.
"Not so many years as you may think.
Some of
these deal with the history of peoples other
than
our own, peoples whose lives impinge upon
ours.
But we are not here to speak of that," the
Shaman
seated herself on her pallet, allowing Kethry
and
Tarma to find places for themselves on her
floor.
"I think the Plains grow too small for both of
you, he
shala?"
"There's
just no real need for me here," Kethry
replied.
"My order—well, we just can't stay where
there's
nothing for us to do. If some of the Clansfolk
had
magic gifts, or wanted to learn the magics that
don't
require a Gift, it would be different; I'd gladly
teach
them here. But no one seems interested, and
frankly,
I'm bored. Actually, it's a bit worse than
being
bored. I'm not learning anything. I'll never
reach
Adept status if I stay here."
"I
... don't fit here," Tarma sighed, "And I
never
thought I'd say that. Like Keth, I'd be happy
to
teach the children swordwork, but that would be
usurping
Shelana's position. I thought I could keep
busy
working with her, but—"
"I
venture to guess you found her scarcely more
challenging
than her pupils? Don't look so sur-
prised,
my child; I of all people should know what
your
Oath entails. Liha'irden has not had Kal'enedral
in its
midst for a generation, but I know what your
skill
is likely to be—and how it was acquired."
There
was silence for a moment, then Tarma
said
wryly, "Well, I wish you'd told me! The first
time
one of Them showed up, it was enough to stop
my
heart!"
"We
were a trifle short of time to be telling you
anything,
even had you been in condition to hear it.
So—tell
me more of your troubles."
"I
love my people, I love the Plains, but I have no
purpose
here. I am totally useless. I'd be of more use
raising
income for Tale'sedrin than I am now."
"Ah—you
have seen the problem with raising the
banner?"
"We're
only two; we can't tend the herds our-
selves.
We could bring in orphans and third and
fourth
children from Clans with far too many to
feed,
but we have no income yet to feed them our-
selves.
And frankly, we have no Name. We aren't
likely
to attract the kind of young men and women
that
would be my first choice without a Name."
"Would
you mind telling me what you two are
talking
about?" Kethry demanded, bewilderment
written
plainly on her face.
"Goddess—I'm
sorry, Keth. You've fallen in with
us so
well, I forget you aren't one of us."
"Allow
me," the Shaman interrupted gently.
"]el'enedra,
when you pledged yourself to providing
children
for Tale'sedrin, you actually pledged only
to
provide the Clan core—unless you know some
magic
to cause you to litter like a grass-runner!"
The
Shaman's smile was warm, and invited Tarma
as well
as Kethry to share the joke. "So; what will
be, is
that when you do find a mate and raise up
your
children, they must spend six months of the
year
here, shifting by one season each year so that
they
see our life in harsh times as well as easy.
When
they come of age, they will choose—to be
Shin'a'in
always, or to take up a life off of the
Plains.
Meanwhile, we will be sending out the call,
and
unmated jel'asadra of both sexes are free to
come to
your banner to make it their own. Orphans,
also.
Until you and your she'enedra declare the Clan
closed.
Do you see?"
"I
think so. Now what was the business about a
Name?"
"The
caliber of youngling you will attract will
depend
on the reputation you and Tarma have among
the
Clans. And right now—to be frank, you will
only
attract those with little to lose. Not the kind of
youngling
I would hope to rebuild a Clan with, if I
were
rebuilding Tale'sedrin."
"The
part about income was clear enough," Kethry
said
after a long moment of brooding. "We—we'd
either
have to sell some of the herd at a loss, or
starve."
"Are
you in condition to hear advice, the pair of
you?"
"I
think so," said Tarma.
"Leave
the Clans; leave the Plains. There is noth-
ing for
you here, you are wasting your abilities and
you are
wasting away of boredom. I think there is
something
that both of you wish to do—and I also
think
that neither of you has broached the subject
for
fear of hurting the other's feelings."
"I..."
Kethry faltered. "Well, there's two things,
really.
Since I've vowed myself to rebuilding Tale's-
edrin—that
needs a man, I'm afraid. I'll grant you
that I
could just go about taking lovers but ... I
want
something more than that, I want to care for
the
father of any children I might have. And frankly,
most of
the men here are terribly alien to me."
"Understandable,"
the Shaman nodded. "Laud-
able,
in fact. The Clan law holds that you, your
she'enedra,
and your children would comprise a true
Clan-seed,
but I think everyone would be happier if
you
chose a man as a long-term partner-mate, and
one
with whom you have more in common than one
of us.
And the other?"
"If
I ever manage to get myself to the stage of
Adept,
it's more-or-less expected of a White Winds
sorceress
that she start a branch of the school. But
to do
that, to attract pupils, I'd need two things. A
reputation,
and money."
"So
again, we come to those two things, as impor-
tant to
you as to the Clan."
"Well
that's odd, that you've been thinking of
starting
a school, because I've been playing with
the
same notion," Tarma said in surprise. "I've
been
thinking I enjoyed teaching Justin and Ikan so
much
that it would be no bad thing to have a school
of my
own, one that teaches something besides
swordwork."
"Teach
the heart as well as the mind and body?"
the
Shaman smiled. "Those are praiseworthy goals,
children,
and not incompatible with rebuilding
Tale'sedrin.
Let me make you this proposition; for
a fee,
Liha'irden will continue to raise and tend
your
herds—I think a tithe of the yearlings would
be
sufficient. Do you go out before the snows close
us in
and see if you cannot raise both the reputa-
tion
and the gold to build your schools and your
Clan.
If you do not succeed, you may always return
here,
and we will rebuild the harder way, but if
you dp,
well, the Clan is where the people are;
there
is no reason why Tale'sedrin should not first
ride in
outClan lands until the children are old
enough
to come raise the banner themselves. Will
that
satisfy your hungers?"
"Aye,
and then some!" Tarma spoke for both of
them,
while Kethry nodded, more excitement in
her eyes
than had been there for weeks.
* * *
Kessira
and Rodi remained behind with the herds
when
they left two weeks later. Now that they
were to
pursue their avocation of mercenary in
earnest,
they rode a matched pair of the famed
Shin'a'in
battlesteeds; horses they had picked out
and had
been training with since spring.
Battlesteeds
were the result of a breeding pro-
gram
that had been going on for as long as the
Shin'a'in
had existed as nomadic horsebreeders. Un-
like
most horsebreeding programs, the Shin'a'in had
not
been interested in looks, speed, or conforma-
tion.
They had bred for intelligence, above all else—
and
after intelligence, agility, strength, and en-
durance.
The battlesteeds were the highly success-
ful result.
Both
horses they now rode were mottled gray;
they
had thick necks and huge, ugly heads with
broad
foreheads. They looked like unpolished stat-
ues of
rough granite, and were nearly as tough.
They
could live very handily on forage even a mule
would
reject; they could travel sunrise to sunset at
a
ground-devouring lope that was something like a
wolfs
tireless tracking-pace. They could be trusted
with an
infant, but would kill on signal or on a
perceived
threat. They were more intelligent than
any
horse Kethry had ever seen—more intelligent
than a
mule, even. In their ability to obey and to
reason
they more resembled a highly trained dog
than a
horse, for they could actually work out a
simple
problem on their own.
This
was why Shin'a'in battlesteeds were so
famed—and
why the Clansfolk guarded them with
their
very lives. Between their intelligence and the
training
they received, battlesteeds were nearly the
equal
partners of those who rode them in a fight. It
was in
no small part due to the battlesteeds that
the
Shin'a'in had remained free and the Dhorisha
Plains
unconquered.
But
they were rare; a mare would drop no more
than
four or five foals in a lifetime. So no matter
how
tempting the price offered, no battlesteed would
ever be
found in the hands of anyone but a Shin'a'in
—or one
who was pledged blood-sib to a Shin'a'in.
These
horses had been undergoing a strenuous
course
of training for the past four years, and had
just
been ready this spring to accept permanent
riders.
They were trained to fight either on their
own or
with a rider—something Kethry was grate-
ful
for, since she was nothing like the kind of rider
Tarma
was. Tarma could stick to Hellsbane's back
like a
burr on a sheep; Kethry usually lost her seat
within
the first few minutes of a fight. But no
matter;
Ironheart would defend her quite as read-
ily on
the ground—and on the ground Kethry could
work
her magics without distraction.
Both
battlesteeds were mares; mares could be
depended
on to keep their heads no matter what
the
provocation, and besides, it was a peculiarity of
battlesteeds
that they tended to throw ten or fif-
teen
fillies to every colt. That meant colts were
never
gelded—and never left the Plains.
This
time when Tarma left the Liha'irden en-
campment,
it was with every living soul in it out-
side to
bid her farewell. The weather was perfect;
crisp
and cool without being too cold. The sky was
cloudless,
and there was a light frost on the ground.
"No
regrets?" Kethry said in an undertone as she
tightened
Ironheart's girth.
"Not
many," Tarma replied, squinting into the
thin
sunlight, then mounting with an absentminded
ease
Kethry envied. "Certainly not enough to worry
about."
Kethry
scrambled into her own saddle—Ironheart
was
nearly sixteen hands high, the tallest beast
she'd
ever ridden—and settled her robes about
herself.
"You
have some, though?" she persisted.
"I
just wish I knew this was the right course
we're
taking ... I guess," Tarma laughed at her-
self,
"I guess I'm looking for another omen."
"Lady
Bright, haven't you had enough—" Kethry
was
interrupted by a scream from overhead.
The
Shin'a'in about them murmured in excite-
ment
and pointed—for there, overhead, was a vorcel-
hawk. It
might have been the same one that had
landed
on Kethry's arm when Tarma had been chal-
lenged;
it was certainly big enough. This time, how-
ever,
it showed no inclination to land. Instead, it
circled
the encampment overhead, three times. Then
it sailed
majestically away northward, the very di-
rection
they had been intending to take.
As it
vanished into the ice-blue sky, Kethry tugged
her
partner's sleeve to get her attention.
"Do
me a favor, hmm?" she said in a voice that
shook a
trifle. "Stop asking for bloody omens!"
"Why
I ever let you talk me into this—" Tarma
stared
about them uneasily. "This place is even
weirder
than they claim!"
They
were deep into the Pelagir Hills—the true
Pelagirs.
There was a track they were following;
dry-paved,
it rang under their mares' hooves, and it
led
ever deeper into the thickly forested hills and
was
arrow-flight straight. To either side of them
lay the
landscape of dreams ... or maybe nightmare.
The
grass was the wrong color for fall. It should
have
been frost-seared and browning; instead it
was a
lush and juicy green. The air was warm; this
was
fall, it should have been cool, but it felt like
summer,
it smelled like summer. There were even
flowers.
Tarma disliked and distrusted this false,
magic-born
summer. It just wasn't right.
The
other plants besides the grass—well, some
were
normal (or at least they seemed normal), but
others
were not. Tarma had seen plants whose leaves
had
snapped shut on unwary insects, flowers whose
blooms
glowed when the moon rose, and thorny
vines
whose thorns dripped some unnamable liq-
uid.
She didn't know if they were hazardous, but
she
wasn't about to take a chance; not after she saw
the
bones and skulls of small animals littering the
ground beneath
a dead tree laden with such vines.
The
trees didn't bear thinking about, much. The
least
odd of them were as twisted and deformed as
if
they'd grown in a place of constant heavy winds.
The
others .. .
Well,
there was the grove they'd passed of lacy
things
that sang softly to themselves in childlike
voices.
And the ones that pulled away from them as
they
passed, or worse, actually reached out to touch
them,
feeling them like blind and curious old women.
And the
sapling that had torn up its roots and
shuffled
away last night when Tarma thought about
how
nice a fire would feel ...
And by
no means least, the ones like they'd spent
the
night in (though only after Kethry repeatedly
assured
her nervous partner that it was perfectly
harmless).
It had been hut-sized and hut-shaped,
with
only a thatch of green on the "roof—and
hollow.
And inside had been odd protrusions that
resembled
stools, a table, and bed-platforms to a
degree
that was positively frightening. A lovely lit-
tle trap
it would have made—Tarma slept rest-
lessly
that night, dreaming about the "door" growing
closed
and trapping them inside, like those poor
bugs
the flowers had trapped.
"I'm
at the stage where I could use a familiar,"
Kethry
replied, "I've explained all this before. Be-
sides,
a familiar will be able to take some of the
burden
of night-watch off both of us, particularly if
I can
manage to call a kyree."
Tarma
sighed.
"It's
only fair. I came with you to the Plains. I
took a
battlesteed at your insistence."
"Agreed.
But I don't have to like this place. Are
you
sure there's anything here you can call? We
haven't
seen so much as a mouse or a sparrow since
things
started looking weird."
"That's
because they don't want you to see them.
Relax,
we're going to stop soon; we're almost where
I
wanted to go."
"How
can you tell, if you've never been here?"
"You'll
see."
Sure
enough, Tarma did see. The paved road came
to a
dead end; at the end it widened out into a flat,
featureless
circle some fifty paces in diameter.
The
paved area was surrounded by yet another
kind of
tree, some sort of evergreen with thin, tan-
gled
branches that started a bit less than knee-high
and
continued straight up so that the trees were
like green
columns reaching to the sky. They had
grown
so closely together that it would have been
nearly
impossible for anything to force its way be-
tween
them. That meant there was only one way
for
anything to get into the circle—via the road.
"Now
what?"
"Find
someplace comfortable and make yourself
a camp
wherever you feel safest—although I can
guarantee
that as long as you stay inside the trees
you'll
be perfectly safe."
"Myself?
What about you?"
"Oh,
I'll be here, but I'll be busy. The process of
calling
a familiar is rather involved and takes a
long
time." Kethry dismounted in the exact center
of the
pavement and began unloading her saddle-
bags
from Ironheart's back.
"How
long is 'a long time'?" The paved area
really
took up only about half of the circular clear-
ing.
The rest was grass and scattered boulders, a
green
and lumpy rim surrounding the smooth gray
pavement.
There was plenty of windfall lying around
the
grassy area, most of it probably good and dry,
dry
enough to make a fire. And there was a nice
little
nook at the back of the circle, a cluster of
boulders
that would make a good firepit. Somehow
Tarma
didn't want even the slightest chance of fire
escaping
from her. Not here. Not after that walking
sapling;
no telling what its mother might think
about
fire, or the makers of fire.
"Until
sunset tomorrow night."
"What?"
"I
told you, it's very complicated. Surely you can
find
something to do with yourself ..."
"Well,
I'm going to have to, aren't I? I'm cer-
tainly
not going to leave you alone out here."
Kethry
didn't bother to reply with anything more
than an
amused smile, and began setting up her
spell-casting
equipment. Tarma, grumbling, took both
mares
over to the side of the paved area and gave
them
the command to stay on the grass, unsaddled
and
unharnessed them, and began grooming them
to
within an inch of their lives.
When
she slipped a look over at her partner,
Kethry
was already seated within a sketched-in
circle,
a tiny brazier emitting a spicy-scented smoke
beside
her. Her eyes were closed and from the way
her
lips were moving she was chanting. Tarma
sighed
with resignation, and hauled the tack over
to the
area where she intended to camp.
It had
lacked about a candlemark to sunset when
they'd
reached this place; by the time Tarma fin-
ished
setting up camp to her liking, the sun was
down
and she was heartily glad of the fire she'd lit.
It
wasn't that it was cold ...
No, it
was the things outside that circle of trees
that
made her glad of the warm glow of the flames.
The
warm earthly glow of the flames. There were
noises
out there, sounds like she'd never heard be-
fore.
The mares moved over to the fireside of their
own
volition, and were not really interested in the
handfuls
of grain Tarma offered them. They stood,
one on
either side of her, in defensive posture, ears
twitching
nervously.
It
sounded like things were gathering just on the
other
side of the trees. There was a murmuring
that
was very like something speaking, except that
no
human throat ever made burbling and trilling
sounds
quite like those Tarma heard. There were
soft
little whoops, and watery chuckles. Every now
and
then, a chorus of whistlers exchanged responses.
And as
if that weren't enough—
Through
the branches Tarma could see amor-
phous
patches of glow, patches that moved about.
As the
moon rose above the trees, she unsheathed
her
sword and dagger, and held them across her
lap.
"Child—"
Tarma
screeched and jumped nearly out of her
skin.
She was
on her feet without even thinking about
rising,
and whipped around to face—
Her
instructor, who had come with the first
moonlight.
"You—you—sadist!"
she gasped, trying to get her
heart
down out of her throat. "You nearly fright-
ened me
to death!"
"There
is nothing for you to fear. What is outside
the
trees is curious, no more."
"And
I'm the Queen of Valdemar."
"I
tell you truly. This is a place where no evil
can
bear to tread; look about you—and look to your
she'enedra."
Tarma
looked again, and saw that the mares had
settled,
their heads down, nosing out the last of the
grain
she'd given them. She saw that the area of the
pavement
was glowing—that what she'd mistaken
for a
soft silver reflection of the moonlight was in
fact
coming from within the paving material. Nor
was
that all—the radiance was brighter where
Kethry
sat oblivious within her circle, and blended
from
the silver of the pavement into a pale blue
that
surrounded her like an aura. And the trees
themselves
were glowing—something she hadn't no-
ticed,
being intent on the lights on the other side—a
healthy,
verdant green. All three colors she knew
from
Kethry's chance-made comments were associ-
ated
with life-magic, positive magic.
And now
the strange sounds from outside their
enclosure
no longer seemed so sinister, but rather
like
the giggling and murmuring of a crowd of curi-
ous
small children.
Tarma
relaxed, and shrugged. "Well, I still don't
exactly
like this place ..."
"But
you can see it is not holding a threat, half"
"Hai."
she placed the point of her blade on the
pavement
and cocked her head at him. "Well, I
haven't
much to do, and since you're here . . ."
"You
are sadly in need of practice," he mocked.
"Shesti!"
she scoffed back, bringing her sword up
into
guard position, "I'm not that badly off!"
By day
the circle of trees no longer seemed quite
so
sinister, especially after Tarma's instructor had
worked
her into sweat-dripping exhaustion. When
dawn
came—and he left—she was ready to drop
where
she stood and sleep on the hard pavement
itself.
But the
mares needed more than browse and
grain,
they needed water. There was no water here
save
what they'd brought with them. And Tarma
dared
not truly sleep while Kethry remained en-
wrapped
in spell-casting.
So when
the first hint of the sun reddened the
sky,
she took Hellsbane with her and cautiously
poked
her nose out of the sheltered area, looking for
a hint
of water.
There
was nothing stirring outside the circle of
trees;
the eerie landscape remained quiet. But when
Tarma
looked at the dirt at the foot of the trees she
saw
tracks, many tracks, and few of them were
even
remotely identifiable.
"Kulath
etaven," she said softly to her mare, "Find
water."
Hellsbane
raised her head and sniffed; then took
two or
three paces to the right. Tarma placed one
hand on
the mare's shoulder; Hellsbane snorted,
rubbed
her nose briefly against Tarma's arm, then
proceeded
forward with more confidence.
She
headed for a tangle of vines—none of which
moved,
or had bones beneath them—and high, rank
bushes,
all of which showed the familiar summery
verdancy.
As the pair forced their way in past the
tangle,
breaking twigs and bruising leaves, Tarma
found
herself breathing in an astringent, mossy scent
with a
great deal of pleasure. The mare seemed to
enjoy
the odor too, though she made no move to
nibble
the leaves.
There
was a tiny spring at the heart of the tan-
gle,
and Tarma doubted she'd have been able to
locate
it without the mare's help. It was hardly
more
than a trickle, welling up from a cup of moss-
covered
stone, and running a few feet, only to van-
ish
again into the thirsty soil. The mare slurped up
the
entire contents of the cup in a few swallows,
and had
to wait for it to fill again several times
before
she'd satisfied her thirst.
It was
while she was awaiting Hellsbane's satia-
tion
that Tarma noticed the decided scarcity of
insects
within this patch of growth. Flies and the
like
had plagued them since they entered the
Pelagirs;
as a horsewoman, Tarma generally took
them
for granted.
There
were no flies in here. Nor any other in-
sects.
Curious . ..
When
the mare was finished, Tarma guided her
out
backward, there being no room to turn her
around;
it seemed almost as if the bushes and vines
were
willing to let them inflict a limited amount of
damage
in order to reach the water, but resisted
any
more than that. And as soon as they were clear
of the
scent of the crushed vegetation, the flies
descended
on Hellsbane again.
An idea
occurred to her; she backtracked to the
bushes,
and got a handful of the trampled leaves
and
rubbed them on the back of her hand. She
waited
for some sort of reaction; rash, burning,
itching—nothing
happened. Satisfied that the vege-
tation
at least wasn't harmful, she rubbed it into
the
mare's shaggy hide. It turned her a rather odd
shade
of gray-green, but the flies wouldn't even
land on
her.
Very
pleased with herself, Tarma watered Iron-
heart
and repeated the process on her. By the time
she'd
finished, the sun was well up, and she was
having
a hard time keeping her eyes open. She was
going
to have to get some rest, at least.
But
that was another advantage of having battle-
steeds.
She
loosed Hellsbane and took her to the en-
trance
of the circle. "Guard," she said, shortly. The
mare
immediately went into sentry-mode—and it
would
take a determined attacker indeed to get
past
those iron-shod hooves and wicked teeth. Now
all she
needed to keep alert for was attack from
above.
She
propped herself up with their packs and
saddles,
and allowed herself to fall into a half-doze.
It
wasn't as restful as real sleep, but it would do.
When
hunger finally made further rest impossi-
ble, it
was getting on to sunset—and Kethry was
showing
signs of breaking out of trance.
She'd
carefully briefed Tarma on what she'd need
to do;
Tarma shook herself into full alertness, and
rummaged
in Kethry's pack for high-energy rations.
Taking
those and her waterskin, she sat on her
heels
just outside of the inscribed circle, and waited.
She
didn't have to wait long; Kethry's eyes opened
almost
immediately, and she sagged forward with
exhaustion,
scarcely able to make the little dismiss-
ing
motion that broke the magic shield about her.
Tarma
was across the circle the instant she'd done
so, and
supported her with one arm while she drank.
Kethry
looked totally exhausted; mentally as well
as
physically. She was pale as new milk, and scarcely
had the
energy to drink, much less speak. Tarma
helped
her to her feet, then half-carried her to the
tiny
campsite and her bedroll.
Kethry
had no more than touched her head to her
blankets
than she was asleep. She slept for several
hours,
well past moonrise, then awoke again with
the
first appearance of the lights and noises that
had so
disturbed Tarma the night before.
"They
seem to be harmless," Tarma began.
"They
are. That's not what woke me," Kethry
croaked
from a raw throat. "It's coming—what I
called—"
"What
did you call, anyway?"
After a
swallow or two of water, Kethry was
better
able to speak. "A kyree—they're a little like
wolves,
only bigger; they also have some of the
physical
characteristics of the big grass-cats, re-
tractile
claws, that sort of thing. They're also like
Gervase's
folk; they're human-smart and have some
gift
for magic. They'd probably do quite well for
themselves
if they had hands instead of paws—well,
that's
one reason why some of them are willing to
become
mage-familiars. Another is gender. Or lack
of."
"Get'ke?"
"Kyree
throw three kinds of cubs—male, female,
and
neuter. The neuters really don't have much to
do in
pack-life, so they're more inclined to wander
off and
see the world."
Kethry
broke off, staring over Tarma's shoulder.
Tarma
turned.
In the
opening of the tree-circle where the road
turned
into the paved "court" was—something. It
looked
lupine—it had a wolf-type head, anyway.
But it
was so damn big!
Kethry
pulled herself to her feet and half-stumbled
to the
entrance. "If you come in the Name of the
Powers
of Light, enter freely," she croaked, "If not,
be you
gone."
The
thing bowed its head gravely, and padded
into the
circle. There it stood, looking first at Kethry,
then at
Tarma; deliberately, measuringly.
I bond
to you, said a deep voice in the back of
Tarma's
head.
Once
again she nearly jumped out of her skin.
"Li'sa'eer!"
she choked, backing a few paces away
from
the thing. "What?"
I bond
to you, warrior. We are alike, we two; both
warriors
for the Light, both—celibate— The voice in
her
head had a feeling of amusement about the
choice
of the last word. It is fit we be soul-bonded.
Besides,
Lady of Power—he turned to look at Kethry,
—you do
not need me. You have the spirit-sword. But
you—he
turned his huge eyes back to Tarma,—YOU
need
me.
"She'enedra,"
Tarma said tightly, keeping a firm
grip on
her nerves, "What in hell am I supposed to
do? He
says he wants me!"
"Oh,
my Lady Bright—what a bloody mess! It
could
only happen to me! Give in," Kethry stag-
gered
to her bedroll and half-collapsed into it, laugh-
ing
weakly. "A day and a night of spell-casting, and
what
happens? My familiar decides he'd rather
bond to
my partner! Lady Bright—if it weren't so
damned
funny I think I'd kill you both!"
"But
what am I supposed to do?"
You
could try talking to me.
Tarma
gulped, and approached the beast cau-
tiously.
It sat at its ease, tongue lolling out in a kind
of
grin. She could sense his amusement at her ap-
prehension
in the back of her mind. Curiously, that
seemed
to make her fear vanish.
"Well,"
she said at last, after several long mo-
ments
of trying to think of something appropriate.
"I'm
Tarma."
And
I—am Warrl. The creature lay down on the
pavement,
and cocked its head to one side. Its—no,
his; it
might have been a "neuter" but there was a
distinctly
masculine feeling to him—his eyes caught
the
moonlight and reflected greenishly.
"I'm
not quite sure what I should do about you,"
she
confessed. "I mean I'm no mage—what's the
next
move?"
You
might start by offering me something to eat,
Warrl
said, I've come a long way, and I'm hungry. Do
I smell
meat-bars? There was something in his men-
tal
sending that was so like a child begging for a
sweet
that Tarma had to laugh.
"You
do, my friend," she replied, rising to get
one for
him. "And if you like them as much as I
dislike
them, I have the feeling we're going to suit
each
other very well indeed!"
Six
They
were fortunate; almost as soon as they
emerged
from the Pelagirs, they were able to
find a
short-term job as escorts. A scrawny, middle-
aged
man sought them at their inn within hours of
when
they had posted themselves at the Mercenar-
ies'
Guild and paid their fees.
"You'll
be providing protection for my new bride,"
their
employer, an hereditary knight who didn't
look
capable of lifting his ancestral blade, much
less
using it, told Tarma. "I will be remaining here
for a
month or more to consolidate my interests
with
Darthela's father, but I wish her to make the
journey
to Fromish now, before winter weather sets
in."
"Are
we to be the only guards?" Tarma asked, a
little
doubtfully. She shifted on the wooden bench
uncomfortably,
and wished Kethry was here in-
stead
of visiting the tiny White Winds enclave she'd
ferreted
out. She could have used the sorceress'
quick
wits right now.
"I'm
afraid so," he replied with a sheepish smile.
"To
be brutally frank, Swordlady, my house is in
rather
impoverished condition at the moment. I
couldn't
afford to take any of my servants away
from
the harvesting to serve as guards for her, and
I can't
afford to hire more than the two of you. And
before
you ask, my bride's retinue is confined to
one
handmaiden. Her dower is to be in things less
tangible,
but ultimately more profitable, than im-
mediate
cash."
Tarma
decided that she liked him. The smile had
been
genuine, and his frankness with a pair of
hirelings
rather touching.
Of
course, she thought wryly, that could just be to
convince
us that the fair Darthela won't have much
with
her worth stealing.
"I'll
tell you what we can do to narrow the odds
against
us a bit," Tarma offered. "I can arrange to
set out
a little later than you asked us, so that we're
about
half a day behind that spice-trader. Anybody
looking
for booty is likely to go for him and miss
us."
"But
what about wild beasts?" he asked, looking
concerned.
"Won't they have been attracted to the
campsites
by the trader's leavings?"
Tarma's
estimation of him rose a notch. She had
been
picturing him as so likely to have his nose in a
book
all the time that he had little notion of the
realities
of the road.
"Wild
beasts are the one problem we won't have,"
she
replied. "You're getting a bargain, you know—
you
aren't actually getting two guards, you're get-
ting
three."
At her
unspoken call, Warrl inched out from un-
der the
bar where he'd been drowsing, stretched
lazily,
and opened enormous jaws in a yawn big
enough
to take in a whole melon. Sir Skolte re-
garded
the kyree with astonishment and a little
alarm.
"Bright
Lord of Hosts!" he exclaimed, inching
away a
little. "What is that?"
"My
partner calls him a kyree, and his name is
Warrl."
"A
Pelagir Hills kyree? No wonder you aren't
worried
about beasts!" The knight rubbed a hand
across
his balding pate, and looked relieved. "I am
favored
by your acquaintance, Sirrah Warrl. And
grateful
for your services."
Warrl
nodded graciously and returned to his rest-
ing
place beneath the bar. This close to the Hills,
the
innmaster and his help were fairly familiar
with
the kyree kind—and when Warrl had helped to
break
up a bar-fight within moments of the trio's
arrival,
he had earned their gratitude and a place of
honor.
And no few spiced sausages while he rested
there.
Tarma
was pleased with the knight's ready ac-
ceptance
of her companion, and finalized the trans-
action
with him then and there. By the time Kethry
returned,
she had already taken care of supplies for
the
next day.
They
appeared at the house of the bride's father
precisely
at noon the next day, ready to go. Sir
Skolte
met them at the gate—which was something
of a
surprise to Kethry.
"I—rather
expected you would send a servant to
wait
for us," Kethry told him, covering her confu-
sion
quickly, but not so quickly that Tarma didn't
spot
it.
"Darthela
has been insisting that I 'properly in-
troduce'
you," he replied, a rather wry smile on his
thin
lips. "That isn't the sort of thing one leaves to
a
servant. I confess that she has been most eager to
meet
you."
Tarma
caught her partner's quizzical glance and
shrugged.
The odd
comment was explained when they fi-
nally
met the fair young bride; she entered the
room
all flutters and coquettishness, which affecta-
tions
she dropped as soon as she saw that her es-
corts
were female. She made no effort to hide her
disappointment,
and left "to pack" within moments.
"Now
I see why you hired us instead of that pair
of
Barengians," Tarma couldn't help but say, sti-
fling
laughter.
Sir
Skolte shrugged eloquently. "I won't deny I'm
a bit
of a disappointment for her," he replied cyni-
cally.
"But beggars can't be choosers. She's the sixth
in a
set of seven daughters, and her father was so
pleased
at being able to make trade bargains with
me in
lieu of dower that he almost threw her at me.
Fortunately,
my servants are all uglier than I am."
The
look in his eye told Tarma that Darthela was
going
to have to be a great deal cleverer than she
appeared
to be if she intended to cuckold this fellow.
But
then again . ..
"Tell
me, are folk around here acquainted with
the
tale of 'Bloody Carthar's Fourteen Wives?' Or
'Meralis
and the Werebeast?' "
He
shook his head. "I would say I know most of
the
tales we hear in these parts by heart, and those
don't
sound familiar."
"Then
we'll see if we can't incline Darthela's
mind a
bit more in an appropriate direction," Kethry
said,
taking her cue from the two stories Tarma
had
mentioned. "We'll be a week in traveling, and
stories
around the campfire are always welcome,
no?"
"What—oh,
I see!" Sir Skolte began to laugh heart-
ily.
"Now, more than ever, I am very glad to have
met
you! Ladies, if you are ever looking for work
again,
I shall give you the highest recommendations—
especially
to aging men with pretty young wives!"
That
took them from Lythecare to Fromish, on
the
eastbound roads. In Fromish they ran into old
friends—Ikan
and Justin.
"Hey-la!
Look who we have here!" Tarma would
have
known that voice in a mob; in the half-empty
tavern
it was as welcome as a word from the tents.
She
leapt up from her seat to catch Justin's fore-
arm in
a welcoming clasp. And not more than a
pace
behind him came Ikan.
They
got themselves sorted out, and the two new-
comers
gave their orders to the serving boy before
settling
at Tarma's table.
"Well,
what brings you ladies to these benighted
parts?"
Ikan asked, shaking hair out of his guileless
eyes.
"Last we saw, you were headed south."
"Looking
for work," Tarma replied shortly. "We
did get
home but ... well, we decided, what with
one
thing and another, to go professional. Even got
our
Guild tags." She pulled the thong holding the
little
copper medal out of her tunic to display it for
them.
"I
thought you two didn't work in winter," Kethry
said in
puzzlement.
"It
isn't winter yet, at least not according to our
employers.
Last caravan of the season. Say—we
might
be able to do each other a favor, though."
Justin
eyed the two women with speculation. "You
say
you're Guild members now? Lord and Lady,
the
Luck is with us, for certain!"
"Why?"
"We've
got two guards down with flux—and it
does
not look good. We want out of here before the
snows
close in, but we daren't go shorthanded and
I don't
trust the scum that's been turning up, hop-
ing to
get hired on in their places. But you two—"
"Three,"
Tarma corrected, as Warrl shambled
out of
the kitchen where he'd been enjoying meat
scraps
and the antics of the innkeeper's two children.
"Hey-la!
A kyree!" Ikan exclaimed in delight.
"Even
better!"
"Shieldbrother,"
Justin lounged back in his chair
with an
air of complete satisfaction, "I will never
doubt
your conjuring of the Luck again. And to-
night
the drink's on me!"
The
nervous jewel merchants were only too
pleased
to find replacements that could be vouched
for by
their most trusted guard-chiefs. They were
even
happier when they learned that one of the two
was
Shin'a'in and the other a mage. Kethry more
than
earned her pay on that trip, preventing a thief-
mage
from substituting bespelled glass for the ru-
bies
and sapphires they had just traded for.
They
left the merchants before they returned to
Mornedealth,
Kethry not particularly wanting to
revisit
quite yet. Ikan and Justin did their best to
persuade
them otherwise, but to no avail.
"You
could stay at the Broken Sword. Tarma
could
keep drilling us like she did last year," Justin
coaxed.
"And Cat would dearly love to see you.
She's
set herself up as a weapons merchant."
"No
... I want things to cool down a little more,"
Kethry
said. "And frankly, we need to earn our-
selves
a reputation and a pretty good stake, and we
won't
do that sitting around in Mornedealth all
winter."
"You,"
Ikan put in, a speculative gleam in his
eyes,
"have got more in mind than earning the kind
of cozy
docket we have. Am I right, or no?"
"You're
right," Tarma admitted.
"So?
What've you got in mind?"
"Schools—or
rather a school, with both of us teach-
ing
what we're best at."
"You'll
need more than a good stake and a rep—
you'll
need property. Some kind of big building,
stables,
maybe a real indoor training area—and a
good
library, warded research areas, and neighbors
who
aren't too fussy about what you conjure."
"Gods,
I hadn't thought that far, but you're right,"
Tarma
said with chagrin. "Sounds as if what we
want is
on the order of a manor house."
"Which
means you'd better start thinking in terms
of
working for a noble with property to grant once
you get
that rep. A crowned head would be best."
Justin
looked at both of them soberly. "That's not
as
unlikely as you might think; a combination like
you two
is rare even among men; sword and magic
in
concert are worth any ten straight swordsmen,
however
good. Add to it that you're female—think
about
it. Say you've got a monarch needing body-
guards;
who'd check out his doxy and her servant ?
There's
a lot of ways you could parlay yourself into
becoming
landed, and Keth's already ennobled."
"But
for now . .." Kethry said.
"For
now you've got to earn that rep. Just bear in
mind
that what you're going after is far from
impossible."
"Can
we—ask you for advice now and again?"
Kethry
asked. "Justin, you sound to me as if you've
figured
some of this out for yourselves."
"He
did," his partner grinned. "Or rather, we
did.
But we decided that it was too big a field for
the two
of us to hope to plow. So we settled for
making
ourselves indispensable to the Jewel Mer-
chant's
Guild. Fact is, we've also been keeping our
eyes
out for somebody like you two. We aren't going
to be
young forever, and we figured on talking some-
body
into taking us on at their new school as in-
structors
before we got so old our bones creaked
every
time we lunged." He winked at Kethry.
Tarma
stared. "You really think we have a chance
of
pulling this off?"
"More
than a chance, nomad—I'd lay money on
it. I'm
sure enough that I haven't even tried luring
your
lovely little partner into my bed—I don't make
love to
prospective employers."
"Well!"
Tarma was plainly startled. "I will be
damned
..."
"I
hope not," Justin chuckled, "or I'll have to
find
another set of prospects!"
They
got a commission with another caravan to
act as
guards—courtesy of their friends. On their
way
they detoured briefly when Need called them
to rid
a town of a monster, a singularly fruitless
effort,
for the monster was slain by a would-be
"hero"
the very day they arrived.
After
that they skirmished with banditti and a
half-trained
magician's ex-apprentice who thought
robbing
caravans was an easier task than memoriz-
ing
spells. Kethry "slapped his hands," as she put
it, and
left him with a geas to build walls for the
temple
of Sun-Lord Resoden until he should learn
better.
When
the caravan was safely gotten home, they
found
an elderly mage of the Blue Mountains school
who
wanted some physical protection as he returned
to his
patron, and was delighted with the bonus of
having
a sorceress of a different discipline to con-
verse
with.
During
these journeys Tarma and Warrl were
learning
to integrate themselves as a fighting team;
somewhat
to Tarma's amazement, her other-worldly
teachers
were inclined to include him whenever he
chose.
After her initial shock—and, to some extent,
dismay—she
had discovered that they did have a
great
deal in common, especially in attitudes. He
was,
perhaps, a bit more cynical than she was, but
he was
also older. He never would admit exactly
how old
he was; when Tarma persisted, he seized
one of
her hands in his powerful jaws and mind-
sent,
My years are enough, mindmate, to suffice. She
never
asked again.
But now
they had fallen on dry times; they had
wound
up on the estate of Viscount Hathkel, with
no one
needing their particular talents and no cit-
ies
nearby. The money they had earned must now
be at
least partially spent in provisioning them to
someplace
where they were likelier to find work.
That
was the plan, anyway—until Need woke
from
her apparent slumbers with a vengeance.
Tarma
goaded her gray Shin'a'in warsteed into
another
burst of speed, urging her on with hand
and
voice (though not spur—never spur; that would
have
been an insult the battlesteed would not toler-
ate) as
if she were pursued by the Jackels of Dark-
ness.
It had been more than long enough since she
had
first become Kal'enedral for her hair to have
regrown—now
her long, ebony braids streamed be-
hind
her; close enough to catch one of them rode
Kethry.
Kethry's own mare was a scant half a length
after
her herd-sister.
Need
had left Kethry almost completely alone
save
for that one prod almost from the time they'd
left
the Liha'irden camp. Both of them had nearly
forgotten
just what bearing her could mean. They
had
been reminded this morning, when Need had
woken
Kethry almost before the sun rose, and had
been
driving the sorceress (and so her blood-oath
sister
as well) in this direction all day. At first it
had
been a simple pull, as she had often felt before.
Tarma
had teased, and Kethry had grumbled; then
they
had packed up their camp and headed for the
source.
Kethry had even had time enough to sum-
mon a
creature of the Ethereal Plane to scout and
serve
as a set of clairvoyant "eyes" for them. But
the
call had grown more urgent as the hours passed,
not
less so—increasing to the point where by mid-
afternoon
it was actually causing Kethry severe
mental
pain, pain that even Tarma was subject to,
through
the oath-bond. That was when they got
Warrl
up onto the special carry-pad they'd rigged
for him
behind Tarma's saddle, and prepared to
make
some speed. They urged their horses first
into a
fast walk, then a trot, then as sunset neared,
into a
full gallop. By then Kethry was near-blind
with
mental anguish, and no longer capable of even
directing
their Ethereal ally, much less questioning
it.
Need
would not be denied in this; Moonsong
k'Vala,
the Hawkbrother Adept they had met, had
told
them nothing less than the truth. Kethry was
soul-bonded
to the sword, just as surely as Tarma
was
bonded to her Goddess or Warrl to Tarma.
Kethry
was recalling now with some misgiving that
Moonsong
had also said that she had not yet found
the
limit to which it would bind itself to her—and
if this
experience was any indication of the future,
she
wasn't sure she wanted to.
All
that was of any importance at the moment
was
that there was a woman within Need's sensing
range
in grave peril—peril of her life, by the way
the
blade was driving Kethry. And they had no
choice
but to answer the call.
Tarma
continued to urge Hellsbane on; they were
coming
to a cultivated area, and surely their goal
couldn't
be far. Ahead of them on the road they
were
following loomed a walled village; part and
parcel
of a manor-keep, a common arrangement in
these
parts. The gates were open; the fields around
empty
of workers. That was odd—very odd. It was
high
summer, and there should have been folk out
in the
fields, weeding and tending the irrigation
ditches.
There was no immediate sign of trouble,
but as
they neared the gates, it was plain just who
the
woman they sought was—
Bound
to a scaffold high enough to be visible
through
the open gates, they could see a young,
dark-haired
woman dressed in white, almost like a
sacrificial
victim. The last rays of the setting sun
touched
her with color—touched also the heaped
wood
beneath the platform on which she stood,
making
it seem as if her pyre already blazed up.
Lining
the mud-plastered walls of the keep and
crowding
the square inside the gate were scores of
folk of
every class and station, all silent, all waiting.
Tarma
really didn't give a fat damn about what
they
were waiting for, though it was a good bet that
they
were there for the show of the burning. She
coaxed
a final burst of speed out of her tired mount,
sending
her shooting ahead of Kethry's as they
passed
the gates, and bringing her close in to the
platform.
Once there, she swung Hellsbane around
in a
tight circle and drew her sword, placing her-
self
between the woman on the scaffold and the
men
with the torches to set it alight.
She
knew she was an imposing sight, even cov-
ered
with sweat and the dust of the road; hawk-
faced,
intimidating, ice-blue eyes glaring. Her
clothing
alone should tell them she was nothing to
fool
with—it was obviously that of a fighting mer-
cenary;
plain brown leathers and brigandine armor.
Her
sword reflected the dying sunlight so that she
might
have been holding a living flame in her hand.
She
said nothing; her pose said it all for her.
Nevertheless,
one of the men started forward,
torch
in hand.
"I
wouldn't," Kethry was framed in the arch of
the
gate, silhouetted against the fiery sky; her mount
rock-still,
her hands glowing with sorcerous energy.
"If
Tarma doesn't get you, I will."
"Peace,"
a tired, gray-haired man in plain, dusty-
black
robes stepped forward from the crowd, hold-
ing his
arms out placatingly, and motioned the
torch-bearer
to give way. "Istan, go back to your
place.
Strangers, what brings you here at this time
of all
times?"
Kethry
pointed—a thin strand of glow shot from
her
finger and touched the ropes binding the cap-
tive on
the platform. The bindings loosed and fell
from
her, sliding down her body to lie in a heap at
her
feet. The woman swayed and nearly fell, catch-
ing
herself at the last moment with one hand on the
stake
she had been bound to. A small segment of
the
crowd—mostly women—stepped forward as if
to
help, but fell back again as Tarma swiveled to
face
them.
"I
know not what crime you accuse this woman
of, but
she is innocent of it," Kethry said to him,
ignoring
the presence of anyone else. "That is what
brings
us here."
A
collective sigh rose from the crowd at her words.
Tarma
watched warily to either side, but it ap-
peared
to be a sigh of relief rather than a gasp of
arousal.
She relaxed the white-knuckled grip she
had on
her sword-hilt by the merest trifle.
"The
Lady Myria is accused of the slaying of her
lord,"
the robed man said quietly. "She called upon
her
ancient right to summon a champion to her
defense
when the evidence against her became over-
whelming.
I, who am priest of Felwether, do ask
you—strangers,
will you champion the Lady and
defend
her in trial-by-combat?"
Kethry
began to answer in the affirmative, but
the
priest shook his head negatively. "No, lady-
mage,
by ancient law you are bound from the field;
neither
sorcery nor sorcerous weapons such as I see
you
bear may be permitted in trial-by-combat."
"Then—"
"He
wants to know if I'll do it, she'enedra," Tarma
croaked,
taking a fiendish pleasure in the start the
priest
gave at the sound of her harsh voice. "I know
your
laws, priest, I've passed this way before. I ask
you in
my turn—if my partner, by her skills, can
prove
to you the lady's innocence, will you set her
free
and call off the combat, no matter how far it
has
gotten?"
"I
so pledge, by the Names and the Powers," the
priest
nodded—almost eagerly.
"Then
I will champion this lady."
About
half the spectators cheered and rushed
forward.
Three older women edged past Tarma to
bear
the fainting woman back into the keep. The
rest,
except for the priest, moved off slowly and
reluctantly,
casting thoughtful and measuring looks
back at
Tarma. Some of them seemed friendly;
most
did not.
"What—"
"Was
that all about?" That was as far as Tarma
got
before the priest interposed himself between
the
partners.
"Your
pardon, mage-lady, but you may not speak
with
the champion from this moment forward. Any
message
you may have must pass through me."
"Oh,
no, not yet, priest." Tarma urged Hellsbane
forward
and passed his outstretched hand. "I told
you I
know your laws—and the ban starts at sun-
down—Greeneyes,
pay attention, I have to talk fast.
You're
going to have to figure out just who the real
culprit
is, the best I can possibly do is buy you
time.
This business is combat to the death for the
champion.
I can choose just to defeat my challeng-
ers,
but they have to kill me. And the longer you
take,
the more likely that is."
"Tarma,
you're better than anybody here!"
"But
not better than any twenty—or thirty."
Tarma
smiled crookedly. "The rules of the game,
she'enedra,
are that I keep fighting until nobody is
willing
to challenge me. Sooner or later they'll wear
me out
and I'll go down."
"What?"
"Shush,
I knew what I was getting into. You're as
good at
your craft as I am at mine—I've just given
you a
bit of incentive. Take Warrl." The tall, lupine
creature
jumped to the ground from behind Tarma
where
he'd been clinging to the special pad with
his
retractile claws. "He might well be of some use.
Do your
best, veshta'cha; there're two lives depend-
ing on
you."
The
priest interposed himself again. "Sunset,
champion,"
he said firmly, putting his hand on her
reins.
Tarma
bowed her head, and allowed him to lead
her and
her horse away, Kethry staring dumb-
founded
after them.
"All
right, let's take this from the very beginning."
Kethry
was in the Lady Myria's bower, a soft and
colorful
little corner of an otherwise drab fortress.
There
were no windows—no drafts stirred the bright,
tapestries
on the walls, or caused the flames of the
beeswax
candles to flicker. The walls were thick
stone
covered with plaster, warm by winter, cool
by
summer. The furnishings were of light yellow
wood,
padded with plump feather cushions. In one
corner
stood a cradle, watched over broodingly by
the
lady herself. The air was pleasantly scented
with
herbs and flowers. Kethry wondered how so
pampered
a creature could have gotten herself into
such a
pass.
"It
was two days ago. I came here to lie down in
the
afternoon. I—was tired; I tire easily since Syrtin
was
born. I fell asleep."
Close
up, the Lady proved to be several years
Kethry's
junior; scarcely past her midteens. Her
dark hair
was lank and without luster, her skin
pale.
Kethry frowned at that, and wove a tiny spell
with a
gesture and two whispered words while
Myria
was speaking. The creature of the Ethereal
Plane
who'd agreed to serve as their scout was still
with
her—it would have taken a far wilder ride
than
they had made to lose it. And now that they
were
doing something about the lady's plight, Need
was
quiescent; leaving Kethry able to think and
work
again.
The
answer to her question came quickly as a
thin voice
breathed whispered words into her ear.
Kethry
grimaced angrily. "Lady's eyes, child, I
shouldn't
wonder that you tire—you're still torn up
from
the birthing! What kind of a miserable excuse
for a
Healer have you got here, anyway?"
"We
have no Healer, lady," one of the three older
women
who had borne Myria back into the keep
rose
from her seat behind Kethry and stood be-
tween
them, challenge written in her stance. She
had a
kind, but careworn face; her gray and buff
gown
was of good stuff, but old-fashioned in cut.
Kethry
guessed that she must be Myria's compan-
ion, an
older relative, perhaps. "The Healer died
before
my dove came to childbed and her lord did
not see
fit to replace him. We had no use for a
Healer,
or so he claimed. After all, he kept no great
number
of men-at-arms; he warred with no one. He
felt
that birthing was a perfectly normal procedure
and
surely didn't require the expensive services of
a
Healer."
"Now,
Katran—"
"It
is no more than the truth! He cared more for
his
horses than for you! He replaced the farrier
quickly
enough when he left!"
"His
horses were of more use to him," the girl
said
bitterly, then bit her lip. "There, you see, that
is what
brought me to this pass—one too many
careless
remarks let fall among the wrong ears."
Kethry
nodded, liking the girl; the child was not
the
pampered pretty she had first thought. No win-
dows to
this chamber, only the one entrance; a good
bit
more like a cell than a bower, it occurred to her.
A comfortable
cell, but a cell still. She stood,
smoothed
her buff-colored robe with an unconscious
gesture,
and unsheathed the sword that seldom left
her
side.
"Lady,
what—" Katran stood, startled by the
gesture.
"Peace;
I mean no ill. Here," Kethry said, bend-
ing
over Myria and placing the blade in the startled
girl's
hands, "hold this for a bit."
Myria
took the blade, eyes wide, a puzzled ex-
pression
bringing a bit more life to her face. "But—"
"Women's
magic, child. For all that blades are a
man's
weapon, Need here is strong in the magic of
women.
She serves women only—it was her power
that
called me here to aid you—and given an hour
of your
holding her, she'll Heal you. Now, go on.
You
fell asleep."
Myria
accepted the blade gingerly, then settled
the
sword somewhat awkwardly across her knees
and
took a deep breath. "Something woke me, a
sound
of something falling, I think. You can see
that
this room connects with my Lord's chamber,
that in
fact the only way in or out is through his
chamber.
I saw a candle burning, so I rose to see if
he
needed anything. He—he was slumped over his
desk. I
thought perhaps he had fallen asleep."
"You
thought he was drunk, you mean," the older
woman
said wryly.
"Does
it matter what I thought? I didn't see any-
thing
out of the ordinary, because he wore dark
colors
always. I reached out my hand to shake him—
and it
came away bloody!"
"And
she screamed fit to rouse the household,"
Katran
finished.
"And
when we came, she had to unlock the door
for
us," said the second woman, silent till now.
"Both
doors into that chamber were locked—hallside
with
the lord's key, seneschal's side barred from
within
this room. And the bloody dagger that had
killed
him was under her bed."
"Whose
was it?"
"Mine,
of course," Myria answered. "And before
you
ask, there was only one key to the hallside
door;
it could only be opened with the key, and the
key was
under his hand. It's an ensorcelled lock;
even if
you made a copy of the key the copy would
never
unlock the door."
"Warrl?"
The huge beast rose from the shadows
where
he'd been lying and padded to Kethry's side.
Myria
and her women shrank away a little at the
sight
of him.
"You
can detect what I'd need a spell for. See if
the bar
was bespelled into place on the other door,
would
you? Then see if the spell on the lock's been
tampered
with."
The
dark gray, nearly black beast trotted out of
the
room on silent paws, and Myria shivered.
"I
can see where the evidence against you is
overwhelming,
even without misheard remarks."
"I
had no choice in this wedding," Myria replied,
her
chin rising defiantly, "but I have been a true
and
loyal wife to my lord."
"Loyal
past his deserts, if you ask me," Katran
grumbled.
"Well, that's the problem, lady-mage. My
Lady
came to this marriage reluctant, and it's well
known.
It's well known that he didn't much value
her.
And there's been more than a few heard to say
they
thought Myria reckoned to set herself up as
Keep-ruler
with the Lord gone."
Warrl
padded back into the room, and flopped
down at
Kethry's feet.
"Well,
fur-brother?"
He
shook his head negatively, and the women
stared
at this evidence of like-human intelligence.
"Not
the bar nor the lock, hmm? And how do you
get
into a locked room without a key? Still ...
Lady,
is all as it was in the other room?"
"Yes,
the priest was one of the first in the door,
and
would not let anyone change so much as a dust
mote.
He only let them take the body away."
"Thank
the Goddess!" Kethry gave the exclama-
tion
something of a prayerful cast. She started to
rise
herself, then stared curiously at the girl. "Lady,
why did
you choose to prove yourself as you did?"
"Lady-mage—"
Kethry
was surprised at the true expression of
guilt
and sorrow the child wore.
"If
I had guessed strangers would be caught in
this
web I never would have. I—I thought that my
kin
would come to my defense. I came to this mar-
riage
of their will, I thought at. least one of them
might—at
least try. I don't think anyone here would
dare
the family's anger by killing one of the sons,
even if
the daughter is thought worthless by most
of
them." A slow tear slid down one cheek, and she
whispered
her last words. "My youngest brother, I
thought
at least was fond of me. ..."
The
spell Kethry had set in motion was still
active;
she whispered another question to the tiny
air-entity
she had summoned. This time the an-
swer
made her smile, albeit sadly.
"Your
youngest brother, child, is making his way
here
afoot, having ridden his horse into foundering
trying
to reach you in time. He is swearing by every
god
that if you have been harmed he will not leave
stone
on stone here."
Myria
gave a tiny cry and buried her face in her
hands;
Katran moved to comfort her as her shoul-
ders
shook with silent sobs. Kethry stood, and made
her way
into the other room. Need's magic was
such
that the girl would hold the blade until she no
longer
required its power. While it gave Kethry an
expertise
in swordwork a master would envy, it
would
do nothing to augment her magical abilities,
so it
was fine where it was. Right now there was a
mystery
to solve, and two lives hung in the balance
until
Kethry could puzzle it out.
As she
surveyed the outer room, she wondered
how
Tarma was faring.
Tarma
sat quietly beneath the window of a tiny,
bare,
rock-walled cell. In a few moments the light of
the
rising moon would penetrate it, first through
the
eastern window, then the skylight overhead.
For
now, the only light in the room was that of the
oil-fed
flame burning on the low table before her.
There
was something else on that table—the long,
coarse
braids of Tarma's hair.
She had
shorn those braids off herself at shoulder-
length,
then tied a silky black headband around her
forehead
to confine what remained. That had been
the
final touch to the costume she'd donned with
an air
of robing herself for some ceremony—clothing
that
had long stayed untouched, carefully folded in
the
bottom of her pack. Black clothing; from low,
soft
boots to chainmail shirt, from headband to
hose—the
stark, unrelieved black of a Shin'a'in
Sword
Sworn about to engage in ritual combat or on
the
trail of blood-feud.
Now she
waited, patiently, seated cross-legged
before
the makeshift altar, to see if her prepara-
tions
received an answer.
The
moon rose behind her, the square of dim
white
light creeping slowly down the blank stone
wall
opposite her, until, at last, it touched the flame
on the
altar.
And
without warning, without fanfare, She was
there,
standing between Tarma and the altar-place.
Shin'a'in
by Her golden skin and sharp features,
clad
identically to Tarma, only Her eyes revealed
Her as
something not human. Those eyes—the span-
gled
darkness of the sky at midnight, without white,
iris or
pupil—could belong to only one being; the
Shin'a'in
Goddess of the South Wind, known only
as the
Star-Eyed, or the Warrior.
"Child,
I answer." Her voice was melodious.
"Lady."
Tarma bowed her head in homage.
"You
have questions, child? No requests?"
"No
requests, Star-Eyed. My fate—does not inter-
est me.
I will live or die by my own skills. But
Kethry's
fate—that I would know."
"The
future is not easy to map, child, not even
for a
goddess. I must tell you that tomorrow might
bring
your life or your death; both are equally likely."
Tarma
sighed. "Then what of my she'enedra should
it be
the second path?"
The
Warrior smiled, Tarma felt the smile like a
caress.
"You are worthy, child; hear, then. If you
fall
tomorrow, your she'enedra, who is perhaps a bit
more
pragmatic than you, will work a spell that
lifts
both herself and the Lady Myria to a place
leagues
distant from here, while Warrl releases
Hellsbane
and Ironheart and drives them out the
gates.
I fear she allows you this combat only be-
cause
she knows you regard it as touching your
honor
to hold by these outClan customs. If the
choice
were in her hands, you would all be far from
here by
now; you, she, the lady and her child and
all—well;
she will abide by your choices. For the
rest,
when Kethry recovers from that spell they
shall
go to our people, to the Liha'irden; Lady Myria
will
find a mate to her liking there. Then, with
some
orphans of other Clans, they shall go forth
and
Tale'sedrin will ride the plains again, as Kethry
promised
you. The blade will release her, and pass
to
another's hands."
Tarma
sighed, and nodded. "Then, Lady, I am
content,
whatever my fate tomorrow. I thank you."
The
Warrior smiled again; then between one heart-
beat
and the next, was gone.
Tarma
left the flame to burn itself out, lay down
upon
the pallet that was the room's only other
furnishing,
and slept.
Sleep was the last thing on Kethry's mind.
She
surveyed the room that had been Lord Cor-
bie's;
plain stone walls, three entrances, no win-
dows.
One of the entrances still had the bar across
the
door, the other two led to Myria's bower and to
the
hall outside. Plain stone floor, no hidden en-
trances
there. She knew the blank wall held noth-
ing
either; the other side was the courtyard of the
manor.
Furnishings; one table, one chair, one or-
nate
bedstead against the blank wall, one bookcase,
half
filled, four lamps. A few bright rugs. Her mind
felt as
blank as the walls.
Start
at the beginning—she told herself. Follow
what
happened. The girl came in here alone, the man
followed
after she was asleep, then what?
He was
found at his desk, said a voice in her mind,
startling
her. He probably walked straight in and sat
dawn.
What's on the desk that he might have been
doing?
Every
time Warrl spoke to her mind-to-mind it
surprised
her. She still couldn't imagine how he
managed
to make himself heard when she hadn't a
scrap
of that particular Gift. Tarma seemed to ac-
cept it
unquestioningly; how she'd ever gotten used
to it,
the sorceress couldn't imagine.
Tarma—time
was wasting.
On the
desk stood a wineglass with a sticky resi-
due in
the bottom, an inkwell and quill, and several
stacked
ledgers. The top two looked disturbed.
Kethry
picked them up, and began leafing through
the
last few pages, whispering a command to the
invisible
presence at her shoulder. The answer was
prompt.
The ink on the last three pages of both
ledgers
was fresh enough to still be giving off fumes
detectable
only by a creature of the air. The figures
were
written no more than two days ago.
She
leafed back several pages worth, noting that
the
handwriting changed from time to time.
"Who
else kept the accounts besides your lord?"
she
called into the next room.
"The
seneschal; that was why his room has an
entrance
on this one," the woman Katran replied,
entering
the lord's room herself. "I can't imagine
why the
door was barred. Lord Corbie almost never
left it
that way."
"That's
a lot of trust to place in a hireling."
"Oh,
the seneschal isn't a hireling, he's Lord
Corbie's
bastard brother. He's been the lord's right
hand
since he inherited the lordship of Felwether."
The sun
rose; Tarma was awake long before.
If the
priest was surprised to see her change of
outfit,
he didn't show it. He had brought a simple
meal of
bread and cheese, and watered wine; he
waited
patiently while she ate and drank, then
indicated
she should follow him.
Tarma
checked all her weapons. She secured all
the
fastenings of her clothing (how many had died
because
they had forgotten to tie something tightly
enough?),
and stepped into place behind him, as
silent
as his shadow.
He
conducted her to a small tent that had been
erected
in one corner of the keep's practice ground,
against
the keep walls. The walls of the keep formed
two
sides, the outer wall the third; the fourth side
was
open. The practice ground was of hard-packed
clay,
and relatively free of dust. A groundskeeper
was
sprinkling water over the dirt to settle it,
Once
they were in front of the little pavilion, the
priest
finally spoke.
"The
first challenger will be here within a few
minutes;
between fights you may retire here to rest
for as
long as it takes for the next to ready himself,
or one
candlemark, whichever is longer. You will
be
brought food at noon and again at sunset." His
expression
plainly said that he did not think she
would
be needing the latter, "and there will be
fresh
water within the tent at all times. I will be
staying
with you."
Now his
expression was apologetic.
"To
keep my partner from slipping me any magi-
cal
aid?" Tarma asked wryly. "Hellfire, priest, you
know what
I am, even if these dirt-grubbers here
don't!"
"I
know, Sword Sworn. This is for your protec-
tion as
well. There are those here who would not
hesitate
to tip the hand of the gods somewhat."
Tarma's
eyes hardened. "Priest, I'll spare who I
can,
but it's only fair to tell you that if I catch
anyone
trying an underhanded trick, I won't hesi-
tate to
kill him."
"I
would not ask you to do otherwise."
She
looked at him askance. "There's more going
on here
than meets the eye, isn't there?"
He
shook his head, and indicated that she should
take
her seat in the champion's chair beside the
tent-flap.
There was a bustling on the opposite side
of the
practice ground, and a dark, heavily bearded
man
followed by several boys carrying arms and
armor
appeared only to vanish within another, iden-
tical
tent on that side. Spectators began gathering
along
the open side and the tops of the walls.
"I
fear I can tell you nothing, Sword Sworn. I
have
only speculations, nothing more. But I pray
your
little partner is wiser than I."
"Or
I'm going to be cold meat by nightfall," Tarma
finished
for him, watching as her first opponent
emerged
from the challenger's pavilion.
The
priest winced at her choice of words, but did
not
contradict her.
Circles
within circles. ...
Kethry
had not been idle.
The
sticky residue in the wineglass had been
more
than just the dregs of drink; there had been a
powerful
narcotic in it. Unfortunately, this just
pointed
back to Myria; she'd been using just such a
potion
to help her sleep since the birth of her son.
Still,
it wouldn't have been all that difficult to
obtain,
and Kethry had a trick up her sleeve, one
the
average mage wouldn't have known; one she
would
use if they could find the other bottle of
potion.
More
encouraging was what she had found pe-
rusing
the ledgers. The seneschal had been siphon-
ing off
revenues; never much at a time, but steadily.
By now
it must amount to a tidy sum. What if he
suspected
Lord Corbie was likely to catch him at
it?
Or even
more—what if Lady Myria was found
guilty
and executed? The estate would go to her
infant
son, and who would be the child's most likely
guardian
but his half-uncle, the seneschal?
And
children die so very easily, and from so
many
natural causes.
Now
that she had a likely suspect, Kethry de-
cided
it was time to begin investigating him.
The
first place she checked was the barred door.
And on
the bar itself she found an odd little scratch,
obvious
in the paint. It looked new, her air-spirit
confirmed
that it was. She lifted the bar after ex-
amining
it even more carefully, finding no other
marks
on it but those worn places where it rubbed
against
the brackets that held it.
She
opened the door, and began examining every
inch of
the door and frame. And found, near the
top, a
tiny piece of hemp that looked as if it might
have
come from a piece of twine, caught in the
wood of
the door itself.
Further
examination of the door yielded nothing,
so she
turned her attention to the room beyond.
It
looked a great deal like the lord's room, with
more
books and a less ostentatious bedstead—and a
wooden
floor, rather than one of stone. She called
Warrl
in and sent him sniffing about for any trace
of
magic. That potion required a tiny bit of magick-
ing to
have full potency, and if there were another
bottle
of it anywhere about, Warrl would find it.
She
turned her own attention to the desk.
Tarma's
first opponent had been good, and an
honest
fighter. It was with a great deal of relief—
especially
after she'd seen an anxious-faced woman
with
three small children clinging to her skirt watch-
ing
every move he made—that she was able to dis-
arm him
and knock him flat on his rump without
seriously
injuring him.
The
second had been a mere boy; he had no
business
being out here at all. Tarma had the shrewd
notion
he'd been talked into it just so she'd have
one
more live body to wear her out. Instead of
exerting
herself in any way, she lazed about, letting
him
wear himself into exhaustion, before giving him
a
little tap on the skull with the pommel of her
knife
that stretched him flat on his back, seeing
stars.
The
third opponent was another creature altogether.
He was
slim and sleek, and Tarma smelled "as-
sassin"
on him as plainly as if she'd had Warrl's
clever
nose. When he closed with her, his first few
moves
confirmed her guess. His fighting style was
all
feint and rush, never getting in too close. This
was a
real problem. If she stood her ground, she'd
open
herself to the poisoned dart or whatever other
tricks
he had secreted on his person. If she let him
drive
her all over the bloody practice ground he'd
wear
her down. Either way, she lost.
Of
course, she might be able to outfox him—
So far
she'd played an entirely defensive game,
both
with him and her first two opponents. If she
took
the offense when he least expected it, she
might
be able to catch him off his guard.
She let
him begin to drive her, and saw at once
that he
was trying to work her around so that the
sun was
in her eyes. She snarled inwardly, let him
think
he was having his way, then turned the ta-
bles on
him.
She
came at him in a two-handed pattern-dance,
one
that took her back to her days on the Plains and
her
first instructor; an old man she'd never dreamed
could
have moved as fast as he did. She hadn't
learned
that pattern then; hadn't learned it until
the old
man and her Clan were two years dead and
she'd
been Kethry's partner for more than a year.
She'd
learned it from one of Her Kal'enedral, a
woman
who'd died a hundred years before Tarma
had
ever been born.
It took
her opponent off-balance; he back-pedaled
furiously
to get out the the way of the shining
circles
of steel, great and lesser, that were her sword
and
dagger. And when he stopped running, he found
himself
facing into the sun.
Tarma
saw him make a slight movement with his
left
hand; when he came in with his sword in an
over-and-under
cut, she paid his sword-hand only
scant
attention. It was the other she was watching
for.
Under
the cover of his overt attack he made a
strike
for her upper arm with his gloved left. She
avoided
it barely in time; a circumstance that made
her
sweat when she thought about it later, and
executed
a spin-and-cut that took his hand off at
the
wrist at the end of the move. While he stared in
shock
at the spurting stump, she carried her blade
back
along the arc to take his head as well.
The
onlookers were motionless, silent with shock.
What
they'd seen from her up until now had not
prepared
them for this swift slaughter. While they
remained
still, she stalked to where the gloved hand
lay and
picked it up with great care. Embedded in
the
fingertips of the gloves, retracted or released by
a bit
of pressure to the center of the palm, were
four
deadly little needles. Poisoned, no doubt.
She
decided to make a grandstand move out of
this.
She stalked to the challenger's pavilion, where
more of
her would-be opponents had gathered, and
cast
the hand down at their feet.
"Assassin's
tricks, 'noble lords'?" she spat, ooz-
ing
contempt. "Is this the honor of Felwether? I'd
rather
fight jackals. At least they're honest in their
treachery!
Have you no trust in the judgment of
the
gods—and their champion?"
That
should put a little doubt in the minds of the
honest
ones—and a little fear in the hearts of the
ones
that weren't.
Tarma
stalked stiff-legged back to her own pavil-
ion,
where she threw herself down on the little cot
inside
it, and hoped she'd get her wind back before
they
got their courage up.
In the
very back of one of the drawers Kethry
found a
very curious contrivance. It was a coil of
hempen
twine, two cords, really, at the end of which
was
tied a barbless, heavy fishhook, the kind sea-
fishers
used to take shark and the great sea-salmon.
But the
coast was weeks from here. What on earth
could
the seneschal have possibly wanted with such
a
curious souvenir?
Just
then Warrl barked sharply; Kethry turned
to see
his tail sticking out from under the bedstead.
There's
a hidden compartment under the boards here,
he said
eagerly in her mind. I smell gold, and magic—
and
fresh blood.
She
tried to move the bed aside, but it was far too
heavy,
something the seneschal probably counted
on. So
she squeezed in beside Warrl, who pawed at
the
place on the board floor where he smelled
strangeness.
Sneezing
several times from the dust beneath the
bed,
she felt along the boards—carefully, carefully;
it
could be booby-trapped. She found the catch, and
a whole
section of the board floor lifted away. And
inside
...
Gold,
yes; packed carefully into the bottom of
it—but
on top, a wadded-up tunic, and an empty
bottle.
She
left the gold, but brought out the other things.
The
tunic was bloodstained; the bottle, by the smell,
had
held the narcotic potion she was seeking.
"Hey-la,"
she whispered in satisfaction.
Now if
she just had some notion how he could
have
gotten into a locked room without the proper
key.
There was no hint or residue of any kind of
magic.
And no key to the door with the bar across
it.
How
could you get into a locked room?
Go
before the door is locked, Warrl said in her
mind.
And
suddenly she realized what the fishhook was
for.
Kethry
wriggled out from under the bed, replac-
ing
tunic and bottle and leaving the gold in the
hidden
compartment untouched.
"Katran!"
she called. A moment later Myria's
companion
appeared; quite nonplussed to see the
sorceress
covered with dust beside the seneschal's
bed.
"Get
the priest," Kethry told her, before she had
a
chance to ask any question. "I know who the
murderer
is—and I know how he did it, and why."
Tarma
was facing her first real opponent of the
day; a
lean, saturnine fellow who used twin swords
like
extensions of himself. He was just as fast on
his
feet as she was—and he was fresher. The priest
had
vanished just before the beginning of this bout,
and
Tarma was fervently hoping this meant Kethry
had
found something. Otherwise, this fight bid fair
to be
her last.
Thank
the Goddess this one was an honest war-
rior;
if she went down, it would be to an honorable
opponent.
Not too bad, really, if it came to it. Not
even
many Sword Sworn could boast to having de-
feated
twelve opponents in a single morning.
Even if
some of them had been mere babes.
She had
a stitch in her side that she was doing
her
best to ignore, and her breath was coming in
harsh
pants. The sun was punishing hard on some-
one
wearing head-to-toe black; sweat was trickling
down
her back and sides. She danced aside, avoid-
ing a
blur of sword, only to find she was moving
right
into the path of his second blade.
Damn!
At the
last second she managed to drop and roll,
and
came up to find him practically on top of her
again.
She managed to get to one knee and trap his
first
blade between dagger and sword—but the sec-
ond was
coming in—
From
the side of the field, came a voice like a
trumpet
call.
"Hold!"
And
miracle of miracles, the blade stopped mere
inches
from her unprotected neck.
The
priest strode onto the field, robes flapping.
"The
sorceress has found the true murderer of our
lord
and proved it to my satisfaction," he announced
to the
waiting crowd. "She wishes to prove it to
yours."
Then he
began naming off interested parties as
Tarma
sagged to her knees in the dirt, limp with
relief,
and just about ready to pass out with ex-
haustion.
Her opponent dropped both his blades in
the
dust at her side, and ran off to his side of the
field,
returning in a moment with a cup of water.
And
before handing it to her, he smiled sardoni-
cally,
saluted her with it and took a tiny sip himself.
She
shook sweat-sodden hair out of her eyes, and
accepted
the cup with a nod of thanks. She downed
the
lukewarm water, and sagged back onto her heels
with a
sigh.
"Sword
Sworn, shall I find someone to take you
to your
pavilion?"
The
priest was bending over her in concern.
Tarma
managed to find one tiny bit of unexpended
energy.
"Not
on your life, priest. I want to see this
myself!"
There
were perhaps a dozen nobles in the group
that
the priest escorted to the lord's chamber. Fore-
most
among them was the seneschal; the priest
most
attentive on him. Tarma was too tired to won-
der
about that; she saved what little energy she
had to
get her into the room and safely leaning up
against
the wall within.
"I
trust you all will forgive me if I am a bit
dramatic,
but I wanted you all to see exactly how
this
deed was done."
Kethry
was standing behind the chair that was
placed
next to the desk; in that chair was an older
woman
in buff and gray. "Katran has kindly agreed
to play
the part of Lord Corbie; I am the murderer.
The
lord has just come into this chamber; in the
next is
his lady. She has taken a potion to relieve
pain,
and the accustomed sound of his footstep is
not
likely to awaken her."
She
held up a wineglass. "Some of that same
potion
was mixed in with the wine that was in this
glass,
but it did not come from the batch Lady
Myria
was using. Here is Myria's bottle," she placed
the
wineglass on the desk, and Myria brought a
bottle
to stand beside it. "Here," she produced a
second
bottle, "is the bottle I found. The priest
knows
where, and can vouch for the fact that until
he
came, no hand but the owner's and mine touched
it."
The
priest nodded. Tarma noticed with a preter-
natural
sensitivity that made it seem as if her every
nerve
was on the alert that the seneschal was be-
ginning
to sweat.
"The
spell I am going to cast now—as your priest
can
vouch, since he is no mean student of magic
himself—will
cause the wineglass and the bottle
that
contained the potion that was poured into it
glow."
Kethry
dusted something over the glass and the
two
bottles. As they watched, the residue in the
glass
and the fraction of potion in Kethry's bottle
began
to glow with an odd, greenish light.
"Is
this a true casting, priest?" Tarma heard one
of the
nobles ask in an undertone.
He
nodded. "As true as ever I've seen."
"Huh,"
the man replied, frowning with thoughts
he kept
to himself.
"Now—Lord
Corbie has just come in; he is work-
ing on
the ledgers. I give him a glass of wine,"
Kethry
handed the glass to Katran. "He is grate-
ful; he
thinks nothing of the courtesy, I am an old
and
trusted friend. He drinks it, I leave the room,
presently
he is asleep."
Katran
allowed her head to sag down on her
arms.
"I
take the key from beneath his hand, and qu-
ietly
lock the door to the hall. I replace the key. I
know he
will not stir, not even cry out, because of
the
strength of the potion. I take Lady Myria's
dagger,
which I obtained earlier. I stab him." Kethry
mimed
the murder; Katran did not move, though
Tarma
could see she was smiling sardonically. "I
take
the dagger and plant it beneath Lady Myria's
bed—and
I know that because of the potion she has
been
taking—and which I recommended, since we
have no
Healer—she will not wake either."
Kethry
went into Myria's chamber, and returned
empty-handed.
"I've
been careless—got some blood on my tunic,
I've
never killed a man before and I didn't know
that
the wound would spurt. No matter, I will hide
it
where I plan to hide the bottle. By the way, the
priest
has that bloody tunic, and he knows that his
hands
alone removed it from its hiding place, just
like
the bottle. Now comes the important part—"
She
took an enormous fishhook on a double length
of
twine out of her beltpouch.
"The
priest knows where I found this—rest as-
sured
that it was not in Myria's possession. Now,
on the
top of this door, caught on a rough place in
the
wood, is another scrap of hemp. I am going to
get it
now. Then I shall cast another spell—and if
that
bit of hemp came from this twine, it shall
return
to the place it came from."
She
went to the door and jerked loose a bit of
fiber,
taking it back to the desk. Once again she
dusted
something over the twine on the hook and
the scrap,
this time she also chanted as well. A
golden
glow drifted down from her hands to touch
first
the twine, then the scrap.
And the
bit of fiber shot across to the twine like
an
arrow loosed from a bow.
"Now
you will see the key to entering a locked
room,
now that I have proved that this was the
mechanism
by which the trick was accomplished."
She
went over to the door to the seneschal's cham-
ber.
She wedged the hook under the bar on the
door,
and lowered the bar so that it was only held
in
place by the hook; the hook was kept where it
was by
the length of twine going over the door
itself.
The other length of twine Kethry threaded
under
the door. Then she closed the door.
The
second piece of twine jerked; the hook came
free,
and the bar thudded into place. And the whole
contrivance
was pulled up over the door and through
the
upper crack by the first piece.
All
eyes turned toward the seneschal--whose
white
face was confession enough.
* *
*
"Lady
Myria was certainly grateful enough."
"If
we'd let her, she'd have stripped the treasury
bare,"
Kethry replied, waving at the distant figures
on the
keep wall. "I'm glad you talked her out of
it."
"Greeneyes,
they don't have it to spare, and we
both
know it. As it is, she'll have to spend most of
the
seneschal's hoard in making up for the short-
falls
among the hirelings that his skimmings caused
in the
first place."
"Will
she be all right, do you think?"
"Now
that her brother's here I don't think she
has a
thing to worry about. She's gotten back all the
loyalty
of her lord's people and more besides. All
she
needed was a strong right arm to beat off un-
welcome
suitors, and she's got that now! Warrior's
Oath,
I'm glad that young monster wasn't one of the
challengers.
I'd never have lasted past the first
round!"
"Tarma—"
The
swordswoman raised an eyebrow at Kethry's
unwontedly
serious tone.
"If
you—did all that because you think you owe
me—"
"I
'did all that' because we're she'enedran," she
replied,
a slight smile wanning her otherwise for-
bidding
expression. "No other reason is needed."
"But—"
"No
'buts,' Greeneyes." Tarma looked back at
the
waving motes on the wall. "Hell, we've just
accomplished
something we really needed to do.
This
little job is going to give us a real boost on our
reputation.
Besides, you know I'd do whatever I
needed
to do to keep you safe."
Kethry
did not reply to that last; not that she
wasn't
dead certain that it was true. That was the
problem.
Tarma
had been stepping between Kethry and
possible
danger on a regular basis, often when such
intercession
wasn't needed. At all other times, she
treated
Kethry as a strict equal, but when danger
threatened—
She
tried to keep the sorceress wrapped in a
protective
cocoon spun of herself and her blades.
She
probably doesn't even realize she's doing it—but
she's
keeping me so safe, she's putting herself in more
risk
than she needs to. She knows I can take care of
myself-—
Then
the answer occurred to her.
Without
me, there will never be a Tale'sedrin. She's
protecting,
not just me, but her hopes for a new Clan!
But
she's stifling me—and she's going to get herself
killed!
She
glanced over at Tarma, at the distant, brood-
ing expression
she wore.
I can't
tell her. She might not believe me. Or worse,
she
might believe, and choke when she needs to act. 1
wonder
if Warrl has figured out what she's doing? I
hope
so—
She
glanced again at her partner.
—or
she's going to end up killing all three of us. Or
driving
me mad.
Seven
The
sorcerer was young, thin, and sweating
nervously,
despite the cold of the musty cellar
chamber
that served as his living area and work-
room.
His secondhand robe was clammy with chill
and
soaked through with his own perspiration.
He had
every reason to be nervous. This was the
first
time he and his apprentice (who was now
huddled
out of the way in the corner) had ever
attempted
to bind an imp to his service. The sum-
moning
of a spirit from the Abyssal Planes is no
small
task, even if the spirit one hopes to summon
is of
the very least and lowliest of the demonic
varietals.
Demons and their ilk are always watch-
ing for
a chance misstep—and some are more eager
to take
advantage of a mistake than others.
The
torches on the walls wavered and smoked,
their
odor of hot pitch nearly overwhelming the
acrid
tang of the incense he was burning. Mice
squeaked
and scuttled along the rafters overhead.
Perhaps
they were the cause of his distraction, for
he was
distracted for a crucial moment. And one of
those
that watched and waited seized the unhoped-
for
opportunity when the sorcerer thrice chanted,
not the
name "Talhkarsh"—the true-name of the
imp he
meant to bind—but "Thalhkarsh."
Incandescent
ruby smoke rose and filled the inte-
rior of
the diagram the mage had so carefully chalked
upon
the floor of his cluttered, dank, high-ceilinged
stone
chamber. It completely hid whatever was form-
ing
within the bespelled hexacle.
But
there was something there; he could see shad-
ows
moving within the veiling smoke. He waited, dry-
mouthed
in anticipation, for the smoke to clear, so
that he
could intone his second incantation, one that
would
coerce the imp he'd summoned into the bottle
that
waited within the exact center of the hexacle.
Then
the smoke vanished as quickly as it had
been
conjured—and the young mage nearly fainted,
as he
looked up at what stood there. And looked
higher.
And his sallow, bearded visage assumed the
same
lack of color as his chalk when the occupant,
head
just brushing the rafters, calmly stepped across
the
spell-bound lines, bent slightly at the waist,
and
seized him none-too-gently by the throat.
Thinking
quickly, he summoned everything he
knew in
the way of arcane protections, spending
magical
energy with what in other circumstances
might
have been reckless wastefulness. There was
a brief
flare of light around him, and the demon
dropped
him as a human would something that had
unexpectedly
scorched his hand. The mage cringed
where
he had fallen, squeezing his eyes shut.
"Oh,
fool," the voice was like brazen gongs just
slightly
out of tune with each other, and held no
trace
of pity. "Look at me."
The
mage opened one eye, well aware of the
duplicity
of demons, yet unable to resist the com-
mand.
His knowledge did him little good; his face
went
slack-jawed with bemusement at the serpen-
tine
beauty of the creature that stood over him. It
had
shrunk to the size of a very tall human and
its—his—eyes
glowed from within, a rich ruby
color
reminiscent of wine catching sunlight. He was
—wonderful.
He was
the very image of everything the mage
had
ever dreamed of in a lover. The face was that
of a
fallen angel, the nude body that of a god. The
ruby
eyes promised and beckoned, and were filled
with an
overwhelming and terribly masculine power.
The
magician's shields did not include those meant
to ward
off beglamoring. He threw every pitiful
protection
he'd erected to the four winds in an
onslaught
of delirious devotion.
The
demon laughed, and took him into his arms.
When he
was finished amusing himself, he tore
the
whimpering creature that remained to shreds
.. .
slowly.
It was
only then, only after he'd destroyed the
mage
past any hope of resurrection, and when he
was
sated with the emanations of the mage's tor-
ment
and death, that he paused to think—and, think-
ing, to
regret his hasty action.
There
had been opportunity there, opportunity
to be
free forever of the Abyssal Planes, and more,
a
potential for an unlimited supply of those de-
lights
he'd just indulged in. If only he'd thought
before
he'd acted!
But
even as he was mentally cursing his own
impulsiveness,
his attention was caught by a hint
of
movement in the far corner.
He grew
to his full size, and reached out lazily
with
one bloodsmeared claw to pull the shivering,
wretched
creature that cowered there into the torch-
light.
It had soiled itself with fear, but by the torque
around
its throat and the cabalistic signs on its
shabby
robe, this pitiful thing must have been the
departed
mage's apprentice.
Thalhkarsh
chuckled, and the apprentice tried to
shrink
into insignificance. All was not yet lost. In
fact,
this terror-stricken youth was an even better
candidate
for what he had in mind than his master
would
have been.
Thalhkarsh
bent his will upon the boy's mind; it
was
easy to read. The defenses his master had
placed
about him were few and weak, and fading
with the
master's death. Satisfied by what he read
there,
the demon assumed his most attractive as-
pect
and spoke.
"Boy,
would you live? More, would you prosper?"
The
apprentice trembled and nodded slightly,
his
eyes glazed with horror, a fear that was rapidly
being
subsumed by the power the demon was
exerting
on his mind.
"See
you this?" the demon hefted the imp-bottle
that
had been in the diagram with him. Plain, red-
dish
glass before, it now glowed from within like
the
demon's eyes. "Do you know what it is?"
"The—imp-bottle,"
the boy whispered, after two
attempts
to get words out that failed. "The one
Leland
meant to—to—"
"To
confine me in—or rather, the imp he meant
to
call. It is a worthless bottle no more; thanks to
having
been within the magic confines of the dia-
gram
when I was summoned instead of the imp, it
has
become my focus. Did your master tell you
what a
demonic focus is?"
"It—"
the boy stared in petrified fascination at
the
bottle in the demon's hand, "it lets you keep
yourself
here of your own will. If you have enough
power."
The
demon smiled. "But I want more than free-
dom,
boy. I want more than power. I have greater
ambitions.
And if you want to live, you'll help me
achieve
them."
It was
plain from the boy's eyes that he was more
than
willing to do just about anything to ensure his
continued
survival. "How—what do you want?"
Thalhkarsh
laughed, and his eyes narrowed.
"Never
mind, child. I have plans—and if you suc-
ceed in
what I set out for you, you will have a life
privileged
beyond anything you can now imagine.
You
will become great—and I, I will become—greater
than
your poor mind can dream. For now, child,
this is
how you can serve me. . .."
"Here?"
Tarma asked her mage-partner. "You're
sure?"
The
sunset bathed her in a blood-red glow as
they
approached the trade-gate of the city of Delton,
and a
warm spring breeze stirred a lock of coarse
black
hair that had escaped the confines of her
short
braids; her hair had grown almost magically
the
past few months, as if it had resented being
shorn.
The last light dyed her brown leather tunic
and
breeches a red that was nearly black.
Kethry's
softly attractive face wore lines of strain,
and
there was worry in her emerald eyes. "I'm
sure.
It's here—and it's bad, whatever it is. This is
the
worst Need's ever pulled on me that I can
remember.
It's worse than that business with Lady
Myria,
even." She pushed the hood of her traveling
robe
back from an aching forehead and rubbed her
temples
a little.
"Huh.
Well, I hope that damn blade of yours
hasn't
managed to get us knee-deep into more than
we can
handle. Only one way to find out, though."
The
swordswoman kneed her horse into the lead,
and the
pair rode in through the gates after passing
the
cursory inspection of a somewhat nervous
Gate
Guard. He seemed oddly disinclined to climb
down
from his gatehouse post, being content to
pass
them through after a scant few moment's
scrutiny.
Tarma's
ice-blue eyes scanned the area just in-
side
the gate for signs of trouble, and found none.
Her
brow puckered in puzzlement. "She'enedra, I
find it
hard to believe you're wrong, but this is the
quietest
town I've ever seen. I was expecting blood
and
rapine in the streets."
"I'm
not mistaken," Kethry replied in a low, tense
voice.
"And there's something very wrong here—the
very
quiet is wrong. It's too quiet. There's no one at
all on
the streets—no beggars, no whores, no nothing."
Tarma
looked about her with increased alertness.
Now
that Keth had mentioned it, this looked like
an
empty town. There were no loiterers to be seen
in the
vicinity of the trade gate or the inns that
clustered
about the square just inside it, and that
was
very odd indeed. No beggars, no thieves, no
whores,
no strollers, no street musicians—just the
few
stablehands and inn servants that had to be
outside,
leading in the beasts of fellow travelers,
lighting
lanterns and torches. And those few betook
themselves
back inside as quickly as was possible.
The
square of the trade inns was ominously deserted.
"Warrior's
Oath! This is blamed spooky! I don't
like
the look of this, not one bit."
"Neither
do I. Pick us an inn, she'enedra; pick
one
fast. If the locals don't want to be out-of-doors
after
sunset, they must have a reason, and I'd rather
not be
out here either."
Tarma
chose an inn with the sign of a black
sheep
hanging above the door, and the words (for
the
benefit of those that could read) "The Blacke
Ewe"
painted on the wall beside the door. It looked
to be
about the right sort for the state of their
purses,
which were getting a bit on the lean side.
They'd
been riding the Trade Road north to Valde-
mar,
once again looking for work, when Kethry's
geas-forged
blade Need had drawn them eastward
until
they ended up here. The sword had left them
pretty
much alone except for a twinge or two—and
the
incident with the feckless priestess, that had
wound
up being far more complicated than it had
needed
to be thanks to the Imp of the Perverse and
Tarma's
own big mouth. Tarma was beginning to
hope
that it had settled down.
And
then this afternoon, Kethry had nearly fainted
when it
"called" with all of its old urgency. They'd
obeyed
its summons, until it led them at last to
Delton.
Tarma
saw to the stabling of their beasts; Kethry
to
bargaining for a room. The innkeeper looked
askance
at a mage wearing a sword, for those who
trafficked
in magic seldom carried physical weap-
onry,
but he was openly alarmed by the sight of
what
trotted at Tarma's heels—a huge, black,
wolflike
creature whose shoulders came nearly as
high as
the swordswoman's waist.
Kethry
saw the alarm in his eyes, realized that
he had
never seen a kyree before, and decided to use
his fear
as a factor in her bargaining. "My famil-
iar,"
she said nonchalantly, "and he knows when
I'm
being cheated."
The
price of their room took a mysterious plunge.
After
installing their gear and settling Warrl in
their
room, they returned to the taproom for sup-
per and
information.
If the
streets were deserted, the taproom was
crowded
far past its intended capacity.
Tarma
wrinkled her nose at the effluvia of cheap
perfume,
unwashed bodies, stale food odors and
fish-oil
lanterns. Kethry appeared not to notice.
Tarma's
harsh, hawklike features could be made
into a
veritable mask of intimidation when she chose
to
scowl; she did so now. Her ice-cold stare got
them
two stools and a tiny, round table to them-
selves.
Her harsh voice summoned a harried ser-
vant as
easily as Kethry could summon a creature
of
magic. A hand to her knife-hilt and the ostenta-
tious
shrugging of the sword slung on her back into
a more
comfortable position got her speedy service,
cleaning
her fingernails with her knife got them
decent
portions and scrubbed plates.
Kethry's
frown of worry softened a bit. "Life has
been
ever so much easier since I teamed with you,
she'enedra,"
she chuckled quietly, moving the sides
of her
robe out of the way so that she could sit
comfortably.
"No
doubt," the swordswoman replied with a
lifted
eyebrow and a quirk to one corner of her
mouth.
"Sometimes I wonder how you managed
without
me."
"Poorly."
The green eyes winked with mischief.
Their
food arrived, and they ate in silence, fur-
tively
scanning the crowded room for a likely source
of
information. When they'd nearly finished, Kethry
nodded
slightly in the direction of a grizzled mer-
cenary
sitting just underneath one of the smoking
lanterns.
Tarma looked him over carefully; he looked
almost
drunk enough to talk, but not drunk enough
to make
trouble, and his companions had just de-
serted
him, leaving seats open on the bench oppo-
site
his. He wore a badge, so he was mastered, and
so was
less likely to pick a fight. They picked up
their
tankards and moved to take those vacant seats
beside
him.
He
nodded as they sat; warily at Tarma, appre-
ciatively
at Kethry.
He
wasn't much for idle chatter, though. "Eve-
ning,"
was all he said.
"It
is that," Tarma replied, "Though 'tis a strange
enough
evening and more than a bit early for folk to
be
closing themselves indoors, especially with the
weather
so pleasant."
"These
are strange times," he countered, "And
strange
things happen in the nights around here."
"Oh?"
Kethry looked flatteringly interested.
"What
sort of strange things? And can we take care
of your
thirst?"
He
warmed to the admiration—and the offer.
"Folk
been going missing; whores, street trash,
such as
won't be looked for by the watch," he told
them,
wiping his mouth on his sleeve, while Tarma
signaled
the serving wench. He took an enormous
bite of
the spiced sausage that was the Blacke Ewe's
specialty;
grease ran into his beard. He washed the
bite
down by draining his tankard dry. "There's
rumors—"
His eyes took on a certain wariness. He
cast an
uneasy glance around the dim, hot and
odorous
taproom.
"Rumors?"
Tarma prompted, pouring his tan-
kard
full again, and sliding a silver piece under it.
"Well,
we little care for rumors, eh? What's rumor
to a
fighter but ale-talk?"
"Plague
take rumors!" he agreed, but his face
was
strained. "What've magickers and demons got
to do
with us, so long as they leave our masters in
peace?"
He drained the vessel and pocketed the
coin.
"So long as he leaves a few for me, this
Thalhkarsh
can have his fill of whores!"
"Thalhkarsh?
What might that be? Some great
lecher,
that he has need of so many lightskirts?"
Tarma
filled the tankard for the third time, and
kept
her tone carefully casual.
"Sh!"
the mercenary paled, and made a caution-
ary
wave with his hand. " 'Tisn't wise to bandy
that
name about lightly—them as does often aren't
to be
seen again. That—one I mentioned—well, some
say
he's a god, some a demon summoned by a mighty
powerful
magicker. All I know is that he has a
temple
on the Row—one that sprang up overnight,
seemingly,
and one with statues an' such that could
make me
blush, were I to go view 'em. The which I
won't.
'Tisn't safe to go near there—"
"So?"
Tarma raised one eyebrow.
"They
sent the city guard trooping in there after
the
first trollops went missing. There were tales
spread
of blood-worship, so the city council reck-
oned
somebody'd better check. Nobody ever saw so
much as
a scrap of bootleather of that guard-squad
ever
again."
"So
folk huddle behind their doors at night, and
hope
that they'll be left in peace, hmm?" Kethry
mused
aloud, taking her turn at replenishing his
drink.
"But are they?"
"Rumor
says not—not unless they take care to
stay in
company at night. Odd thing though, 'cept
for the
city guard, most of the ones taken by night
have
been women. I'd watch meself, were I you
twain."
He
drained his tankard yet again. This proved to
be one
tankard too many, as he slowly slid off the
bench
to lie beneath the table, a bemused smile on
his
face.
They
took the god-sent opportunity to escape to
their
room.
"Well,"
Tarma said, once the door had been bolted,
"we
know why, and now we know what. Bloody
Hell! I
wish for once that that damned sword of
yours
would steer us toward something that pays!"
Kethry
worked a minor magic that sent the ver-
min
sharing their accommodations skittering under
the
door and out the open window. Warrl surveyed
her
handiwork, sniffed the room over carefully,
then
lay down at the foot of the double pallet with
a heavy
sigh.
"That's
not quite true—we don't really know what
we're
dealing with. Is it a god, truly? If it is, I don't
stand
much chance of making a dent in its hide. Is
it a
demon, controlled by this magician, that has
been
set up as a god so that its master can acquire
power
by blood-magic? Or is it worse than either?"
"What
could possible be worse?"
"A
demon loose, uncontrolled—a demon with am-
bition,"
Kethry said, flopping down beside Warrl
and
staring up at nothing, deep in thought.
Their
lantern (more fish-oil) smoked and danced,
and
made strange shadows on the wall and ceiling.
"Worst
case would be just that: a demon that
knows
exactly how to achieve godhood, and one
with
nothing standing in the way of his intended
path.
If it is a god—a real god—well, all gods have
their
enemies; it's simply a matter of finding the
sworn
enemy, locating a nest of his clerics, and
bringing
them all together. And a demon under the
control
of a mage can be sent back to the Abyssal
Planes
by discovering the summoning spell and
breaking
it. But an uncontrolled demon—the only
way to
get rid of it that I know of is to find its
focus-object
and break it. Even that may not work
if it
has achieved enough power. With enough accu-
mulated
power, or enough worshipers believing in
his
godhood, even breaking his focus wouldn't send
him
back to the Abyssal Planes. If that happens—
well,
you first have to find a demon-killing weapon,
then
you have to get close enough to strike a killing
blow.
And you hope that he isn't strong enough to
have
gone beyond needing a physical form. Or you
damage
him enough to break the power he gets
from
his followers' belief—but that's even harder
to do
than finding a demon-killing blade."
"And,
needless to say, demon-killing weapons are
few and
far between."
"And
it isn't terribly likely that you're going to
get
past a demon's reach to get that killing blow in,
once
he's taken his normal form."
Tarma
pulled off her boots, and inspected the
soles
with a melancholy air. "How likely is that—an
uncontrolled
demon?"
"Not
really likely," Kethry admitted. "I'm just
being
careful—giving you worst-case first. It's a lot
more
likely that he's under the control of a mage
that's
using him to build a power base for himself.
That's
the scenario I'd bet on. I've seen this trick
pulled
more than once before I met you. It works
quite
well, provided you can keep giving your con-
gregation
what they want."
"So
what's next?"
"Well,
I'd suggest we wait until morning, and see
what I
can find out among the mages while you see
if you
can get any more mercenaries to talk."
"Somehow
I was afraid you'd say that."
They
met back at the inn at noon; Tarma was
empty-handed,
but Kethry had met with a certain
amount
of success. At least she had a name, an
address,
and a price—a fat skin of strong wine
taken
with her, with a promise of more to come.
The
address was in the scummiest section of the
town,
hard by the communal refuse heap. Both
women
kept their hands on the hilts of their blades
while
making their way down the rank and odorous
alleyway;
there were flickers of movement at vari-
ous
holes in the walls (you could hardly call them
"doors"
or "windows") but they were left unmo-
lested.
More than one of the piles of what seemed
to be
rotting refuse that dotted the alley proved to
be a
human, though it was difficult to tell for cer-
tain if
they were living humans or corpses. Kethry
again
seemed blithely unaware of the stench; Tarma
fought
her stomach and tried to breathe as little as
possible,
and that little through her mouth.
At
length they came to a wall that boasted a
proper
door; Kethry rapped on it. A mumbled voice
answered
her; she whispered something Tarma
couldn't
make out. Evidently it was the proper
response,
as the door swung open long enough for
them to
squeeze through, then shut hurriedly be-
hind them.
Tarma
blinked in surprise at what lay beyond
the
alleyside door. The fetid aroma of the air out-
side
was gone. There was a faint ghost of wine, and
an even
fainter ghost of incense. The walls were
covered
with soft, colorful rugs; more rugs covered
the
floor. On top of the rugs were huge, plush
cushions.
The room was a rainbow of subtle reds
and
oranges and yellows. Tarma was struck with a
sudden
closing of the throat, and she blinked to
clear
misting eyes. This place reminded her forci-
bly of
a Shin'a'in tent.
Fortunately
the woman who turned from locking
the
door to greet them was not a Clanswoman, or
Tarma
might have had difficulty in ridding her
eyes of
that traitorous mist. She was draped head
to toe
with a veritable marketplace-full of veils, so
that
only her eyes showed. The voluminous cover-
ing,
which rivaled the room for color and variety of
pattern,
was not, however, enough to hide the fact
that
she was wraith-thin. And above the veils, the
black
eyes were gray-ringed, bloodshot, and haggard.
"You
know my price?" came a thin whisper.
Kethry
let the heavy wineskin slide to her feet,
and she
nudged it over to the woman with one toe.
"Three
more follow, one every two days, from the
master
of the Blacke Ewe."
"What
do you wish to know?"
"How
comes this thing they call Thalhkarsh
here—and
why?"
The
woman laughed crazily; Tarma loosened one
of her
knives in its hidden arm-sheath. What in the
name of
the Warrior had Kethry gotten them into?
"For
that I need not even scry! Oh, no, to my
sorrow,
that is something I know only too well!"
The
eyes leaked tears; Tarma averted her gaze,
embarrassed.
"A
curse on my own pride, and another on my
curiosity!
For now he knows my aura, knows it
well—and
calls me—and only the wine can stop my
feet
from taking me to him—" the thin voice whined
to a
halt, and the eyes closed, as if in a sudden
spasm
of pain.
For a
long moment the woman stood, still as a
thing
made of wood, and Tarma feared they'd get
nothing
more out of her. Then the eyes opened
again,
and fixed Kethry with a stillettolike glare.
"Hear
then the tale of my folly—'tis short enough.
When
Thalhkarsh raised his temple, all in a single
night,
I thought to scry it and determine what sort
of
creature was master of it. My soul-self was
trapped
by him, like a cruel child traps a mouse,
and
like cruel children, he and his priest tormented
it—for
how long, I cannot say. Then they seemed to
forget
me; let me go again, to crawl back to myself.
But
they had not forgotten me. I soon learned that
each
night he would call me back to his side. Each
night I
drink until I can no longer hear the call, but
each
night it takes more wine to close my ears. One
night
it will not be enough, and I shall join his
other—brides."
The
veils shook and trembled.
"This
much only did I learn. Thalhkarsh is a
demon;
summoned by mistake instead of an imp.
He
bides here by virtue of his focus, the bottle that
was
meant to contain the imp. He is powerful; his
priest
is a mage as well, and has his own abilities
augmented
by the demon's. No sane person would
bide in
this town with them rising to prominence
here."
The
woman turned back to the door in a flutter
of thin
fabric and cracked it open again. One sticklike
arm and
hand pointed the way out. "That is my
rede;
take it if you are not fools."
Tarma
was only too pleased to escape the cham-
ber,
which seemed rather too confining of a sud-
den.
Kethry paused, concern on her face, to reach a
tentative
hand toward the veiled mystery. The
woman
made a repudiating motion. "Do not pity
me!"
she whispered harshly. "You cannot know! He
is
terrible—but he is also glorious—so—glorious—"
Her
eyes glazed for a moment, then focused again,
and she
slammed the door shut behind them.
Kethry
laced herself into the only dress she owned,
a
sensuous thing of forest green silk, a scowl twist-
ing her
forehead. "Why do I have to be the one
pawed
at and drooled over?"
Tarma
chuckled. "You were the one who decreed
against
using any more magic than we had to," she
pointed
out.
"Well,
I don't want to chance that mage detect-
ing it
and getting curious!"
"And
you were the one who didn't want to chance
using
illusion."
"What
if something should break it?"
"Then
don't complain if I can't take your place.
You
happen to be the one of us that is lovely,
amber-haired,
and toothsome, not I. And you are
the one
with the manner-born. No merchant-lord or
minor
noble is going to open his doors to a nomad
mercenary,
and no decadent stripling is going to
whisper
secrets into the ear of one with a face like
an
ill-tempered hawk and a body like a sword-
blade.
Now hurry up, or the market will be closed
and
we'll have to wait until the morrow."
Kethry
grumbled under her breath, but put more
speed
into her preparations. They sallied forth into
the
late afternoon, playing parts they had often
taken
before, Kethry assuming the manners of the
rank
she actually was entitled to, playing the minor
noblewoman
on a journey to relatives with Tarma
as her
bodyguard.
As was
very often the case, the marketplace was
also
the gathering-place for the offspring of what
passed
for aristocracy in this borderland trade-town.
Within
no great span of time Kethry had garnered
invitations
to dine with half a dozen would-be gal-
lants.
She chose the most dissipated of them, but
persuaded
him to make a party of the occasion, and
invite
his friends.
A bit
miffed by the spoiling of his plans (which
had not
included having any competition for Kethry's
assets),
he agreed. As with the common folk, the
well-born
had taken to closing themselves behind
sturdy
doors at the setting of the sun, and with it
already
low in the west, he hastened to send a
servant
around to collect his chosen companions.
The
young man's father was not at home, being
off on
a trading expedition. This had figured very
largely
in his plans, for he had purloined the key to
his
father's plushly appointed gazebo for his enter-
tainment.
The place was as well furnished as many
homes:
full of soft divans and wide couches, and
boasting
seven little alcoves off the main room, and
two
further rooms for intimate entertainment be-
sides.
Tarma's acting abilities were strained to the
uttermost
by the evening's events; she was hard-
put to
keep from laughing aloud at Kethry's perfor-
mance
and the reactions of the young men to her.
To
anyone who did not know her, Kethry embodied
the
very epitome of light-minded, light-skirted, ca-
pricious
demi-nobility. No one watching her would
have
guessed she ever had a thought in her head
besides
her own pleasuring.
To the
extreme displeasure of those few female
companions
that had been brought to the festivi-
ties,
she monopolized all the male attention in the
room.
It wasn't long before she had sorted out which
of them
had actually been to one of the infamous
"Rites
of Dark Desires" and which had only heard
rumors.
Those who had not been bold enough to
attend
discovered themselves subtly dismissed from
the
inner circle, and soon repaired to the gardens
or
semi-private alcoves to enjoy the attentions of
the
females they had brought, but ignored. Kethry
lured
the three favored swains into one of the pri-
vate
rooms, motioning Tarma to remain on guard at
the
door. She eventually emerged; hot-eyed, con-
temptuous,
and disheveled. Snores echoed from the
room
behind her.
"Let's
get out of here before I lose my temper and
go back
to wring their necks," she snarled, while
Tarma
choked back a chuckle. "Puppies! They
should
still be in diapers, every one of them! Not
anything
resembling a real adult among them! I
swear
to you—ah, never mind. I'd just like to see
them
get some of the treatment they've earned.
Like a
good spanking and a long stint in a hermitage—
preferably
one in the middle of a desert, stocked
with
nothing but hard bread, water, and boring
religious
texts!"
No one
followed them out into the night, which
was not
overly surprising, given the fears of the
populace.
"I
hope it was worth it," Tarma said, as casually
as she
could.
"It
was," Kethry replied, a little cooler. "They
were
all very impressed with the whole ritual, and
remembered
everything they saw in quite lurid de-
tail.
It seems that it is the High Priest who is the
one
truly in command; from the sound of it, my
guess
was right about his plans. He conducts every
aspect
of the ritual; he calls the 'god' up, and he
sends
him back again. The god selects those of the
females
brought to him that he wants, the male
followers
get what's left, or share the few female
followers
he has. It's a rather unpleasant combina-
tion of
human sacrifice and orgy. The High Priest
must be
the magician that summoned the demon in
the
first place. He's almost certainly having the
demon
transform himself, since the god is almost
unbearably
attractive, and the females he selects go
to him
willingly—at least at first. After his initial
attentions,
they're no longer in any condition to
object
to much of anything. Those three back there
were
positively obscene. They gloated over all the
details
of what Thalhkarsh does to his 'brides,' all
the
while doing their best to get me out of my
clothing
so they could demonstrate the 'rites.' It
was all
I could do to keep from throwing up on
them."
"You
sleep-spelled them?"
"Better,
I dream-spelled them, just like I did
with
our 'customers' when I was posing as a whore
back
when we first met. It's as easy as sleep-spelling
them,
it's a very localized magic that isn't likely to
be
detected, and it will keep our disguises intact.
They'll
have the best time their imaginations can
possibly
provide."
Kethry
looked suddenly weary as they approached
their
inn. "Bespeak me a bath, would you, dearheart?
I feel
filthy—inside and out."
The
next night was the night of moon-dark, the
night
of one of the more important of the new
deity's
rituals, and there was a pair of spies watch-
ing the
streets that led to Temple Row with partic-
ular
care. Those two pairs of eyes paid particularly
close
attention to two women making their cautious
way
through the darkened and deserted streets,
muffled
head-to-toe in cloaks. Though faint squeals
and
curses showed that neither of them could see
well
enough to avoid the rocks and fetid heaps of
refuse
that dotted the street, they seemed not to
wish
any kind of light to brighten their path. Gold
peeked
out from the hoods; the half-seen faces were
old
before their time; their eyelids drooped with
boredom
that had become habit, but their eyes re-
vealed
a kind of fearful anticipation. Their destina-
tion
was the Temple of Thalhkarsh. They were
intercepted
a block away, by two swiftly moving
figures
who neatly knocked them unconscious and
spirited
them into a nearby alleyway.
Tarma
spat out several unintelligible oaths. The
dim
light of a heavily shuttered dark-lantern fell on
the two
bodies at her feet. Beneath the cloaks, the
now
unconscious women had worn little more than
heavy
jewelry and a strategically placed veil or
two.
"We'll
be searched, you can bet on it," she said in
disgust.
"And where the bloody Hell are we going
to hide
weapons in these outfits?"
In
truth, there wasn't enough cover among the
chains
and medallions to have concealed even the
smallest
of her daggers.
"We
can't," Kethry replied flatly. "So that leaves
—Warrl?"
Tarma
pursed her lips. "Hmm. That's a thought.
Fur-face,
could you carry two swords?"
The
kyree cocked his head to one side, and exper-
imentally
mouthed Need's sheath. Kethry took the
blade
off and held it for him to take. He swung his
head
from side to side a little, then dropped the
blade.
Not
that way, Tarma heard in her mind. Too
clumsy.
Won't balance right; couldn't run or jump—
might
get stuck in a tight doorway. I want to be able to
bite—these
teeth aren't just for decoration, you know!
And
anyway, I can't carry two blades at the same time
in my
mouth.
"Could
we strap them to you, somehow?"
If you
do, I can try how it feels.
Using
their belts they managed to strap the
blades
along his flanks, one on either side, to Ward's
satisfaction.
He ran from one end of the alley to the
other,
then shook himself carefully without dis-
lodging
them or getting tangled by them.
It'll
work, he said with satisfaction. Let's go.
They
left their victims sleeping in a dead-end
alley;
they'd be rather embarrassed when they woke
stark-naked
in the morning. They'd come to no
harm;
thanks to Thalhkarsh not even criminals
moved
about the city by night, and the evening was
warm
enough that they wouldn't suffer from expo-
sure.
Whether or not they'd die of mortification
remained
to be seen.
The
partners left their own clothing hidden in
another
alley farther on. Muffled in the stolen cloaks,
they
approached the temple, Warrl a shadow flit-
ting
behind them.
On
seeing the entrance, Tarma gave a snort of
disgust.
It was gaudy and decadent in the extreme,
with
carvings and statuary depicting every vice
imaginable
(and some she'd never dreamed existed)
encrusting
the entire front face.
The
single guard was a fat, homely man who
moved
slowly and clumsily, as if he were under the
influence
of a drug. He seemed little interested in
the men
who passed him by, other than seeing that
they
dropped their cloaks and giving them a cur-
sory
search for weaponry. The women were an-
other
case altogether. Between the preoccupation
he was
likely to have once he'd seen Kethry and the
shadows
cast by the carvings in the torchlight, Warrl
should
have no difficulty in slipping past him.
Kethry
touched the swords woman's arm slightly
as they
stood in line and nodded toward the guard,
giving
a little wiggle as she did so. Tarma knew
what
that meant—Kethry was going to make cer-
tain
the guard's attention stayed on her. The
Shin'a'in
dropped her eyelids briefly in assent. When
their
turn came and they dropped their cloaks,
Kethry
posed and postured provocatively beneath
the
guard's searching hands. He was so busy filling
his eyes—and
greasy paws—with her that he paid
scant
attention to either Tarma or the shadow that
slipped
inside behind her.
When
he'd delayed long enough that there was
considerable
grumbling from those waiting their
turn
behind the two women, he finally let Kethry
pass
with real reluctance. They slipped inside the
smoke-wreathed
portal and found themselves walk-
ing
down a dark corridor, heavy with the scent of
cloying
incense. When the corridor ended, they
passed
through a curtain of some heavy material
that
moved of itself, as if it sensed their presence,
and had
a slippery feel and a sour smell to it. Once
past
that last obstruction, they found themselves
blinking
in the light of the temple proper.
The
interior was almost austere compared with
the
exterior. The walls were totally bare of orna-
mentation;
the pillars upholding the roof were sim-
ple
columns and not debauched caryatids. That
simplicity
left the eye only one place to go—the
altar,
a massive black slab with manacles at each
corner
and what could only be blood-grooves carved
into
its surface.
There
was no sign of any bottle.
There
were huge lanterns suspended from the
ceiling
and torches in brackets on the pillars, but
the
walls themselves were in shadow. There were
braziers
sending plumes of incense into the air on
either
side of the door. Beneath the too-sweet odor
Tarma
recognized the taint of tran-dust. This was
where
and how the guard had acquired his dreamy
clumsiness.
She nudged Kethry and they moved
hastily
along the wall to a spot where a draft car-
ried
fresher air to them. Tran-dust was dangerous
at
best, and could be fatal to them, for it slowed
reactions
and blurred the senses. They would need
both at
full sharpness tonight.
There
was a drumming and an odd, wild music
that
was almost more felt than heard. From a door-
way
behind the altar emerged the High Priest, at
this
distance, little more than a vague shape in
elaborate
robes of crimson and gold. Behind him
came an
acolyte, carrying an object that made
Kethry's
eyes widen with satisfaction; it was a
bottle,
red, that glowed dimly from within. The
acolyte
fitted this into a niche in the foot of the
altar
near the edge; the place all the blood-grooves
drained
into.
They
worked their way closer, moving carefully
along
the wall. When they were close enough to
make
out the High Priest's features, Kethry became
aware
of his intensely sexual attraction. As if to
underscore
this, she saw eager devotion written
plainly
on the face of a woman standing near to the
altar-place.
She tightened her lips; evidently this
was one
aspect of domination that both high priest
and
demon-deity shared. She warded her own mind
against
beglamorment. Tarma she knew she need
not
protect; by her very nature as Sword Sworn
she
would be immune to this kind of deception.
A gong
began sounding; slowly, insistently. The
music
increased in tempo; built to a crescendo—a
blood-red
brightness behind the altar intensified,
echoing
the rising music. At the climax of both,
when
the altar was almost too bright to look at,
something
appeared, pulling all the light and sound
into
itself.
He was
truly beautiful; poisonously beautiful.
Compared
to him, the priest's attraction was insig-
nificant.
The line of women being brought in by
two
more acolytes ceased their fearful trembling,
sighed,
and yearned toward him.
He
beckoned to one, who literally ran to him,
eagerly.
Tarma
turned her eyes resolutely away from the
spectacle
being presented at the altar-place. There
was
nothing either of them could do to help the
intended
sacrifice; she was thanking her Goddess
that
Need was not at Kethry's hand just now. The
sorceress
had been known once or twice to become
a
berserker under the blade's influence, and she
was not
altogether sure how much the sword was
capable
of in the way of thought. It wasn't mindless
—but in
a situation like this it was moot whether or
not it
would prefer the long term goal of destroying
the
demon as opposed to the short term goal of
ending
the sacrifice's torment.
At
least the rest of the devotees were so preoccu-
pied
with the victim and her suffering that they
scarcely
noticed the two women slowly making their
way
closer to the altar. Tarma looked closely into
one
face, and quickly looked away, nauseated. Those
glazed
eyes—swollen lips—the panting—it would
have
been obvious even to a child that the man was
erotically
enraptured by what he was watching.
Tarma
caught Kethry's eyes a moment; the other
nodded,
lips tightly compressed. The Shin'a'in
swordswoman
was past hoping to end this quietly.
She had
begun to devoutly wish for a chance to
cleave
a few skulls around here, and she had a
shrewd
suspicion that Kethry felt the same.
The
young High Priest looked up from his work,
and saw
the anomalous—two women, dressed as de-
votees,
but paying no attention to the rites, and seem-
ingly
immune to the magical charisma of Thalhkarsh.
They
had worked their way nearly to the altar itself.
He looked
sharply at them—and noted the fight-
er's
muscles and the faint aura of the god-touched
about
the thin one, then the unmistakable presence
of a
warding spell on the other.
His
mind flared with sudden alarm.
He
stepped forward once—
He was
given no time to act on his suspicions.
Tarma
saw his alerted glance, and whistled shrilly
for
Warrl.
From
the crowd to the left of her came shouts—
then
screeches, and the sound of panic. Warrl was
covering
the distance between himself and Tarma
with
huge leaps, and was slashing out with his
teeth
as he did so. The worshipers scrambled to get
out of
the way of those awful jaws, clearing the last
few
feet for him. He skidded to a halt beside her;
with
one hand she snatched Need from her sheath
and
tossed her to Kethry, with the other she un-
sheathed
her own blade, turning the operation into
an
expert stroke that took out the two men nearest
her.
Warrl took his stand, guarding Tarma's back.
Need
had sailed sweetly into Kethry's hand, hilt
first;
she turned her catch into a slash that mir-
rored
Tarma's and cleared space for herself. Then
she
found herself forced to defend against two sorts
of
attack; the physical, by the temple guards, and
the
magical, by the High Priest.
While the
demon unaccountably watched, but did
nothing,
the priest forced Kethry back against the
wall.
As bolts of force crashed against the shield
she'd
hastily thrown up, Kethry had firsthand proof
that
his magics had been augmented by the demon.
Even
so, she was the more powerful magician—but
she was
being forced to divide her attentions.
Warrl
solved the problem; the priest-mage was
not
expecting a physical attack. Warrl's charge from
the
side brought him down, and in moments the
kyree
had torn out his throat. That left Kethry free
to
erect a magical barrier between themselves and
reinforcements
for the guards they were cutting
down.
She breathed a prayer of thanks to whatever
power
might be listening as she did so—thanks that
the
past few months had required so little of her
talents
that her arcane armaments and energy re-
serves
were at their height.
Tarma
grinned maliciously as a wall of fire sprang
up at
Kethry's command, cutting them off from the
rest of
the temple. Now there were only two aco-
lytes,
the remaining handful of guards, and the
oddly
inactive demon to face.
"Hold."
The
voice was quiet, yet stirred uneasiness in
Tarma's
stomach. She tried to move—and found
that
she couldn't. The guards were utterly motion-
less,
as lifeless as statues. Only the acolytes were
able to
move, and all their attention was on the
demon.
His
gaze was bent on Kethry.
Tarma
heard a rumbling snarl from behind the
altar.
Before she could try to prevent him, Warrl
leaped
from the body of the high priest in a suici-
dal
attack on the demon.
Thalhkarsh
did not even glance in the kyree`s
direction;
he intercepted Warrl's attack with a seem-
ingly
negligent backhanded slap. The kyree yelped
as the
hand caught him and sent him crashing into
the
wall behind Tarma, limp and silent.
"Woman,
I could use you." The demon's voice
was low
and persuasive. "Your knowledge is great,
the
power you command formidable, and you have
infinitely
more sense than that poor fool your fa-
miliar
killed. I could make you a queen among ma-
gicians.
I would make you my consort."
Tarma
fumed in impotence as the demon reached
for her
oathkin.
Kethry's
mind bent beneath the weight of the
demon's
attentions. It was incredibly difficult to
think
clearly; all her thoughts seemed washed out
in the
red glare of his gaze. Her enchantments to
counter
beguilement seemed as thin as silk veils,
and
about as protective.
"You
think me cruel, evil. Yet what ever have I
done
save to give each of these people what he
wants?
The women have but to see me to desire
me; the
men lust for what women I do not care to
take—all
my worshipers want power. All these
things
I have given in exchange for worship. Surely
that is
fair, is it not? It would be cruelty to with-
hold
these things, not cruelty to bestow them."
His
voice was reasoned and persuasive. Kethry
found
herself wavering from what she had until
now
thought to be the truth.
"Is
it the bonds with that scrap of steel that
trouble
you? Fear not—it would be the work of a
single
thought to break them. And think of the
knowledge
that would be yours in the place at my
side!
Think of the power ..."
His
eyes glowed yet more brightly and seduc-
tively,
and they filled her vision.
"Think
of the pleasure ..."
Pain
lancing across her thoughts woke her from
the
dreams called up by those eyes. She looked
down at
the blood trickling along her right hand—
she'd
clenched it around the bare blade of her sword
with
enough force to cut her palm. And with the
pain
came the return of independent thought. Even
if
everything he said were true, and not the usual
truth-twisting
demons found so easy, she was not
free to
follow her own will.
There
were other, older promises that bound her.
There
was the geas she had willingly taken with
the
fighting-gifts bestowed by Need, and the pledge
she had
made as a White Winds sorceress to use
her
powers for the greater good of mankind. And by
no
means least, there was the vow she had made
before
all of Liha'irden; pledging Tarma that one
day she
would take a mate (or mates) and raise a
clutch
of children to bear the banner and name of
Tarma's
lost Clan. Only death itself could keep her
from
fulfilling that vow. And it would kill Tarma
should
she violate it.
She
stared back at the demon's inhuman eyes,
defiance
written in every fiber.
He
flared with anger. "You are the more foolish,
then!"
he growled—and backhanded her into the
wall as
casually as he had Warrl.
She was
halfway expecting such a move, and
managed
to relax enough to take the blow limply. It
felt
rather like being hit with a battering ram, but
the
semiconsciousness she displayed as she slid
into a
heap was mostly feigned.
"You
will find you have ample leisure to regret
your
defiance later!" he snarled in the same petu-
lant
tones as a thwarted spoiled child.
Now he
turned his attentions to Tarma.
"So—the
nomad—"
Tarma
did her best to simulate a fascination with
the
demon that she did not in the least feel.
"It
seems that I must needs petition the swords-
woman.
Well enough, it may be that you are even
more
suitable than your foolish companion."
The
heat of his gaze was easily dissipated by the
cool
armoring of her Goddess that sheathed Tarma's
heart
and soul. There simply was nothing there for
the
demon to work on; the sensual, emotional parts
of her
nature had been subsumed into devotion to
the
Warrior when Tarma had Sworn Sword-Oath.
But he
couldn't know that—or could he?
At any
rate her attempt to counterfeit the same
bemused
rapture his brides had shown was appar-
ently
successful.
"You
are no beauty; well, then—look into my
eyes,
and see the face and body that might be yours
as my
priestess."
Tarma
looked—she dared not look away. His eyes
turned
mirrorlike; she saw herself reflected in them,
then
she saw herself change.
The
lovely, lithe creature that gazed back at her
was
still recognizably Tarma—but oh, the differ-
ences
that a few simple changes made! This was a
beauty
that was a match for Thalhkarsh's own. For
a scant
second, Tarma allowed herself to be truly
caught
by that vision.
The
demon felt her waver—and in that moment
of
weakness, exerted his power on the bond that
made
her Kal'enedral.
And Tarma
realized at that instant that Thalh-
karsh
was truly on the verge of attaining godlike
powers,
for she felt the bond weaken—
Thalhkarsh
frowned at the unexpected resistance
he
encountered, then turned his full attention to
breaking
the stubborn strength of the bond.
And
that changing of the focus of his attention in
turn
released Tarma from her entrapment. Not
much—but
enough for her to act.
Tarma
had resisted the demon with every ounce
of
stubbornness in her soul, augmenting the strength
of the
bond, but she wasn't blind to what was going
on
around her.
And to
her horror she saw Kethry creeping up on
the
demon's back, a fierce and stubborn anger in
her
eyes.
Tarma
knew that no blow the sorceress struck
would
do more than anger Thalhkarsh. She decided
to
yield the tiniest bit, timing her moment of weak-
ness
with care, waiting until the instant Need was
poised
to strike at the demon's unprotected back.
And as
Thalhkarsh's magical grip loosened, her
own
blade-hand snapped out, hilt foremost, to strike
and
break the demon's focus-bottle.
At the
exact moment Tarma moved, Kethry bur-
ied
Need to the hilt in the demon's back, as the
sound
of breaking glass echoed and re-echoed the
length
and breadth of the temple.
Any one
of those actions, by itself, might not
have
been sufficient to defeat him; but combined—
Thalhkarsh
screamed in pain, unanticipated, un-
expected,
and all the worse for that. He felt at the
same
moment a good half of his stored power flow-
ing out
of him like water from a broken bottle—
—a
broken bottle!
His
focus—was gone!
And
pain like a red-hot iron seared through him,
shaking
him to the roots of his being.
He lost
his carefully cultivated control.
His
focus was destroyed, and with it, the power
he had
been using to hold his followers in thrall.
And the
pain—it could not destroy him, but he was
not
used to being the recipient of pain. It took him
by
surprise, and broke his concentration and cost
him yet
more power.
He lost
mastery of his form. He took on his true
demonic
aspect—as horrifying as he had been
beautiful.
And now
his followers saw for the first time the
true
appearance of what they had been calling a
god.
Their faith had been shaken when he did noth-
ing to
save the life of his High Priest. Now it was
destroyed
by the panic they felt on seeing what he
was.
They
screamed, turned mindlessly, and attempted
to
flee.
His
storehouse of power was gone. His other
power-source
was fleeing madly in fear. His focus
was
destroyed, and he was racked with pain, he
who had
never felt so much as a tiny pinprick
before.
Every spell he had woven fell to ruins about
him.
Thalhkarsh
gave a howling screech that rose un-
til the
sound was nearly unbearable; he again
slapped
Kethry into the wall. Somehow she man-
aged to
take her blade with her, but this time her
limp
unconsciousness as she slid down the wall
was not
feigned.
He
howled again, burst into a tower of red and
green
flame, and the walls began to shift.
Tarma
dodged past him and dragged Kethry un-
der the
heavy marble slab of the altar, then made a
second
trip to drag Warrl under its dubious shelter.
The
ground shook, and the remaining devotees
rushed
in panic-stricken confusion from one hoped-
for
exit to another. The ceiling groaned with a
living
voice, and the air was beginning to cloud
with a
sulfurous fog. Then cracks appeared in the
roof,
and the trapped worshipers screeched hope-
lessly
as it began to crumble and fall in on them.
Tarma
crouched beneath the altar stone, protect-
ing the
bodies of Kethry and Warrl with her own—
and
hoped the altar was strong enough to shelter
them as
the temple began falling to ruins around
them.
It
seemed like an eternity, but it couldn't have
been
more than an hour or two before dawn that
they
crawled out from under the battered slab,
pushing
and digging rubble out of the way with
hands
that were soon cut and bleeding. Warrl did
his
best to help, but his claws and paws were meant
for
climbing and clinging, not digging; and besides
that,
he was suffering from more than one cracked
rib.
Eventually Tarma made him stop trying to
help
before he lamed himself.
"Feh,"
she said distastefully, when they emerged.
The
stone—or whatever it was—that the building
had
been made of was rotting away, and the odor
was
overpowering. She heaved herself wearily up
onto
the cleaner marble of the altar and surveyed
the
wreckage about them.
"Gods—to
think I wanted to do this quietly! Well,
is it
gone, I wonder, or did we just chase it away for
a
while?"
Kethry
crawled up beside her, wincing. "I can't
tell;
there's too many factors involved. I don't think
Need is
a demon-killer, but I don't know every-
thing
there is to know about her. Did we get rid of
him
because he lost the faith of his devotees, be-
cause
you broke the focus, because of the wound I
gave
him, or all three? And does it matter? He
won't
be able to return unless he's called, and I
can't
imagine anyone wanting to call him, not for a
long,
long time." She paused, then continued. "You
had me
frightened, she'enedra."
"Whyfor?"
"I
didn't know what he was offering you in re-
turn
for your services. I was afraid if he could see
your
heart—"
"He
didn't offer me anything I really wanted,
dearling.
I was never in any danger. All he wanted
to give
me was a face and figure to match his own."
"But
if he'd offered you your Clan and your voice
back—"
Kethry replied soberly.
"I
still wouldn't have been in any danger," Tarma
replied
with a little more force than she intended.
"My
people are dead, and no demon could bring
them
back to life. They've gone on elsewhere and
he
could never touch them. And without them—"
she
made a tiny, tired shrug, "—without them,
what
use is my voice—or for that matter, the most
glorious
face and body, and all the power in the
universe?"
"I
thought he had you for a moment—"
"So
did he. He was trying to break my bond with
the
Star-Eyed. What he didn't know was all he was
arousing
was my disgust. I'd die before I'd give in
to
something that uses people as casually as that
thing
did."
Kethry
got her belt and sheath off Warrl and
slung
Need in her accustomed place on her hip.
Tarma
suppressed the urge to giggle, despite pain
and
weariness. Kethry, in the sorceress' robes she
usually
wore, and belted with a blade looked odd
enough.
Kethry, dressed in three spangles and a
scrap
of cloth and wearing the sword looked totally
absurd.
Nevertheless
Tarma copied her example. "Well,
that
damn goatsticker of yours got us into another
one we
won't get paid for," she said in more normal
tones,
fastening the buckle so that her sword hung
properly
on her back. "Bloody Hell! If you count in
the ale
we had to pour and the bribes we had to
pay, we
lost money on this one."
"Don't
be so certain of that, she'enedra." Kethry's
face
was exhausted and bloodstreaked, one of her
eyes
was blackened and swelling shut and she had
livid
bruises all over her body. On top of that she
was
covered in dust, and filthy, sweat-lank locks of
hair
were straggling into her face. But despite all of
that,
her eyes still held a certain amusement. "In
case
you hadn't noticed, these little costumes of
ours
are real gold and gems. We happen to be wear-
ing a
small fortune in jewelry."
"Warrior's
Truth!" Tarma looked a good deal
more
closely at her scanty attire, and discovered
her
partner was right. She grinned with real satis-
faction.
"I guess I owe that damn blade of yours an
apology."
"Only,"
Kethry grinned back, "If we get back
into
our own clothing before dawn."
"Why
dawn?"
"Because
that's when the rightful owners of these
trinkets
are likely to wake up. I don't think they'd
let us
keep them when we're found here if they
know we
have them."
"Good
point—but why should we want anyone to
know
we're responsible for this mess?"
"Because
when the rest of the population scrapes
up
enough nerve to find out what happened, we're
going
to be heroines—or at least we will until they
find
out how many of their fathers and brothers
and
husbands were trapped here tonight. By then,
we'll
be long gone. Even if they don't reward us—
and
they might, for delivering the town from a
demon—our
reputation has just been made!"
Tarma's
jaw dropped as she realized the truth of
that.
"Shek," she said. "Turn me into a sheep!
You're
right!" She threw back her head and laughed
into
the morning sky. "Now all we need is the
fortune
and a king's blessing!"
"Don't
laugh, oathkin," Kethry replied with a
grin.
"We just might get those, and sooner than you
think.
After all, aren't we demon-slayers?"
Eight
Someone
wrote a song about it—but that was
later.
Much later—when the dust and dirt were
gone
from the legend. When the sweat and blood
were
only memories, and the pain was less than
that.
And when the dead were all but forgotten
except
to their own.
"Deep
into the stony hills
Miles
from keep or hold,
A
troupe of guards comes riding
With a
lady and her gold.
Riding
in the center,
Shrouded
in her cloak of fur
Companioned
by a maiden
And a
toothless, aged cur."
"And
every packtrain we've sent out for the past
two
months has vanished without a trace—and with-
out
survivors," the silk merchant Grumio concluded,
twisting
an old iron ring on one finger. "Yet the
decoy
trains were allowed to reach their destina-
tions
unmolested. It's uncanny—and if it goes on
much
longer, we'll be ruined."
In the
silence that followed his words, he studied
the odd
pair of mercenaries before him. He knew
very
well that they knew he was doing so. Eventu-
ally
there would be no secrets in this room—even-
tually.
But he would parcel his out as if they were
bits of
his heart—and he knew they would do the
same. It
was all part of the bargaining process.
Neither
of the two women seemed in any great
hurry
to reply to his speech. The crackle of the fire
behind
him in this tiny private eating room sounded
unnaturally
loud in the absence of conversation.
Equally
loud were the steady whisking of a whet-
stone
on blade-edge, and the muted murmur of
voices
from the common room of the inn beyond
their
closed door.
The
whetstone was being wielded by the swords-
woman,
Tarma by name, who was keeping to her
self-appointed
task with an indifference to Grumio's
words
that might—or might not—be feigned. She
sat
across the table from him, straddling her bench
in a
position that left him mostly with a view of her
back
and the back of her head. What little he might
have
been able to see of her face was screened by
her
unruly shock of coarse black hair. He was just
as glad
of that; there was something about her cold,
expressionless,
hawklike face with its wintry blue
eyes
that sent shivers up his spine. "The eyes of a
killer,"
whispered one part of him. "Or a fanatic."
The
other partner cleared her throat and he grate-
fully
turned his attention to her. Now there was a
face a
man could easily rest his eyes on! She faced
him
squarely, this sorceress called Kethry, leaning
slightly
forward on her folded arms, placing her
weight
on the table between them. The light from
the
fire and the oil lamp on their table fell fully on
her. A
less canny man than Grumio might be
tempted
to dismiss her as being very much the
weaker,
the less intelligent of the two; she was
always
soft of speech, her demeanor refined and
gentle.
She was very attractive; sweet-faced and
quite
conventionally pretty, with hair like the fin-
est
amber and eyes of beryl-green. It would have
been
very easy to assume that she was no more
than
the swordswoman's vapid tagalong. A lover
perhaps—maybe
one with the right to those mage-
robes
she wore, but surely of no account in the
decision-making.
That
would have been the assessment of most
men.
But as he'd spoken, Grumio had now and
then
caught a disquieting glimmer in those calm
green
eyes. She had been listening quite carefully,
and
analyzing what she heard. He had not missed
the
fact that she, too, bore a sword. And not for the
show of
it, either—that blade had a well-worn scab-
bard
that spoke of frequent use. More than that,
what he
could see of the blade showed that it was
well-cared-for.
The
presence of that blade in itself was an anom-
aly;
most sorcerers never wore more than an eating
knife.
They simply hadn't the time—or the incli-
nation—to
attempt studying the arts of the swords-
man. To
Grumio's eyes the sword looked very odd
and
quite out-of-place, slung over the plain, buff-
colored,
calf-length robe of a wandering sorceress.
A
puzzlement; altogether a puzzlement.
"I
presume," Kethry said when he turned to face
her,
"that the road patrols have been unable to
find
your bandits."
She had
in turn been studying the merchant; he
interested
her. In his own way he was as much of
an
anomaly as she and Tarma were. There was
muscle
beneath the fat of good living, and old sword-
calluses
on his hands. This was no born-and-bred
merchant,
not when he looked to be as much re-
tired
mercenary as trader. And unless she was wildly
mistaken,
there was also a sharp mind beneath that
balding
skull. He knew they didn't come cheaply;
since
the demon-god affair their reputation had
spread,
and their fees had become quite respectable.
They
were even able—like Ikan and Justin—to pick
and
choose to some extent. On the surface this busi-
ness
appeared far too simple a task—one would simply
gather
a short-term army and clean these brigands
out. On
the surface, this was no job for a specialized
team
like theirs—and Grumio surely knew that. It
followed
then that there was something more to
this
tale of banditry than he was telling.
Kethry
studied him further. Certain signs seemed
to
confirm this surmise; he looked as though he had
not
slept well of late, and there seemed to be a
shadow
of deeper sorrow upon him than the loss of
mere
goods would account for.
She
wondered how much he really knew of them,
and she
paid close attention to what his answer to
her
question would be.
Grumio
snorted his contempt for the road pa-
trols.
"They rode up and down for a few days,
never
venturing off the Trade Road, and naturally
found
nothing. Over-dressed, over-paid, under-
worked
arrogant idiots!"
Kethry
toyed with a fruit left from their supper,
and
glanced up at the hound-faced merchant through
long
lashes that veiled her eyes and her thoughts.
The
next move would be Tarma's.
Tarma
heard her cue, and made her move. "Then
guard
your packtrains, merchant, if guards keep
these
vermin hidden."
He
started; her voice was as harsh as a raven's,
and
startled those not used to hearing it. One cor-
ner of
Tarma's mouth twitched slightly at his reac-
tion.
She took a perverse pleasure in using that
harshness
as a kind of weapon. A Shin'a'in learned
to
fight with many weapons, words among them.
Kal'enedral
learned the finer use of those weapons.
Grumio
saw at once the negotiating ploy these
two had
evidently planned to use with him. The
swordswoman
was to be the antagonizer, the sor-
ceress
the sympathizer. His respect for them rose
another
notch. Most freelance mercenaries hadn't
the
brains to count their pay, much less use subtle
bargaining
tricks. Their reputation was plainly well-
founded.
He just wished he knew more of them
than their
reputation; he was woefully short a full
hand in
this game. Why, he didn't even know where
the
sorceress hailed from, or what her School was!
Be that
as it may, once he saw the trick, he had
no
intention of falling for it.
"Swordlady,"
he said patiently, as though to a
child,
"to hire sufficient force requires we raise
the
price of goods above what people are willing to
pay."
As he
studied them further, he noticed some-
thing
else about them that was distinctly odd. There
was a
current of communication and understanding
running
between these two that had him thoroughly
puzzled.
He dismissed without a second thought
the
notion that they might be lovers, the signals
between
them were all wrong for that. No, it was
something
else, something more complicated than
that.
Something that you wouldn't expect between
a
Shin'a'in swordswoman and an outClansman—
something
perhaps, that only someone like he was,
with
experience in dealing with Shin'a'in, would
notice
in the first place.
Tarma
shook her head impatiently at his reply.
"Then
cease your inter-house rivalries, kadessa, and
send
all your trains together under a single large
force."
A new
ploy—now she was trying to anger him a
little—to
get him off-guard by insulting him. She
had
called him a kadessa, a little grasslands beast
that
only the Shin'a'in ever saw, a rodent so notori-
ously
greedy that it would, given food enough, eat
itself
to death; and one that was known for hoard-
ing
anything and everything it came across in its
nest-tunnels.
Well it
wasn't going to work. He refused to allow
the
insult to distract him. There was too much at
stake
here. "Respect, Swordlady," he replied with
a hint
of reproachfulness, "but we tried that, too.
The
beasts of the train were driven off in the night,
and the
guards and traders were forced to return
afoot.
This is desert country, most of it, and all
they
dared burden themselves with was food and
drink."
"Leaving
the goods behind to be scavenged. Huh.
Your
bandits are clever, merchant," the swords-
woman
replied thoughtfully. Grumio thought he
could
sense her indifference lifting.
"You
mentioned decoy trains?" Kethry interjected.
"Yes,
lady." Grumio's mind was still worrying
away at
the puzzle these two presented. "Only I
and the
men in the train knew which were the
decoys
and which were not, yet the bandits were
never
deceived, not once. We had taken extra care
that
all the men in the train were known to us,
too."
A glint
of gold on the smallest finger of Kethry's
left
hand finally gave him the clue he needed, and
the
crescent scar on the palm of that hand con-
firmed
his surmise. He knew without looking that
that
swordswoman would have an identical scar
and
ring. These two had sword Shin'a'in blood-
oath,
the oath of she'enedran; the strongest bond
known
to that notoriously kin-conscious race. The
blood-oath
made them closer than sisters, closer
than
lovers—so close they sometimes would think
as one.
In fact, the word she'enedran was sometimes
translated
as "two-made-one."
"So
who was it that passed judgment on your
estimable
guards?" Tarma's voice was heavy with
sarcasm.
"I
did, or my fellow merchants, or our own per-
sonal
guards. No one was allowed on the trains but
those who
had served us in the past or were known
to
those who had."
He
waited in silence for them to make reply.
Tarma
held her blade up to catch the firelight
and
examined her work with a critical eye. Evi-
dently
satisfied, she drove it home in the scabbard
slung
across her back with a fluid, unthinking grace,
then
swung one leg back over the bench to face him
as her
partner did. Grumio found the unflinching
chill
of her eyes disconcertingly hard to meet for
long.
In an
effort to find something else to look at, he
found
his gaze caught by the pendant she wore, a
thin
silver crescent surrounding a tiny amber flame.
That
gave him the last bit of information he needed
to make
everything fall into place—although now
he
realized that her plain brown clothing should
have
tipped him off as well, since most Shin'a'in
favored
wildly-colored garments heavy with bright
embroideries.
Tarma was a Sworn One, Kal'enedral,
pledged
to the service of the Shin'a'in Warrior, the
Goddess
of the New Moon and the South Wind.
Only
three things were of any import to her at
all—her
Goddess, her people, and her Clan (which,
of
course, would include her "sister" by blood-oath).
The
Sword Sworn were just as sexless and deadly
as the
weapons they wore.
"So
why come to us?" Tarma's expression indi-
cated
she thought their time was being wasted.
"What
makes you think that we can solve your
bandit
problem?"
"You—have
a certain reputation," he replied
guardedly.
A
single bark of contemptuous laughter was
Tarma's
only reply.
"If
you know our reputation, then you also know
that we
only take those assignments that—shall we
say—interest
us," Kethry said, looking wide-eyed
and
innocent. "What is there about your problem
that
could possibly be of any interest to us?"
Good—they
were intrigued, at least a little. Now,
for the
sake of poor little Lena, was the time to
hook
them and bring them in. His eyes stung a
little
with tears he would not shed—not now—not
in
front of them. Not until she was avenged.
"We
have a custom, we small merchant houses.
Our
sons must remain with their fathers to learn
the
trade, and since there are seldom more than
two or
three houses in any town, there is little in
the way
of choice for them when it comes time for
marriage.
For that reason, we are given to exchang-
ing
daughters of the proper age with our trade
allies
in other towns, so that our young people can
hopefully
find mates to their liking." His voice
almost
broke at the memory of watching Lena wav-
ing
good-bye from the back of her little mare, but
he
regained control quickly. It was a poor merchant
that
could not school his emotions. "There were no
less
than a dozen sheltered, gently-reared maidens
in the
very first packtrain they took. One of them
was my
niece. My only heir, and all that was left of
my
brother's family after the plague six years ago."
He
could continue no further.
Kethry's
breath hissed softly, and Tarma swal-
lowed
an oath.
"Your
knowledge of what interests us is very
accurate,
merchant," Tarma said after a long pause.
"I
congratulate you."
"You—you
accept?" Discipline could not keep
hope
out of his voice.
"I
pray you are not expecting us to rescue your
lost
ones," Kethry said as gently as she could. "Even
supposing
that the bandits were more interested in
slaves
to be sold than their own pleasure—which in
my
experience is not likely—there is very, very
little
chance that any of them still live. The shel-
tered,
the gentle, well, they do not survive—shock
—successfully."
"When
we knew that the packtrain had been
taken,
we sent agents to comb the slave markets.
They
returned empty-handed," he replied with as
much
stoicism as he could muster. "We will not ask
the
impossible of you; we knew when we sent for
you
there was no hope for them. No, we ask only
that
you wipe out this viper's den, to insure that
this
can never happen to us again—that you make
such an
example of them that no one dares try this
again—and
that you grant us revenge for what they
have
done to us!" There—that was his full hand.
Would
it be enough?
His
words—and more, the tight control of his
voice—struck
echoes from Tarma's own heart. And
she did
not need to see her partner to know her
feelings
in the matter.
"You
will have that, merchant-lord," she grated,
giving
him the title of respect. "We accept your
job—but
there are conditions."
"Swordlady,
any conditions you would set, I would
gladly
meet. Who am I to contest the judgment of
those
who destroyed Tha—"
"Hush!"
Kethry interrupted him swiftly, and cast
a wary
glance over her shoulder. "The less that is
said on
that subject, the better. I am still not al-
together
certain that what you were about to name
was
truly destroyed. It may have been merely ban-
ished,
and perhaps for no great span of time. It is
hardly
wise if the second case is true to call atten-
tion to
oneself by speaking Its name."
"Our
conditions, merchant, are simple," Tarma
continued,
outwardly unperturbed. Inwardly she
had uneasy
feelings about Thalhkarsh, feelings that
had her
ready to throw herself between Kethry and
anything
that even looked like a demon. "We will,
to all
appearances, leave on the morrow. You will
tell
all, including your fellow merchants, that you
could
not convince us to remain. Tomorrow night,
you—and
you alone, mind—will bring us, at a meet-
ing
place of your choosing, a cart and horse. . . ."
Now she
raised an inquiring eyebrow at Kethry.
"And
the kind of clothing and gear a lady of
wealth
and blood would be likely to have when
traveling.
The clothing should fit me. I will be
weaving
some complicated illusions, and anything I
do not
have to counterfeit will be of aid to me and
make
the rest stronger. You might include lots of
empty bags
and boxes," Kethry finished thoughtfully.
Tarma
continued; "The following morning a fine
lady
will ride in and order you to include her with
your
next packtrain. You, naturally, will do your
best to
dissuade her, as loudly and publicly as pos-
sible.
Now your next scheduled trip was—?"
"Coincidentally
enough, for the day after tomor-
row."
Grumio was plainly impressed. It looked as
though
he'd decided that Tarma and her partner
were
even cleverer than he'd thought.
"Good.
The less time we lose, the better off we
are.
Remember, only you are to be aware that the
lady
and the packtrain are not exactly what they
seem to
be. If you say one word otherwise to
anyone—"
The
merchant suddenly found himself staring at
the tip
of a very sharp dagger held a scant inch
away
from his nose.
"—I
will personally remove enough of your hide
to make
both of us slippers." The dagger disap-
peared
from Tarma's hand as mysteriously as it
had
appeared.
Grumio
had been startled, but had not been par-
ticularly
intimidated; Tarma gave him high marks
for
that.
"I
do not instruct the weaver in her trade," he
replied
with a certain dignity, "nor do I dictate the
setting
of a horseshoe to a smith. There is no reason
why I
should presume to instruct you in your trade
either."
"Then
you are a rare beast indeed, merchant,"
Tarma
graced him with one of her infrequent smiles.
"Most
men—oh, not fellow mercenaries, they know
better;
but most men we deal with—seem to think
they
know our business better than we simply by
virtue
of their sex."
The
smile softened her harsh expression, and
made it
less intimidating, and the merchant found
himself
smiling back. "You are not the only female
hire-swords
I have dealt with." he replied. "Many
of my
trade allies have them as personal retainers.
It has
often seemed to me that many of those I met
have
had to be twice as skilled as their male coun-
terparts
to receive half the credit."
"A
hit, merchant-lord," Kethry acknowledged with
open
amusement. "And a shrewd one at that. Now,
where
are we to meet you tomorrow night?"
Grumio
paused to think. "I have a farmstead. It's
deserted
now that the harvest is in. It's just outside
of
town, at the first lane past the crossroad at the
South
Trade Road. No one would think it odd for me
to pay
a visit to it, and the barn is a good place to
hide
horses and gear."
"Well
enough," Tarma replied.
All
three rose as one, and Grumio caught the
faint
clink of brigandine mail from Tarma's direc-
tion,
though there was no outward sign that she
wore
any such thing beneath her worn leather tu-
nic,
brown shirt and darker breeches.
"Merchant—"
Tarma said, suddenly.
He
paused halfway through the door.
"I,
too, have known loss. You will have your
revenge."
He
shivered at the look in her eyes, and left.
"Well?"
Tarma asked, shutting the door behind
him and
leaning her back up against it.
"Magic's
afoot here. It's the only answer to what's
been
going on. I don't think it's easy to deceive this
merchant—he
caught on to our 'divide and con-
quer'
trick right away. He's no soft money-counter,
either."
"I
saw the sword-calluses." Tarma balanced her-
self on
one foot, set the other against the door, and
folded
her arms. "Did he tell us all he knew?"
"I
think so. I don't think he held anything back
after
he played his high card."
"The
niece? He also didn't want us to know how
much he
valued her. Damn. This is a bad piece of
business.
Poor bastard."
"He'd
rather we thought the loss of goods and
trade
meant more to him," Kethry replied. "They're
a
secretive lot in many ways, these traders."
"Almost
as secretive as sorceresses, no?" One
corner
of Tarma's thin lips quirked up in a half-
smile.
The smile vanished as she thought of some-
thing
else.
"Is
there any chance that any of the women
survived?"
"Not
to put too fine a point upon it, no. This—"
Kethry
patted the hilt of her sword "—would have
told me
if any of them had. The pull is there, but
without
the urgency there'd be if there was anyone
needing
rescue. Still, we need more information, so
I might
as well add that to the set of questions I
intend
to ask."
Concern
flickered briefly in Tarma's eyes. "An
unprepared
summoning? Are you sure you want to
risk
it? If nothing else, it will wear you down, and
you
have all those illusions to cast."
"I
think it's worth it. There aren't that many
hostile
entities to guard against in this area, and I'll
have
all night to rest afterward—most of tomor-
row as
well, once we reach that farmstead. And my
'arsenal'
is full, my nonpersonal energies are com-
pletely
charged, and my other-Planar alliances doing
well.
It won't be any problem."
"You're
the magic-worker," Tarma sighed. "Since
we've
hired this room for the whole evening, want
to make
use of it for your magicking? It's bigger
than
our sleeping room."
At
Kethry's nod, Tarma pushed the table into a
corner,
stacking the benches on top of it, while
Kethry
set the oil lamp on the mantlepiece. Most of
the
floorspace was now cleared.
"I'll
keep watch on the door." Tarma sat on the
floor
with her back firmly braced against it. Since it
opened
inward, the entrance was now solidly guarded
against
all but the most stubborn of intruders.
Kethry
inscribed a circle on the floor with pow-
ders
from her belt-pouch, chanting under her breath.
She
used no dramatic or spectacular ceremonies for
she had
learned her art in a gentler school than the
other
sorcerers Tarma had seen. Her powers came
from
the voluntary cooperation of other-Planar en-
tities
and she never coerced them into doing her
bidding.
There
were advantages and disadvantages to this.
She
need not safeguard herself against the decep-
tions
and treacheries of these creatures, but the
cost to
her in terms of her own energies expended
was
correspondingly higher. This was particularly
true at
times when she had no chance to prepare
herself
for a summoning. It took a great deal of
power
to attract a being of benign intent—particu-
larly
one that did not have a previous alliance with
her—and
more to convince it that her intent was
good.
Hence, the circle—meant not to protect her,
but to
protect what she would call, so that it would
know
itself unthreatened.
As she
seated herself within the circle, Tarma
shifted
her own position until she, too, was quite
comfortable,
removed one of her hidden daggers,
and
began honing it with her sharpening-stone.
After
some time, there was a stirring in the circle
Kethry
had inscribed, and Tarma pulled her atten-
tion
away from her task. Something was beginning
to form
mistily in front of the seated sorceress.
The
mist began to revolve into a miniature whirl-
pool,
coalescing into a figure as it did so. As it
solidified,
Tarma could see what seemed to be a
jewel-bright
desert lizard, but one that stood erect,
like a
man. It was as tall as a man's arm is long, and
had a
cranium far larger than any lizard Tarma had
ever
seen—except perhaps the image of Gervase
that
Kethry had used to entertain Liha'irden. Fire-
light
winked from its scales in bands of shining
colors,
topaz and ruby predominating. It was re-
garding
Kethry with intelligence and wary curiosity.
"Sa-asartha,
n'hellan?" it said, tilting its head to
one side
and fidgeting from one foot to the other.
Its
voice was shrill, like that of a very young child.
"Vede,
sa-asarth," Kethry replied in the same
tongue—whatever
the tongue was.
The
little creature relaxed, and stopped fretting.
It
appeared to be quite eager to answer all of Kethry's
questions.
Now that the initial effort of calling it
was
done with, she had no trouble in obtaining all
the
information she wanted. Finally she gave the
little
creature the fruit she'd been toying with after
supper.
It snatched the gift greedily, trilled what
Tarma
presumed to be thanks, and vanished into
mist
again.
When it
was completely gone, Kethry rose stiffly
and
began to scuff the circle into random piles of
dirt
with the toe of her boot. "It's about what I
expected,"
she said. "Someone—someone with 'a
smell
of magic about him' according to the khamsin—
has
organized what used to be several small bands
of
marauders into one large one of rather formida-
ble
proportions. They have no set camp, so we can't
arrange
for their base to be attacked while they're
ambushing
us, I'm sorry to say. They have no fa-
vored
ambush point, so we won't know when to
expect
them. And none of the women—girls, really—
survived
for more than a day."
"Oh,
hell." Tarma's eyes were shadowed. "Well,
we
didn't really expect anything different."
"No,
but you know damn well we both hoped,"
Kethry's
voice was rough with weariness. "It's up
to you
now, she'enedra. You're the tactician."
"Then
as the tactician, I counsel rest for you."
Tarma
caught Kethry's shoulders to steady her as
she
stumbled a little from fatigue. The reaction to
spell-casting
was setting in fast, now. Kethry had
once
described summoning as being "like balancing
on a
rooftree while screaming an epic poem in a
foreign
language at the top of your lungs." Small
wonder
she was exhausted afterward.
The
sorceress leaned on Tarma's supporting shoul-
der
with silent gratitude as her partner guided her
up the
stairs to their rented sleeping room.
"It's
us, Warrl," Tarma called softly at the door.
A muted
growl answered her, and they could hear
the
sound of the bolt being shoved back. Tarma
pushed
the door open with one foot, and picked up
one of
the unlit tallow candles that waited on a
shelf
just inside with her free hand. She lit it at the
one in
the bracket outside their door, and the light
from it
fell on Warrl's head and shoulders. He stood,
tongue
lolling out in a lupine grin, just inside the
room.
He sniffed inquisitively at them, making a
questioning
whine deep in his throat.
"Yes,
we took the job—that's our employer you
smell,
so don't mangle him when he shows up to-
morrow
night. And Kethry's been summoning, of
course,
so as usual she's half dead. Close the door
behind
us while I put her to bed."
By now
Kethry was nearly asleep on her feet;
after
some summonings Tarma had seen her pass
into
unconsciousness while still walking. Tarma
undressed
her with the gentle and practiced hands
of a
nursemaid, and got her safely into bed before
she had
the chance to fall over. The kyree, mean-
while,
had butted the door shut with his head and
pushed
the bolt home with his nose.
"Any
trouble?" Tarma asked him.
He
snorted with derision.
"Well,
I didn't really expect any, either. This is
the
quietest inn I've been in for a long time. The job
is
bandits, hairy one, and we're all going to have to
go
disguised. That includes you."
He
whined in protest, ears down.
"I
know you don't like it, but there's no choice.
There
isn't enough cover along the road to hide a
bird,
and I want you close at hand, within a few
feet of
us at all times, not wandering out in the
desert
somewhere."
The
kyree sighed heavily, padded over to her, and
laid
his heavy head in her lap to be scratched.
"I
know. I know," she said, obliging him. "I don't
like it
any more than you do. Just be grateful that
all
we'll be wearing is illusions, even if they do
make
the backs of our eyes itch. Poor Kethry's
going
to have to ride muffled head-to-toe like a fine
lady."
Warrl
obviously didn't care about poor Kethry.
"You're
being very unfair to her, you know. And
you're
supposed to have been her familiar, not mine.
You're
a magic beast; born out of magic. You belong
with a
spell-caster, not some clod with a sword."
Warrl
was not impressed with Tarma's logic.
She
doesn't need me, he spoke mind-to-mind with
the
swordswoman. She has the spirit-sword. You need
me,
I've told you that before. And that, so far as
Warrl
was concerned, was that.
"Well,
I'm not going to argue with you. I never
argue
with anyone with as many sharp teeth as
you've
got. Maybe being Kal'enedral counts as being
magic."
She
pushed Warrl's head off her lap and went to
open
the shutters to the room's one window. Moon-
light
flooded the room; she seated herself on the
floor
where it would fall on her, just as she did
every
night when there was a moon and she wasn't
ill or
injured. Since they were within the walls of a
town
and not camped, she would not train this
night,
but the Moonpaths were there, as always,
waiting
to be walked. She closed her eyes and found
them.
Walking them was, as she'd often told Kethry,
impossible
to describe.
When
she returned to her body, Warrl was lying
patiently
at her back, waiting for her. She ruffled
his fur
with a grin, stood, stretched stiffened mus-
cles,
then stripped to a shift and climbed in beside
Kethry.
Warrl sighed with gratitude and took his
usual
spot at her feet.
"Three
things see no end—
A
flower blighted ere it bloomed,
A
message that was wasted
And a
journey that was doomed."
The two
mercenaries rode out of town in the
morning,
obviously eager to be gone. Grumio watched
them
leave, gazing sadly at the cloud of dust they
raised,
his houndlike face clearly displaying his
disappointment.
His fellow merchants were equally
disappointed
when he told them of his failure to
persuade
them; they had all hoped the women would
be the
solution to their problem.
After
sundown Grumio took a cart and horse out
to his
farmstead, a saddled riding beast tied to the
rear of
it. After making certain that no one had
followed
him, he drove directly into the barn, and
peered
around in the hay-scented gloom. A fear
crossed
his mind that the women had tricked him,
and had
truly left that morning.
"Don't
fret yourself, merchant," said a gravelly
voice
just above his head. He jumped, his heart
racing.
"We're here."
A vague
figure swung down from the loft; when
it came
close enough for him to make out features,
he
started at the sight of a buxom blonde wearing
the
swordswoman's clothing.
She
grinned at his reaction. "Which one am I?
She
didn't tell me. Blonde?"
He
nodded, amazed.
"Malebait
again. Good choice, no one would ever
think I
knew what a blade was for. Or that I ever
thought
of anything but men and clothing, not
necessarily
in that order. You don't want to see
my
partner." Her voice was still in Tarma's grav-
elly
tones; Grumio assumed that that was only so
he'd
recognize her. "We don't want you to have to
strain
your acting ability tomorrow. Did you bring
everything
we asked for?"
"It's
all here," he replied, still not believing what
his
eyes were telling him. "I weighted the boxes
with
sand and stones so that they won't seem
empty."
"You've
got a good head on you, merchant," Tarma
saluted
him as she unharnessed the horse. "That's
something
I didn't think of. Best you leave now,
though,
before somebody comes looking for you."
He
jumped down off the wagon, taking the reins
of his
riding beast.
"And
merchant—" she called as he rode off into
the
night, "—wish us luck."
He
didn't have to act the next morning, when a
delicate
and aristocratically frail lady of obvious
noble
birth accosted him in his shop, and ordered
him
(although it was framed as a request) to in-
clude
her in his packtrain. In point of fact, had he
not
recognized the dress and fur cloak she was
wearing,
he would have taken her for a real aristo,
one
who, by some impossible coincidence, had taken
the
same notion into her head that the swordswoman
had
proposed as a ruse. This sylphlike, sleepy-eyed
creature
with her elaborately coiffed hair of plati-
num
silk bore no resemblance at all to the very
vibrant
and earthy sorceress he'd hired.
And
though he was partially prepared by having
seen
her briefly the night before, Tarma (posing as
milady's
maid) still gave him a shock. He saw why
she
called the disguise "malebait"—this amply-
endowed
blonde was a walking invitation to impro-
priety,
and nothing like the sexless Sworn One. All
that
remained of Tarma were the blue eyes, one of
which
winked cheerfully at him, to bring him out
of his
shock.
Grumio
argued vehemently with the highborn
dame
for the better part of an hour, and all to no
avail.
Undaunted, he carried his expostulations out
into
the street, still trying to persuade her to change
her
mind even as the packtrain formed up in front
of his
shop. The entire town was privy to the argu-
ment by
that time.
"Lady,
I beg you—reconsider!" he was saying
anxiously.
"Wait for the King's Patrol. They have
promised
to return soon and in force, since the
bandits
have not ceased raiding us, and I'm morally
certain
they'll be willing to escort you."
"My
thanks for your concern, merchant," she
replied
with a gentle and bored haughtiness, "But I
fear my
business cannot wait till their return. Be-
sides,
what is there about me that could possibly
tempt a
bandit?"
Those
whose ears were stretched to catch this
conversation
could easily sympathize with Grumio's
silent—but
obvious—plea to the gods for patience,
as they
noted the lady's jewels, fine garments, the
weight
of the cart holding her possessions, and the
well-bred
mares she and her maid rode.
The
lady turned away from him before he could
continue;
a clear gesture of dismissal, so he held
his
tongue. In stony silence he watched the train
form
up, with the lady and her maid in the center.
Since
they had no driver for the cart—though he'd
offered
to supply one—the lead-rein of the carthorse
had
been fastened to the rear packhorse's harness.
Surmounting
the chests and boxes in the cart was a
toothless
old dog, apparently supposed to be guard-
ing her
possessions and plainly incapable of guard-
ing
anything anymore. The leader of the train's six
guards
took his final instructions from his master,
and the
train lurched off down the Trade Road. As
Grumio
watched them disappear into the distance,
he
could be seen to shake his head in disapproval.
Had
anyone been watching very closely—though
no one
was—they might have noticed the lady's
fingers
moving in a complicated pattern. Had there
been
any mages present—which wasn't the case—
said
mage might have recognized the pattern as
belonging
to the Spell of True Sight. If illusion was
involved,
it would not be blinding Kethry.
"One
among the guardsmen
Has a
shifting, restless eye
And as
they ride, he scans the hills
That
rise against the sky.
He
wears a sword and bracelet
Worth
more than he can afford
And
hidden in his baggage
Is a
heavy, secret hoard."
One of
the guards was contemplating the lady's
assets
with a glee and greed that equaled his mas-
ter's
dismay. His expression, carefully controlled,
seemed
to be remote and impassive; only his rap-
idly
shifting gaze and the nervous flicker of his
tongue
over dry lips gave any clue to his thoughts.
Behind
those remote eyes, a treacherous mind was
making
a careful inventory of every jewel and visi-
ble
possession and calculating their probable values.
When
the lady's skirt lifted briefly to display a
tantalizing
glimpse of white leg, his control broke
enough
that he bit his lip. She was one prize he
intended
to reserve for himself; he'd never been
this
close to a highborn woman before, and he in-
tended
to find out if certain things he'd heard about
bedding
them were true. The others were going to
have to
be content with the ample charms of the
serving
maid, at least until he'd tired of the mis-
tress.
At least there wouldn't be all that caterwauling
and
screeching there'd been with the merchant
wenches.
That maid looked as if she'd had a man
betwixt
her legs plenty of times before, and en-
joyed
it, too. She'd probably thank him for livening
up her
life when he turned her over to the men!
He had
thought at first that this was going to be
another
trap, especially after he'd heard that old
Grumio
had tried to hire a pair of highly-touted
mercenary
women to rid him of the bandits. One
look at
the lady and her maid, however, had con-
vinced
him that not only was it absurd to think
that
they could be wary hire-swords in disguise,
but
that they probably didn't even know which end
of a
blade to hold. The wench flirted and teased
each of
the men in turn. Her mind was obviously
on
something other than ambushes and weaponry—
unless
those ambushes were amorous, and the weap-
onry of
flesh. The lady herself seemed to ride in a
half-aware
dream, and her maid often had to break
off a
flirtation in order to ride forward and steady
her in
the saddle.
Perhaps
she was a tran-dust sniffer, or there was
faldis-juice
mixed in with the water in the skin on
her
saddle-bow. That would be an unexpected bo-
nus;
she was bound to have a good supply of it
among
her belongings, and drugs were worth more
than
jewels. And it would be distinctly interesting—
his
eyes glinted cruelly—to have her begging him
on her
knees for her drugs as withdrawal set in.
Assuming,
of course, that she survived that long.
He
passed his tongue over lips gone dry with antic-
ipation.
Tomorrow he would give the scouts trail-
ing the
packtrain the signal to attack.
"Of
three things be wary—
Of a
feather on a cat,
The
shepherd eating mutton
And the
guardsman that is fat."
The
lady and her companion made camp a dis-
creet
distance from the rest of the caravan, as was
only to
be expected. She would hardly have a taste
for
sharing their rough camp, rude talk or coarse
food.
Kethry's
shoulders sagged with fatigue beneath
the
weight of her heavy cloak, and she was chilled
to the
bone in spite of its fur lining.
"Are
you all right?" Tarma whispered sharply
when
she hadn't spoken for several minutes.
"Just
tired. I never thought that holding up five
illusions
would be so hard. Three aren't half so
difficult
to keep intact." She leaned her forehead
on one
hand, rubbing her temples with cold fingers.
"I
wish it was over."
Tarma
pressed a bowl into her other hand. Duti-
fully,
she tried to eat, but the sand and dust that
had
plagued their progress all day had crept into
the
food as well. It was too dry and gritty to swal-
low
easily, and after one attempt, Kethry felt too
weary
to make any further effort. She laid the bowl
aside,
unobtrusively—or so she hoped.
Faint
hope.
"Sweeting,
if you don't eat by yourself, I'm going
to pry
your mouth open and pour your dinner down
your
throat." Tarma's expression was cloyingly
sweet,
and the tone of her shifted voice dulcet.
Kethry
was roused enough to smile a little. When
she was
this wearied with the exercise of her mag-
ics,
she had to be bullied into caring for herself.
When
she'd been on her own, she'd sometimes had
to
spend days recovering from the damages she'd
inflicted
on her body by neglecting it. Tarma had
her
badly worried lately with all the cosseting she'd
been
doing—like she was trying to keep Kethry
wrapped
safely in lambswool all the time—but at
this
moment Kethry was rather glad to have the
cosseting.
In fact, it was at moments like this that
she
valued Tarma's untiring affection and aid the
most.
"What,
and ruin our disguises?" she retorted with
a
little more life.
"There's
nothing at all out of the ordinary in an
attentive
maid helping her poor, sick mistress to
eat.
They already think there's something wrong
with
you. Half of them think you're ill, the other
half
think you're in a drug-daze," Tarma replied.
"They
all think you've got nothing between your
ears
but air."
Kethry
capitulated, picked up her dinner, and
forced
it down, grit and all.
"Now,"
Tarma said, when they'd both finished
eating.
"I know you've spotted a suspect, I can tell
by the
way you're watching the guards. Tell me
which
one it is; I'd be very interested to see if it's
the
same one I've got my eye on."
"It's
the one with the mouse-brown hair and ratty
face
that rode tail-guard this morning."
Tarma's
eyes widened a little, but she gave no
other
sign of surprise. "Did you say brown hair?
And a
ratty face? Tailguard this morning had black
hair
and a pouty, babyish look to him."
Kethry
revived a bit more. "Really? Are you talk-
ing
about the one walking between us and their fire
right
now? The one with all the jewelry? And does
he seem
to be someone you know very vaguely?"
"Yes.
One of the hired swords with the horse-
traders
my Clan used to deal with—I think his
name
was Tedric. Why?"
Kethry
unbuckled a small ornamental dagger from
her
belt and passed it to Tarma with exaggerated
care.
Tarma claimed it with the same caution, cau-
tion
that was quite justified, since the "dagger" was
in
reality Kethry's sword Need, no matter what
shape
it wore at the moment. Beneath the illusion,
it
still retained its original mass and weight.
"Now
look at him."
Tarma
cast a surreptitious glance at the guard
again,
and her lips tightened. Even when it was
done by
magic, she didn't like being tricked. "Mouse-
brown
hair and a ratty face," she said. "He changed."
She
returned the blade to Kethry.
"And
now?" Kethry asked, when Need was safely
back on
her belt.
"Now
that's odd," Tarma said thoughtfully. "If
he's
using an illusion, he should have gone back to
the way
he looked before, but he didn't. He's still
mousy
and ratty, but my eyes feel funny—like some-
thing's
pulling at them—and he's blurred a bit
around
the edges. It's almost as if his face was
trying
to look different from what I'm seeing."
"Uh-huh.
Mind-magic," Kethry said, with satis-
faction.
"So that's why I wasn't able to detect any
spells!
It's not a true illusion like I'm holding on us.
They
practice mind-magic a lot more up north in
Valdemar—I
think I must have told you about it at
some
time or other. I'm only marginally familiar
with
the way it works, since it doesn't operate
quite
like what I've learned. If what I've been told
is
true, his mind is telling your mind that you know
him,
and letting your memory supply an acceptable
face.
He could very well look like a different person
to
everyone in the caravan, but since he always
looks
familiar, any of them would be willing to
vouch
for him."
"Which
is how he keeps sneaking into the pack-
trains.
He looks different each time, since no one is
likely
to 'see' a man they know is dead. Very clever.
You say
this isn't a spell?"
"Mind-magic
depends on inborn abilities to work;
if you
haven't got them, you can't learn it. It's
unlike
my magic, where it's useful to have the Gift,
but not
necessary. Was he the same one you were
watching?"
"He
is, indeed. So your True Sight spell works on
this
'mind-magic' too?"
"Yes,
thank the gods. I'm glad now I didn't rely
on
mage-sight; he would have fooled that. What
tipped
you off to him?"
"Nothing
terribly obvious, just a lot of little things
that
weren't quite right for the ordinary guard he's
pretending
to be. His sword is a shade too expen-
sive.
His horse has been badly misused, but he's a
gelding
of very good lines; he's of much better
breeding
than a common guard should own. And
lastly,
he's wearing jewelry he can't afford."
Kethry
looked puzzled. "Several of the other
guards
are wearing just as much. I thought most
hired
swords wore their savings."
"So
they do. Thing is, of the others, the only ones
with as
much or more are either the guard-chief, or
ones
wearing mostly brass and glass; showy, meant
to
impress village tarts, but worthless. His is all
real,
and the quality is high. Too damned high for
the
likes of him."
"Now
that we know who to watch, what do we
do?"
"We
wait," Tarma replied with a certain grim
satisfaction.
"He'll have to signal the rest of his
troupe
to attack us sooner or later, and one of us
should
be able to spot him at it. With luck and the
Warrior
on our side, we'll have enough warning to
be
ready for them."
"I
hope it's sooner." Kethry sipped at the well-
watered
wine which was all she'd allow herself
when
holding spells in place. Her eyes were heavy,
dry,
and sore. "I'm not sure how much longer I can
hold up
my end."
"Then
go to sleep, dearling," Tarma's voice held
an
unusual gentleness, a gentleness only Kethry,
Warrl,
and small children ever saw. "Fur-face and
I can
take turns on night watch; you needn't take a
turn at
all."
Kethry
did not need further urging, but wrapped
herself
up in her cloak and a blanket, pillowed her
head on
her arm and fell asleep with the sudden-
ness of
a tired puppy. The illusions she'd woven
would
remain intact even while she slept. Only
three
things could cause them to fail. They'd break
if she
broke them herself, if the pressure of spells
from a
greater sorcerer than she were brought to
bear on
them, or if she died. Her training had been
arduous,
and quite thorough; as complete in its
way as
Tarma's sword training had been.
Seeing
her shiver in her sleep, Tarma built up
the
fire with a bit more dried dung (the leavings of
previous
caravans were all the fuel to be found out
here)
and covered her with the rest of the spare
blankets.
The illusions were draining energy from
Kethry,
and she got easily chilled; Tarma didn't
expect
to need the other coverings. She knew she'd
be
quite comfortable with one blanket and her cloak;
and if
that didn't suffice, Warrl made an excellent
"bedwarmer."
Warrior,
guard her back, she prayed, as she had
every
night lately. I can guard my own—but keep her
safe.
But the
night passed uneventfully, despite Tarma's
vague
worries.
Morning
saw them riding deeper into the stony
hills
that ringed the desert basin they'd spent the
day
before passing through. The road was consider-
ably
less dusty now, but the air held more of a
chill.
Both Tarma and Kethry tried to keep an eye
on
their suspect guard, and shortly before noon
their
vigilance was rewarded. Both of them saw
him
flashing the sunlight off his armband in what
could
only be a deliberate series of signals.
"From
ambush, bandits screaming
Charge
the packtrain and its prize
And all
but four within the train
Are
taken by surprise
And all
but four are cut down
Like a
woodsman fells a log
The
guardsman, and the lady,
And the
maiden and the dog.
Three
things know a secret—
First;
the lady in a dream;
The dog
that barks no warning
And the
maid that does not scream."
Even
with advance warning, they hadn't much
time to
ready themselves.
Bandits
charged the packtrain from both sides of
the
road, screaming at the tops of their lungs. The
guards
were taken completely by surprise. The three
apprentice
traders accompanying the train flung
themselves
down on their faces as their master
Grumio
had ordered them to do in hopes that they'd
be
overlooked. To the bandit master at the rear of
the
train, it seemed that once again all had gone
completely
according to plan.
Until
Kethry broke her illusions.
"Then
off the lady pulls her cloak—
In
armor she is clad
Her
sword is out and ready
And her
eyes are fierce and glad
The
maiden gestures briefly
And the
dog's a cur no more.
A wolf,
sword-maid, and sorceress
Now
face the bandit corps!
Three
things never anger,
Or you
will not live for long—
A wolf
with cubs, a man with power,
And a
woman's sense of wrong."
The
brigands at the forefront of the pack found
themselves
facing something they hadn't remotely
expected.
Gone were the helpless, frightened women
on
high-bred steeds too fearful to run. In their
place
sat a pair of well-armed, grim-faced merce-
naries
on schooled warbeasts. With them was an
oversized
and very hungry-looking kyree.
The
pack of bandits milled, brought to a halt by
this
unexpected development.
Finally
one of the bigger ones growled a chal-
lenge
at Tarma, who only grinned evilly at him.
Kethry
saluted them with mocking gallantry—and
the
pair moved into action explosively.
They
split up and charged the marauders, giving
them no
time to adjust to the altered situation. The
bandits
had hardly expected the fight to be carried
to
them, and reacted too late to stop them. Their
momentum
carried them through the pack and up
onto
the hillsides on either side of the road. Now
they
had the high ground.
* *
*
Kethry
had drawn Need, whose magic was ena-
bling
her to keep herself intact long enough to find
a
massive boulder to put her back against. The long
odds
were actually favoring the two of them for the
moment,
since the bandits were mostly succeeding
only in
getting in each other's way. Obviously they
had not
been trained to fight together, and had
done
well so far largely because of the surprise
with
which they'd attacked and their sheer num-
bers.
Once Kethry had gained her chosen spot, she
slid
off her horse, and sent it off with a slap to its
rump.
The mottled, huge-headed beast was as ugly
as a
piece of rough granite, and twice as tough, but
she was
a Shin'a'in-bred and trained warsteed, and
worth
the weight in silver of the high-bred mare
she'd
been spelled to resemble. Now that Kethry
was on
the ground, she'd attack anything whose
scent
she didn't recognize—and quite probably kill
it.
Warrl
came to her side long enough to give her
the
time she needed to transfer her sword to her
left
hand and begin calling up her more arcane
offensive
weaponry.
In the
meantime, Tarma was in her element,
cutting
a bloody swath through the bandit horde
with a
fiercely joyous gleam in her eyes. She
clenched
her mare's belly with viselike legs; only
one
trained in Shin'a'in-style horse-warfare from
childhood
could possibly have stayed with the beast.
The
mare was laying all about her with iron-shod
hooves
and enormous yellow teeth; neither animal
nor man
was likely to escape her once she'd tar-
geted
him. She had an uncanny sense for anyone
trying
to get to her rider by disabling her; once she
twisted
and bucked like a cat on hot metal to simul-
taneously
crush the bandit in front of her while
kicking
in the teeth of the one that had thought to
hamstring
her from the rear. She accounted for at
least
as many of the bandits as Tarma did.
Tarma
saw Kethry's mare rear and slash out of
the
corner of her eye; the saddle was empty—
She
sent a brief, worried thought at Warrl.
Guard
yourself, foolish child; she's doing better than
you
are! came the mental rebuke. Tarma grimaced,
realizing
she should have known better. The bond
of
she'enedran made them bound by spirit, and she'd
have
known if anything was wrong. Since the mare
was
fighting on her own, Kethry must have found
someplace
high enough to see over the heads of
those
around her.
As if
to confirm this, things like ball-lightning
began
appearing and exploding, knocking bandits
from
their horses, clouds of red mist began to wreath
the
heads of others (who clutched their throats and
turned
interesting colors), and oddly formed creatures
joined
Warrl at harrying and biting at those on foot.
When
that began, especially after one spectacular
fireball
left a pile of smoking ash in place of the
bandit's
second-in-command, it was more than the
remainder
of the band could stand up to. Their
easy
prey had turned into hellspawn, and there
was
nothing that could make them stay to face any-
thing
more. The ones that were still mounted turned
their
horses out of the melee and fled for their
lives.
Tarma and the three surviving guards took
care of
the rest.
As for
the bandit chief, who had sat his horse in
stupefied
amazement from the moment the fight
turned
against them, he suddenly realized his own
peril
and tried to escape with the rest. Kethry,
however,
had never once forgotten him. Her bolt of
power—intended
this time to stun, not kill—took
him
squarely in the back of the head.
"The
bandits growl a challenge,
But the
lady only grins.
The
sorceress bows mockingly,
And
then the fight begins
When it
ends there are but four
Left
standing from that horde—
The
witch, the wolf, the traitor,
And the
woman with the sword.
Three
things never trust in—
The
maiden sworn as pure,
The
vows a king has given
And the
ambush that is 'sure.' "
By late
afternoon the heads of the bandits had
been
piled in a grisly cairn by the side of the road
as a
mute reminder to their fellows of the eventual
reward
of banditry. Their bodies had been dragged
off
into the hills for the scavengers to quarrel over.
Tarma
had supervised the cleanup, the three ap-
prentices
serving as her workforce. There had been
a good
deal of stomach-purging on their part at
first—especially
after the way Tarma had casually
lopped
off the heads of the dead or wounded
bandits—but
they'd obeyed her without question.
Tarma
had had to hide her snickering behind her
hand,
for they looked at her whenever she gave
them a
command as though they feared that their
heads
might well adorn the cairn if they lagged or
slacked.
She
herself had seen to the wounds of the surviv-
ing
guards, and the burial of the two dead ones.
One of
the guards could still ride; the other two
were
loaded into the now-useless cart after the
empty
boxes had been thrown out of it. Tarma
ordered
the whole caravan back to town; she and
Kethry
planned to catch up with them later, after
some
unfinished business had been taken care of.
Part of
that unfinished business was the filling
and
marking of the dead guards' graves.
Kethry
brought her a rag to wipe her hands with
when
she'd finished. "Damn. I wish—oh, hellspawn;
they
were just honest hired swords," she said, look-
ing at
the stone cairns she'd built with remote
regret.
"It wasn't their fault we didn't have a
chance
to warn them. Maybe they shouldn't have let
themselves
be surprised like that, not with what's
been
happening to the packtrains lately—but still,
your
life's a pretty heavy price to pay for a little
carelessness...."
Kethry,
her energy back to normal now that she
was no
longer being drained by her illusions, slipped
a
sympathetic arm around Tarma's shoulders. "Come
on,
she'enedra. 1 want to show you something that
might
make you feel a little better."
While
Tarma had gone to direct the cleanup,
Kethry
had been engaged in stripping the bandit
chief
down to his skin and readying his uncon-
scious
body for some sort of involved sorcery. Tarma
knew
she'd had some sort of specific punishment
in mind
from the time she'd heard about the stolen
girls,
but she'd had no idea of what it was.
"They've
stripped the traitor naked
And
they've whipped him on his way
Into
the barren hillsides,
Like
the folk he used to slay.
They
take a thorough vengeance
For the
women he's cut down
And
then they mount their horses
And
they journey back to town.
Three
things trust and cherish well—
The
horse on which you ride,
The beast
that guards and watches
And
your sister at your side!"
Now
before her was a bizarre sight. Tied to the
back of
one of the bandit's abandoned horses was—
apparently—the
unconscious body of the highborn
lady
Kethry had spelled herself to resemble. She
was
clad only in a few rags, and had a bruise on one
temple,
but otherwise looked to be unharmed.
Tarma
circled the tableau slowly. There was no
flaw in
the illusion, if indeed it was an illusion.
"Unbelievable,"
she said at last. "That is him,
isn't
it?"
"Oh,
yes, indeed. One of my best pieces of work."
"Will
it hold without you around to maintain
it?"
"It'll
hold all right," Kethry replied with deep
satisfaction.
"That's part of the beauty and the
justice
of the thing. The illusion is irretrievably
melded
with his own mind-magic. He'll never be
able to
break it himself, and no reputable sorcerer
will
break it for him. And I promise you, the only
sorcerers
for weeks in any direction are quite
reputable."
"Why
wouldn't he be able to get one to break it
for
him?"
"Because
I've signed it." Kethry made a small
gesture,
and two symbols appeared for a moment
above
the bandit's head. One was the symbol Tarma
knew to
be Kethry's sigil, the other was the glyph
for
"Justice." "Any attempt to probe the spell will
make
those appear. I doubt that anyone will ignore
the
judgment sign, and even if they were inclined
to, I
think my reputation is good enough to make
most
sorcerers think twice about undoing what I've
done."
"You
really didn't change him, did you?" Tarma
asked,
a horrible thought occurring to her. "I mean,
if he's
really a woman now . .."
"Bright
Lady, what an awful paradox we'd have!"
Kethry
laughed, easing Tarma's mind considerably.
"We
punish him for what he's done to women by
turning
him into a woman—but as a woman, we'd
now be
honor-bound to protect him! No, don't worry.
Under
the illusion—and it's a very complete illu-
sion,
by the way, it extends to all senses—he's still
quite
male."
She gave
the horse's rump a whack, breaking the
light
enchantment that had held it quiet, and it
bucked
a little, scrabbling off into the barren hills.
"The
last of the band went that way," she said,
pointing
after the beast, "And the horse he's on
will
follow their scent back to where they've made
their
camp. Of course, none of his former followers
will
have any notion that he's anything other than
what he
appears to be."
A
wicked smile crept across Tarma's face. It
matched
the one already curving Kethry's lips.
"I
wish I could be there when he arrives," Tarma
said
with a note of viciousness in her harsh voice.
"It's
bound to be interesting."
"He'll
certainly get exactly what he deserves."
Kethry
watched the horse vanish over the crest of
the
hill. "I wonder how he'll like being on the
receiving
end?"
"I
know somebody who will like this—and I can't
wait to
see his face when you tell him."
"Grumio?"
"Mm-hmm."
"You
know," Kethry replied thoughtfully, "this
was
almost worth doing for free."
"She'enedra!"
Tarma exclaimed in mock horror.
"Your
misplaced honor will have us starving yet!
We're
supposed to be mercenaries!"
"I
said almost." Kethry joined in her partner's
gravelly
laughter. "Come on. We've got pay to col-
lect.
You know—this just might end up as some
bard's
song."
"It
might at that," Tarma chuckled "And what
will
you bet me that he gets the tale all wrong?"
"Not
only that—but given bards, I can almost
guarantee
that it will only get worse with age."
Nine
The
aged, half-blind mage blinked confused,
rheumy
eyes at his visitor. The man—or was it
woman?—looked
as awful as the mage felt. Blood-
shot
and dark-circled eyes glared at him from un-
der the
concealing shelter of a moth-eaten hood and
several
scarves. A straggle of hair that looked first
to be
dirty mouse-brown, then silver-blond, then
brown
again, strayed into those staring eyes. Nor
did the
eyes stay the same from one moment to the
next;
they turned blue, then hazel, then back to
amethyst-blue.
Try as he would, the mage could
not
make his own eyes focus properly, and light
from a
lanthorn held high in one of the visitor's
hands
was doing nothing to alleviate his befuddle-
ment.
The mage had never seen a human that pre-
sented
such a contradictory appearance. She (he?)
was a
shapeless bundle of filthy, lice-ridden rags;
what
flesh there was to be seen displayed the yellow-
green
of healing bruises. Yet he had clearly seen
gold
pass to the hands of his landlord when that
particular
piece of human offal had unlocked the
mage's
door. Gold didn't come often to this part of
town—and
it came far less often borne by a hand
clothed
in rags.
He
(she?) had forced his (her?) way into the
verminous
garret hole that was all the mage could
call
home now without so much as a by-your-leave,
shouldering
the landlord aside and closing the door
firmly
afterward. So this stranger was far more
interested
in privacy than in having the landlord
there
as a possible backup in case the senile wizard
proved
recalcitrant. That was quite enough to be-
wilder
the mage, but the way his visitor kept shift-
ing
from male to female and back again was bidding
fair to
dizzy what few wits still remained to him
and was
nearly leaving him too muddled to speak.
Besides
that, the shapeshifting was giving him
one
gods-awful headache.
"Go
'way—" he groaned feelingly, shadowing his
eyes
both from the unsettling sight and from the
too-bright
glare of the lanthorn his visitor still held
aloft.
"—leave an old man alone! I haven't got a
thing
left to steal—"
He was
all too aware of his pitiful state; his robe
stained
and frayed, his long gray beard snarled and
unkempt,
his eyes so bloodshot and yellowed that
no one
could tell their color anymore. He was housed
in an
equally pitiful manner; this garret room had
been
rejected by everyone, no matter how poor,
except
himself; it was scarcely better than sleeping
in the
street. It leaked when it rained, turned into
an oven
in summer and a meat-locker in winter,
and the
wind whistled through cracks in the walls
big
enough to stick a finger in. His only furnishings
were a
pile of rags that served as a bed, and a
rickety
stool. Beneath him he could feel the ram-
shackle
building swaying in the wind, and the move-
ment
was contributing to his headache. The boards
of the
walls creaked and complained, each in a
different
key. He knew he should have been used to
it by
now, but he wasn't; the crying wood rasped
his
nerves raw and added mightily to his disorien-
tation.
The multiple drafts made the lanthorn flame
flicker,
even inside its glass chimney. The resulting
dancing
shadows didn't help his befuddlement.
"I'm
not here to steal, old fraud."
Even
the voice of the visitor was a confusing
amalgam
of male and female.
"I've
brought you something."
The
other hand emerged from the rags, bearing
an
unmistakable emerald-green bottle. The hand
jiggled
the bottle a little, and the contents sloshed
enticingly.
The rags slipped, and a trifle more of
his
visitor's face was revealed.
But the
mage was only interested now in the
bottle.
Lethe! He forgot his perplexity, his befogged
mind,
and his headache as he hunched forward on
his
pallet of decaying rags, reaching eagerly for the
bottle
of drug-wine that had been his downfall.
Every
cell ached for the blessed/damned touch of
it—
"Oh,
no." The visitor backed out of reach, and
the
mage felt the shame of weak tears spilling down
his
cheeks. "First you give me what I want, then I
give
you this."
The
mage sagged back into bis pile of rags. "I
have
nothing."
"It's
not what you have, old fraud, it's what you
were."
"What...
I.. .was...."
"You
were a mage, and a good one—or so they
claim.
That was before you let this stuff rob you of
your
wits until they cast you out of the Guild to
rot.
But there damn well ought to be enough left of
you for
my purposes."
By
steadfastly looking, not at the visitor, but at
the
bottle, the mage was managing to collect his
scattering
thoughts. "What purpose?"
The
visitor all but screamed bis answer. "To take
off
this curse, old fool! Are your wits so far gone you
can't
even see what's in front of you?"
A
curse—of course! No wonder his visitor kept
shifting
and changing! It wasn't the person that
was
shifting, but his own sight, switching errati-
cally
between normal vision and mage-sight. Nor-
mal
vision showed him the woman; when the rags
slipped
a little more, she seemed to be a battered,
but
still lovely little toy of a creature—amethyst-
eyed
and platinum-haired—
Mage-sight
showed him an equally abused but far
from
lovely man; sallow and thin, battered, but by
no
means beaten—a man wearing the kind of smol-
dering
scowl that showed he was holding in rage by
the
thinnest of bonds.
So the
"curse" could only be illusion, but a very
powerful
and carefully cast illusion. There was some-
thing
magic-smelling about the man-woman, too;
the
illusion was linked to and being fueled by that
magic.
The mage furrowed his brow, then tested
the
weave of the magic that formed the illusion. It
was a
more than competent piece of work; and it
was
complete to all senses. It was far superior to
anything
the mage had produced even in his best
days.
In his present condition—to duplicate it so
that he
could lay new illusion over old would be
impossible;
to turn it or transfer it beyond even his
former
level of skill. He never even considered trying
to take
it off. To break it was beyond the best mage
in
Oberdorn, much less the broken-down wreck he
had
become.
Eyeing
the bottle with passionate longing and
despair,
he said as much.
To his
surprise the man accepted the bad news
with a
nod. "That's what they told me," he said.
"But
they told me something else. What a human
mage
couldn't break, a demon might."
"A
... demon?" The mage licked his lips; the
bottle
of Lethe was again within his grasp. "I used
to be
able to summon demons. I still could, I think.
But it
wouldn't be easy." That was untrue; the
summoning
of demons had been one of his lesser
skills.
It was still easily within his capabilities. But
it
required specialized tools and ingredients he no
longer
had the means to procure. And it was pro-
scribed
by the Guild....
He'd
tried to raise a minor impling to steal him
Lethe-wine
when his money had run out; that was
when
the Guild had discovered what he'd fallen
prey
to. That was the main reason they'd cast him
out,
destroying his tools and books; a mage brought
so low
as to use his skills for personal theft was no
longer
trustworthy. Especially not one that could
summon
demons. Demons were clever and had the
minds
of sharp lawyers when it came to wriggling
out of
the bonds that had been set on them; that
was why
raising them was proscribed for any single
mage of
the Guild, and doubly proscribed for one
who
might have doubts as to his own mental com-
petence
at the time of the conjuration.
Of
course, he was no longer bound by Guild laws
since
he was outcaste. And if this stranger could
provide
the wherewithal, the tools and the sup-
plies,
it could be easily done.
"Just
tell me what you need, old man—I'll get it
for
you." The haggard, grimy face was avid, eager.
"You
bring me a demon to break this curse, and the
bottle's
yours."
Two
days later, they stood in the cellar of the
old,
rotten mansion whose garret the mage called
home.
The cellar was in no better repair than the
rest of
the house; it was moldy and stank, and
water-marks
on the walls showed why no one cared
to live
there. Not only did the place flood every
time it
rained, but moisture was constantly seeping
through
the walls, and water trickled down from
the
roof-cisterns to drip from the beams overhead.
Bright
sparks of light glinted just beyond the circle
of
illumination cast by the lanthorn, the gleaming
eyes of
starveling rats and mice, perched curiously
on the
decaying shelves that clung to the walls.
The
scratching of their claws seemed to echo the
scratching
of the mage's chalks on the cracked slate
floor.
The
man-woman sat impatiently on the remains
of a
cask off to one side, careful not to disturb the
work at
hand. It had already cost him dearly—in
gold
and blood. Some of the things the mage had
demanded
had been bought, but most had been
stolen.
The former owners were often no longer in
a
condition to object to the disposition of their
property.
From
time to time the mage would glance search-
ingly
up at him, make a tiny motion with his hand,
frown
with concentration, then return to his drawing.
After
the fourth time this had happened, the
stranger
wet his lips with a nervous tongue, and
asked,
"Why do you keep doing that? Looking at
me, I
mean."
The
mage blinked and stood up slowly, his back
aching
from the strain of staying bent over for so
long.
His red-rimmed, teary eyes focused to one
side of
the man, for he still found it difficult to look
directly
at him.
"It's
the spell that's on you," he replied after a
moment
to collect his thoughts. "I don't know of a
demon
strong enough to break a spell that well
made."
The man
jumped to his feet, reaching for a sword
he had
left back in the mage's room because the old
man had
warned him against bearing cold steel into
a
demon's presence. "You old bastard!" he snarled.
"You
told me—"
"I
told you I could call one—and I can. I just
don't
know one. Your best chance is if I can call a
demon
with a specific grudge against the maker of
the
spell—"
"What
if there isn't one?"
"There
will be," the mage shrugged. "Anyone
who
goes about laying curses like yours and leaving
justice-glyphs
behind to seal them is bound to have
angered
either a demon or someone who commands
one. At
any rate, since you want to know, I've been
testing
the edges of your curse to make the mage-
rune
appear. I'm working that into the summoning.
Since I
don't know which demon to call, the sum-
moning'
will take longer than usual to bear fruit,
but the
results will be the same. The demon will
appear,
one with a reason to help you, and you'll
bargain
with it for the breaking of your curse."
"Me?"
The stranger was briefly taken aback. "Why
me? Why
not you?"
"Because
it isn't my curse. I don't give a damn
whether
it's broken or not. I told you I'd summon a
demon—I
didn't say I'd bind him. That takes more
skill—and
certainly more will—than I possess any-
more.
My bargain with you was simple—one de-
mon,
one bottle of Lethe. Once it's here, you can do
your
own haggling."
The man
smiled; it was far more of a grimace
than an
expression of pleasure. "All right, old fraud.
Work
your spell. I'd sooner trust my wits than yours
anyway."
The
mage returned to his scribbling, filling the
entire
area lit by the lanthorn suspended overhead
with
odd little drawings and scrawls that first
pulled,
then repelled the eyes. Finally he seemed
satisfied,
gathered his stained, ragged robes about
him
with care, and picked a dainty path through
the
maze of chalk. He stood up straight just on the
border
of the inscriptions, raised his arms high,
and
intoned a peculiarly resonant chant.
At that
moment, he bordered on the impressive—
though
the effect was somewhat spoiled by the
water
dripping off the beams of the ceiling, falling
onto
his balding head and running off the end of
his
long nose.
The
last syllable echoed from the dank walls.
The
man-woman waited in anticipation.
Nothing
happened.
"Well?"
the stranger said with slipping patience,
"Is
that all there is to it?"
"I
told you it would take time—perhaps as much
as an
hour. Don't fret yourself, you'll have your
demon."
The
mage cast longing glances at the shadow-
shrouded
bottle on the floor beside his visitor as he
mopped
his head with one begrimed, stained sleeve.
The
woman-man noted the direction his atten-
tion
was laid, thought for a moment, weighing the
mage's
efforts, and smiled mirthlessly. "All right,
old
fraud—I guess you've earned it. Come and get
it."
The
mage didn't wait for a second invitation, or
give
the man-woman a chance to take the reluctant
consent
back. He scrambled forward, tripping over
the
tattered edges of his robes, and sagged to his
knees
as he snatched the bottle greedily.
He had
it open in a trice, and began sucking at
the
neck like a calf at the udder, eyes closing and
face
slackening in mindless ecstasy. Within mo-
ments
he was near-collapsing to the floor, half-
empty
bottle cradled in his arms, oblivion in his
eyes.
His
visitor walked over with a softly sinister tread
and
prodded him with a toe. "You'd better have
worked
this right, you old bastard," he muttered,
"Or
you won't be waking—"
His
last words were swallowed in the sudden
roar,
like the howl of a tornado, that rose without
warning
behind him. As he spun to face the area of
inscriptions,
that whole section of floor burst into
sickening
blood-red and hellish green flame; flame
that
scorched his face, though it did nothing to
harm
the beams of the ceiling. He jumped back,
frightened
in spite of his bold resolutions to fear
nothing.
But
before he touched the ground again, a mon-
strous,
clawed hand formed itself out of the flame
and
slapped him back against the rear wall of the
cellar.
A second hand, the color of molten bronze,
reached
for the oblivious mage.
A face
worse than anything from the realm of
nightmare
materialized from the flame between the
two
hands. A neck, arms, and torso followed. The
hands
brought the mage within the fire—the visitor
coughed
on the stench of the old man's robes and
beard
scorching. There was no doubt that the fire
was
real, no matter that it left the ceiling intact.
The
mage woke from his drugged trance, screaming
in
mindless pain and terror. The smell of his flesh
and
garments burning was spreading through the
cellar,
and reached even to where the man-woman
lay
huddled against the dank wall; he choked and
gagged
at the horrible reek.
And the
thing in the flames calmly bit the mage's
head
off, like a child with a gingerbread manikin.
It was
too much for even the man-woman to en-
dure.
He rolled to one side and puked up the entire
contents
of his stomach. When he looked up again,
eyes
watering and the taste of bile in his mouth,
the
thing was staring at him, licking the blood off
its
hands.
He
swallowed as his gorge rose again, and waited
for the
thing to take him for dessert.
"You
smell of magic." The thing's voice was like
a dozen
bells ringing; bells just slightly out-of-tune
with
one another. It made the man-woman nau-
seous
and disoriented, but he swallowed again and
tried
to, answer.
"I...
have a curse."
"So
I see. I assume that was why I was sum-
moned
here. Well, unless we enter into an agree-
ment, I
have no choice but to remain here or return
to the
Abyssal Planes. Talk to me, puny one; I do
not
desire the latter."
"How—why
did you—the old man—"
"I
dislike being coerced, and your friend made
the
mistake of remaining within reach of the circle.
But I
have, as yet, no quarrel with you. I take it you
wish to
be rid of what you bear. Will you bargain to
have
your curse broken? What can you offer me?"
"Gold?"
The
demon laughed, molten-gold eyes slitted. "I
have
more than that in mind."
"Sacrifice?
Death?"
"I
can have those intangibles readily enough on
my own—starting
with yours. You are within my
reach
also."
The
man-woman thought frantically. "The curse
was
cast by one you have reason to hate."
"This
should make me love you?"
"It
should make us allies, at least. I could offer
revenge—"
"Now
you interest me." The demon's eyes slitted.
"Come
closer, little man."
The
man-woman clutched his rags about himself
and
ventured nearer, step by cautious step.
"A
quaint curse. Why?"
"To
make me a victim. It succeeded. It was not
intended
that I survive the experience."
"I
can imagine." A cruel smile parted the de-
mon's
lips. "A pretty thing you are; didn't care for
being
raped, hmm?"
The
man-woman's face flamed. He felt the de-
mon
inside of his mind, picking over all of his
memories
of the past year, lingering painfully over
several
he'd rather have died than seen revealed.
Anger
and shame almost replaced his fear.
The
demon's smile grew wider. "Or did you be-
gin to
care for it after all?"
"Get
out of my mind, you bastard!" He stifled what-
ever
else he had been about to scream, wondering if
he'd
just written his own death-glyph.
"I
think I like you, little man. How can you give
me
revenge?"
He took
a deep breath, and tried to clear his
mind.
"I know where they are, the sorceress and
her
partner. I know how to lure them here—and I
have a
plan to take them when they come—"
"I
have many such plans—but I did not know
how to
bring them within my grasp. Good." The
demon
nodded. "I think perhaps we have a bargain.
I shall
give you the form you need to make you
powerful
against them, and I shall let you bring
them
here. Come, and I will work the magic to
change
you, and free myself with the sealing of our
bargain.
I must touch you—"
The
man-woman approached the very edge of the
flames,
cautious and apprehensive in spite of the
demon's
assurance that he would bargain. He still
did not
entirely trust this creature—and he more
than
certainly still feared its power. The demon
reached
out with one long, molten-bronze talon,
and
briefly caressed the side of his face.
The
stranger screamed in agony, for it felt as if
that
single touch had set every nerve afire. He
wrapped
his arms over his head and face, folded
slowly
at the waist and knees, still crying out; and
finally
collapsed to the floor, huddled in his rags,
quivering.
Had there been anything left in his stom-
ach, he
would have lost it then.
The
demon waited, as patient as a snake, drink-
ing in
the tingles of power and the heady aura of
agony
that the man was exuding. He bent over the
shaking
pile of rags in avid curiosity, waiting for
the
moment when the pain of transformation would
pass.
His expression was oddly human—the same
expression
to be seen on the face of a cruel child
watching
the gyrations of a beetle from which it
has
pulled all the legs but one.
The
huddled, trembling creature at the edge of
his
flames slowly regained control of itself. The
quivering
ceased; rags rose a little, then moved
again
with more purpose. Long, delicate arms ap-
peared
from the huddle, and pushed away from the
floor.
The rags fell away, and the rest of the stranger
was
revealed.
The
visitor raised one hand to her face, then
froze
at the sight of that hand. She pushed herself
into a more
upright position, frowning and shaking
her
head; she examined the other hand and felt of
her
face as her expression changed to one of total
disbelief.
Frantic now, she tore away the rags that
shrouded
her chest and stared in horror at two
lovely,
lily-white—and very female —breasts.
"No—"
she whispered, "—it's not possible—"
"Not
for a human perhaps," the demon replied
with
faint irony, "But I am not subject to a hu-
man's
limitations."
"What
have you done to me?" she shrieked, even
her
voice having changed to a thin soprano.
"I
told you, I would give you a form that would
make
you powerful against them. The sorceress'
geas
prevents her from allowing any harm to befall
a
woman—so I merely made you woman in reality,
to
match the woman you were in illusion. They
will be
powerless against you now, your enemies
and
mine—"
"But
I am not a woman! I can't be a woman!" She
looked
around her for something to throw at the
demon's
laughing face, and finding nothing, hurled
curses
instead. "Make me a man again, damn you!
Make me
a man!"
"Perhaps.
Later, perhaps. When you have earned
a boon
from me. You still retain your strength and
your
weapon's expertise. Only the swordswoman
could
be any danger to you now, and the sorceress
will be
bound to see that she cannot touch you. My
bargain
now, bandit." The demon smiled still wider.
"Serve
me, and it may well be I shall make you a
man
again. But your new body serves me far better
than
your old would have. And meanwhile—"
He drew
a swirl of flame about himself. When he
emerged
from it, he had assumed the shape of a
handsome
human man, quite naked; one whose
beauty
repulsed even as it attracted. He was still
larger
than a normal human in every regard, but he
no
longer filled a quarter of the cellar. He stepped
confidently
across the boundaries of the circle,
reached
forward and gathered the frozen woman to
him.
She struggled wildly; he delighted in her
struggles.
"Oh,
you make a charming wench, little toy; you
play the
part as if you had been born to it! A man
would
have sought to slay me, but you think only to
flee.
And I do not think a man would have guessed
my
intentions, but you have, haven't you, little one.
I think
I can teach you some of the pleasures of
being a
female, as well as the fears, hmm? Perhaps I
can
make you forget you ever were anything else—"
His
laughter echoed through the entire house—
but the
rest of the inhabitants did no more than
check
the fastenings of their doors and return to
the
safety of their beds, hoping that whatever it
was
that was laughing would overlook them.
With
another gesture, the demon transformed the
bleak
basement into a setting from a whore's night-
mare;
with his other hand he held his victim crushed
against
his chest while he reached into her mind
with
his.
She
gasped in shock and dismay, feeling her will
crumble
before his, feeling him take over her senses,
and
feeling those senses rousing as he wished them
to. He
ran his hands over her body, stripping away
the
rags until she was as nude as he, and in the
wake of
his hands her skin burned with fever she
could
not repress.
As the
last remains of her will fell to dust before
his
onslaught, her body, too, betrayed her; respond-
ing as
the demon desired.
And at
the end, she did, indeed, forget for that
one
moment what it had been like to be a man.
Kethry
twined a lock of amber hair around her
fingers,
leaned over her cup and hid a smile. She
found
the side of herself that her swordswoman-
partner
was revealing disarming, and quite de-
lightful—but
she doubted Tarma would appreciate
her
amusement.
The
common room of their inn was far from
being
crowded, and the atmosphere was relaxed
and
convivial. This was really the best such place
they'd
stayed in for months; it was well-lit, the
food
was excellent, the beds comfortable and free
of
vermin, the prices not outrageously extortionate.
And
Tarma was certainly enjoying the company.
As she
had been every night for the past three,
Tarma
was embroiled in a religious discussion—
a
discussion, not an argument; although the two
participants
often waxed passionate, neither ever
found
offense or became angered during their
disagreements.
Her
fellow-scholar was a plump little priest of
Anathei
of the Purifying Flame. He was certainly a
full
priest, and might even (from his cultured ac-
cent)
be a higher prelate, yet he wore only the same
soft,
dark brown, unornamented robes of the least
of his
order's acolytes. He was clean-shaven and
quite
bald, and his cheerful brown eyes seemed to
regard
everything and everyone with the open-
hearted
joy of an unspoiled child. No straitlaced
ascetic,
he—he and Tarma had been trading rounds
of good
wine; tonight reds, last night whites.
Tarma
looked even more out of place seated across
from
him than she did with her sorceress-partner.
She
towered over him by a head, her every move-
ment
proclaiming she knew very well how to man-
age
that sword slung on her back, her hawklike face
and
ice-blue eyes holding a controlled intensity that
could
easily have been frightening or intimidating
to a
stranger. With every article of her weaponry
and
earth-brown clothing so precisely arranged that
what
she wore might almost have been some kind
of
uniform, and her coarse black hair braided and
coiled
with militant neatness, she looked as much
the
priest or more than he—half-barbarian priest of
some
warlike order, that is. She hardly looked as if
she
could have anything in common with the schol-
arly
little priest.
She
hardly looked literate. Certainly no one would
expect
erudite philosophy from her lips, not with
the
warlike accoutrements she bore; yet she had
been
quoting fully as many learned tomes as the
priest—to
his evident delight and Kethry's mild
surprise.
It would appear that service as a Sworn
One did
not exclude knowledge as a possible arena
of
combat. Kethry had long known that Tarma was
literate,
and in more than one language, but she
had
never before guessed that her partner was so
erudite.
Kethry
herself was staying out of the conversa-
tion
for the moment. This evening she and her
partner
had had an argument, the first serious dis-
agreement
of their association. She wanted to give
Tarma a
chance to cool down—and to mull over
what
she'd said.
Because
while it had been unpleasant, it was
also,
unfortunately, nothing less than the truth.
"You're
not going out there alone, are you?" Tarma
had
asked doubtfully, when Kethry had voiced her
intention
to prowl the rather dubious quarter that
housed
the gypsy-mages. Kethry had heard that one
of her
old classmates had taken up with the wan-
derers,
and was looking for news of him.
"Why
not?" she asked, a little more sharply than
she had
intended.
"Because
it's no place for a woman alone."
"Dammit,
Tarma, I'm not just any woman! I'm
perfectly
capable of taking care of myself!"
"Look—even
I can get taken out by a gang of
street
toughs."
"In
the name of the gods, Tarma, leave me alone
for
once! You're smothering me! I can't go any-
where
or do anything without you rushing to wrap
me in
gauze, like a piece of china—"
She'd
stopped then, appalled by the stricken look
on her
partner's face.
Then,
like lightning, the expression changed.
"You're
imagining things," Tarma replied flatly.
"All
right—have it your way." Kethry was too
tired
to fight with her. "You will anyway. Any time
you
hear something you don't like, you deny it and
shut
down on me—just like you're doing now."
And she
had turned on her heel and led the way
into
the inn's common room, ignoring the fact that
Tarma
looked as if the sorceress had just slapped
her.
The
voice of the little priest penetrated her
musing.
"Nay,"
he said. "Nay, I cannot agree. Our teach-
ing is
that evil is not a thing of itself; it is simply
good
that has not been brought to see the truth. We
hold
that even a demon can be redeemed—that
even
the most vile of such creatures could become a
blessed
spirit if someone with time and patience
were to
give him the proper redirection."
"Always
supposing your proselytizer managed to
keep
from being devoured or ripped to shreds be-
fore he
got a single word out," Tarma croaked wryly,
draping
herself more comfortably over the edge of
the
worn wooden table. "He'd better be either agile
or one
damned powerful mage! No, I can't agree
with
you, my friend. Aside from what Magister
Tenavril
has to say about them, I've dealt with a
few
demons up close and on a quite personal basis.
I have
to side with the Twin Suns school; the
demonic
beings must have been created purely of
evil
forces. It isn't just the Abyssal dwellers that
are bad
clear through, either; I've known a few
humans
who could pass for demons. Evil is real
and a reality
in and of itself. It likes being that way.
It
wouldn't choose to be anything else. And it has
to be
destroyed whenever a body gets the chance,
or
it'll spread. Evil is easier to follow than good,
and we
humans like the easy path."
"I
cannot agree. Those who are evil simply don't
know
what good is."
"Oh,
they know, all right; and they reject it to
follow
pure selfishness."
"I—"
the little priest blinked in the candlelight.
"Can
you give me even one instance of great evil
turned
to good once good has been pointed out to
it?"
"Uh—"
he thought hard for a moment, then
smiled
triumphantly. "The Great Demon-Wolf of
Hastandell!"
"Oh,
that's too easy. Warrl!"
A
shadow in a corner of the hearth uncoiled
itself,
and proved to be no shadow at all, but the
kyree,
whose shoulder came nearly as high as Tarma's
waist.
Closer inspection would reveal that Warrl's
body
was more like that of one of the great hunting-
cats of
the plains than a lupine, built for climbing
and
short bursts of high speed, not the endurance
of a
true wolf. But the fur and head and tail were
sufficiently
wolflike that this was how Tarma gen-
erally
thought of him.
He
padded over to the table and benches shared
by the
ill-assorted trio. The conversation of all the
other
occupants of the inn died for a moment as he
moved,
but soon picked back up again. After three
days,
the patrons of the inn were growing a little
more
accustomed to the monster beast in their midst.
Tarma
had helped that along by coaxing him to
demean
himself with a few tricks to entertain them
the
first night of their stay. Now, while the sight of
him
still unsettled a few of them, they had come to
regard
him as harmless. They had no notion of his
true
nature; Tarma and Kethry had tactfully re-
frained
from revealing that he was just as intelli-
gent as
any of them—and quite probably could beat
any one
of them at chess.
"Here's
your Demon-Wolf—one of his kin, rather."
Tarma
cocked her head to one side, her eyes far
away as
if she was listening. "Kyree is what they
call
themselves; they come from the Pelagir Hills.
Warrl
says to tell you that he knows that story—
that
Ourra didn't know the sheep he'd been feed-
ing on
belonged to anyone; when he prowled the
village
at night he was just being curious. Warrl
says
Ourra had never seen humans before that lot
moved
in and settled; he thought they were just
odd
beasts and that the houses were some kind of
dead
growths—believe me, I have seen some of what
grows
naturally in the Pelagirs—it isn't stretching
the
imagination to think that huts could grow of
themselves
once you've seen some of the bushes
and
trees. Well, Warrl wants you to know that
when
the priestess went out and gave Ourra a royal
tongue-lashing
for eating the stock, Ourra was quite
embarrassed.
Without there being someone like me
or
Kethry, with the kind of mind that he could talk
to,
there wasn't much he could do by way of apol-
ogy,
but he did his best to make it up to the village.
His
people have a very high sense of honor. Sorry,
little
man—Qurra is disqualified."
"He
talks to you?" the little priest said, momen-
tarily
diverted. "That creature truly talks? I thought
him
just a well-trained beast!"
"Oh,
after all our conversation, I figured you to
be
open-minded enough to let in on the 'secret.'
Kyree
have a lot of talents—they're as bright as you
or me.
Brighter, maybe—I have no doubt he could
give
you a good battle at taroc, and that's one game
I have
no gift for. As for talking—Warrior's Oath—
sometimes
I wish I could get him to stop! Oh, yes,
he
talks to me all right—gives me no few pieces of
unsolicited
advice and criticism, and usually with
an 'I
told you so' appended." She ruffled the great
beast's
fur affectionately as he grinned a toothy,
tongue-lolling
grin. Kethry tossed him one of the
bones
left from their dinner; he caught it neatly on
the
fly, and settled down beside her to enjoy it.
Behind
them, the hum of voices continued.
"Now
I'll give you one—evil that served only
itself.
Thalhkarsh. We had firsthand experience of
that
one. He had plenty of opportunity to see
good—it
wasn't just the trollops he had stolen for
his
rites. Or are you not familiar with that tale?"
"Not
the whole of it. Certainly not from one of
the
participants!"
"Right
enough then—this is a long and thirsty
story.
Oskar?" Tarma signaled the host, a plump,
shortsighted
man who hurried to answer her sum-
mons.
"Another round—no, make it a pitcher, this
may
take a while. Here—" she tossed him a coin, as
it was
her turn to pay; the innkeeper trotted off
and
returned with a brimming ear then vessel. Kethry
was
amused to see that he did not return to his
station
behind the counter after placing it on the
table
between Tarma and the priest. Instead he
hovered
just within earshot, polishing the tables
next to
them with studious care. Well, she didn't
blame
him, this was a tale Tarma didn't tell often,
and it
wasn't likely anyone in Oberdorn had ever
heard a
firsthand account of it. Oskar would be
attracting
folk to his tables for months after they'd
gone
with repetitions of the story.
"From
all we could put together afterward,
Thalhkarsh
was a demon that had been summoned
purely
by mistake. It was a mistake the mage who
called
him paid for—well, that's usually the case
when
something like that happens. This time though,
things
were evidently a little different," she nod-
ded at
Kethry, who took up the thread of the story
while
Tarma took a sip of wine.
"Thalhkarsh
had ambition. He didn't want to
live in
his own Abyssal Planes anymore, he wanted
to
escape them. More than that, he wanted far
more
power than he had already; he wanted to
become
a god, or a godling, at least. He knew that
the
quickest ways of gaining power are by worship,
pain,
and death. The second two he already had a
taste
of, and he craved more. The first—well, he
calculated
that he knew ways of gaining that, too.
He
transformed himself into a very potently sexual
and
pleasing shape, built himself a temple with a
human
pawn as his High Priest, and set up a
religion."
"It
was a religion tailored to his peculiar tastes.
From
what I know most of the demonic types
wouldn't
think of copulating with a human any-
more
than you or I would with a dog; Thalhkarsh
thought
otherwise." Tarma grimaced. "Of course a
part of
that is simply because of the amount of pain
he
could cause while engaging in his recreations—
but it
may be he also discovered that sex is another
very
potent way of raising power. Whatever the
reason,
that was what the whole religion was
founded
on. The rituals always culminated with
Thalhkarsh
taking a half-dozen women, torturing
and
killing them when he'd done with them, in the
full
view of his worshipers. There's a kind of mind
that
finds that stimulating; before too long, he had
a full
congregation and was well on his way to
achieving
his purpose. That was where we came
in."
"You
know our reputation for helping women?"
Kethry
put in.
"You
have a geas?" ventured the little priest.
"Something
like that. Well, since Thalhkarsh's
chosen
victims were almost exclusively female, we
found
ourselves involved. We slipped into the tem-
ple in
disguise and went for the High Priest—
figuring
if he was the one in charge, that might
solve
the problem. We didn't know he was a pup-
pet,
though I had guessed he might be, and then
dismissed
the idea." Kethry sighed. "Then we found
our
troubles had only begun. He had used this as a
kind of
impromptu test of the mettle of his servant;
when
the servant failed, he offered me the position.
I was
tempted with anything I might want; nearly
unlimited
power, beauty, wealth—and him. He was
incredibly
seductive, I can't begin to tell you how
much.
To try and give you a notion of his power,
every
one of his victims ran to him willingly when
he
called her, even though they knew what their
fate
would be. Well, I guess I resisted him a little
too
long; he became impatient with me and knocked
me into
a wall—unconscious, or so he thought."
"Then
he made me the same offer," Tarma con-
tinued.
"Only with me he demonstrated his power
rather
than just promising things. He totally trans-
formed
me—when he was done kings would have
paid
money for the privilege of laying their crowns
at my
feet. He also came damned close to breaking
my bond
with the Star-Eyed; I swear to you, I was
within
inches of letting him seduce me—except
that
the more he roused my body, the more he
roused
my anger. That was his mistake; I pretended
to give
in when I saw Kethry sneaking up behind
him.
Then I broke his focus just as she stabbed
him; he
lost control over his form and his worship-
ers'
minds. When they saw what he really was,
they
deserted him—that broke his power, and it
was all
over."
"She'
enedra, you were in no danger of breaking;
your
will is too strong, he'd have needed either
more
time to work on you or power to equal the
Warrior's."
"Maybe.
It was a damn near thing; too near for
my
liking. Well he was absolute evil for the sake of
it—and
I should well know, I had that evil crawling
around
in my mind. Besides that, there were other
things
that came out afterward. We know he took a
few
innocent girls who just had the bad luck to be
in the
wrong place; we think some clerics went in
to try
and exorcise him. It's hard to say for certain
since
they were hedge-priests; wanderers with no
set
temple. We do know they disappeared between
one
night and the next; that they did not leave
town by
the gates, and that they had been talking
about
dealing with Thalhkarsh before they vanished."
She
trailed off, the set of her mouth grim, her
eyes
bleak. "We can only assume they went the
way of
all of his victims, since they were never
seen or
heard from again. So Thalhkarsh had plenty
of
opportunity to see good and the Light—and he
apparently
saw it only as another thing to crush."
The
little priest said nothing; there seemed noth-
ing
appropriate to say. Instead, he took a sip of his
wine;
from the distant look in his eyes he was
evidently
thinking hard.
"We
of Anathei are not fools, Sworn One," he
said
finally, "Even though we may not deal with
evil as
if it were our deadly enemy. No, to throw
one's
life away in the foolish and prideful notion
that
one's own sanctity is enough to protect one
from
everything is something very like a sin. The
arrow
that strikes a friend in battle instead of a foe
is no
less deadly because it is misdirected. Let me
tell
you this; when dealing with the greater evils,
we do
nothing blindly. We study carefully, we take
no
chances; we know everything there is to be
known
about an opponent before we face him to
show
him the Light. And we take very great care
that he
is unable to do us harm in his misguided
state."
Tarma's
eyes glinted with amusement in the shift-
ing
light. "Then it may well be your folk have the
right
of it—and in any case, you're going about your
conversions
in a practical manner, which is more
than I
can say for many. Once again we will have to
agree
to disagree."
"With
that, lady, I rest content." He bowed to
her a
little, and the bench creaked under his mov-
ing
weight. "But we still have not settled the point
of
contention. Even if I were willing to concede
that
you are right about Thalhkarsh—which I am
not—he
was still a demon. Not a man. And—"
"Well
if you want irredeemable evil in a human,
we can
give you that, too! Kethry, remember that
bastard
Lastel Longknife?"
"Lady
Bright! Now there was an unredeemable
soul if
ever there was one!"
Kethry
saw out of the corner of her eye that
Oskar
had not moved since the tale-telling had be-
gun,
and was in a fair way to polish a hole right
through
the table. She wondered, as she smothered
a
smile, if that was the secret behind the scrupu-
lously
clean furniture of his inn.
"Lastel
Longknife?" the priest said curiously.
"I
doubt you'd have heard of that one. He was a
bandit
that had set up a band out in the waste
between
here and—"
"Wait—I
think I do know that story!" the priest
exclaimed.
"Isn't there a song about it? One that
goes
'Deep into the stony hills, miles from keep or
hold'?"
"Lady's
Blade, is that nonsense going to follow us
everywhere?"
Tarma grimaced in distaste while
Kethry
gave up on trying to control her giggles.
"Damned
impudent rhymester! I should never have
agreed
to talk to him, never! And if I ever get my
hands
on Leslac again, I'll kill him twice! Bad enough
he got
the tale all backward, but that manure about
Three
things never anger or you will not live for
long; a
wolf with cubs, a man with power and a
woman's
sense of wrong' came damn close to ruin-
ing
business for a while! We weren't geas-pressed
that
time, or being altruistic—we were in it for the
money,
dammit! And—" she turned to scowl at
Kethry.
"What are you laughing about?"
"Nothing—"
One look at Tarma's face set her off
again.
"No
respect; I don't get it from stupid minstrels,
I don't
get it from my partner, I don't even get it
from
you, Fur-face!"
Warrl
put his head down on his paws and con-
trived
to look innocent.
"Well,
if my partner can contrive to control her-
self,
this is what really happened. Longknife had
managed
to unite all the little bandit groups into
one
single band with the promise that they would
be
able-bunder his leadership—to take even the
most
heavily guarded packtrains. He made good on
his
boast. Before a few months passed it wasn't
possible
for a mouse to travel the Trade Road
unmolested."
"But
surely they sent out decoy trains."
"Oh,
they did; Longknife had an extra factor in
his
favor," Kethry had managed to get herself back
into
control again, and answered him. "He had a
talent
for mind-magic, like they practice in Valdemar.
It
wasn't terribly strong, but it was very specific.
Anyone
who saw Longknife thought that he was
someone
they had known for a long time but not
someone
anywhere within riding distance. That way
he
avoided the pitfall of having his 'double' show
up. He
looked to be a different person to everyone,
but he
always looked like someone they trusted, so
he
managed to get himself included as a guard on
each
and every genuine packtrain going out. When
the
time was right, he'd signal his men and they'd
ambush
the train. If it was too well guarded, he'd
wait
until it was his turn on night-watch and drive
away
the horses and packbeasts; there's no water
in the
waste, and the guards and traders would
have to
abandon their goods and make for home
afoot."
"That's
almost diabolically clever."
"You
do well to use that word; he was diabolic,
all
right. One of the first trains he and his men took
was
also conveying a half-dozen or so young girls to
fosterage—daughters
of the traders in town—the
idea
being that they were more likely to find young
men to
their liking in a bigger city. Longknife and
his men
could have ransomed them unharmed; could
even
have sold them. He didn't. He took his plea-
sure of
each of them in turn until he tired of them,
then
turned them over to his men to be gang-raped
to
death without a second thought."
The
priest thought that if the minstrel Leslac
could
have seen the expression in Tarma's eyes at
this
moment, he'd have used stronger words in his
song
than he had.
"The
uncle of one of the girls found out we were
in a
town nearby and sent for us," Kethry picked
up when
Tarma seemed lost in her own grim
thoughts.
"We agreed to take the job, and disguised
ourselves
to go out with the next train. That's where
the
song is worst wrong—I was the lady, Tarma
was the
maidservant. When the bandits attacked, I
broke
the illusions; surprise gave us enough of an
advantage
that we managed to rout them."
"We
didn't kill them all, really didn't even get
most of
them, just the important ones, the leaders."
Tarma
came back to herself and resumed the tale.
"And
we got Longknife; the key to the whole
business."
"What—what
was the 'thorough vengeance'?" the
priest
asked. "I have been eaten up with curiosity
ever
since I heard the song, but I hardly know if I
dare
ask—"
Tarma's
harsh laugh rang as she tossed back her
head.
"We managed to keep one thing from that
songster,
anyway! All right, I'll let you in on the
secret.
Kethry put an all-senses illusion on him and
bound
it to his own mind-magic so that he couldn't
be rid
of it. She made him look like a very attrac-
tive,
helpless woman. We made sure he was uncon-
scious,
then we tied him to his horse and sent him
into
the waste following the track of what was left
of his
band. I've no doubt he knew exactly what his
victims
had felt like before he finally died."
"Remind
me never to anger you, Sworn One."
The
priest shook his head ruefully. "I'm not sure I
care
for your idea of justice."
"Turnabout
is fair play—and it's no worse that
what
he'd have gotten at the hands of the relatives
of the
girls he murdered," Kethry pointed out.
"Tarma's
Lady does not teach that evildoers should
remain
unpunished; nor does mine. And Longknife
is
another bit of scum who had ample opportunity
to do
good—or at least no harm—and chose instead
to
deliberately inflict the most harm he could. I
think
he got his just desserts, personally."
"If
you, too, are going to enter the affray, I fear I
am
outnumbered." The priest smiled. "But I shall
retire
with dignity, allowing the justice of your
assertions,
but not conceding you the victory.
Though
it is rather strange that you should men-
tion
the demon Thalhkarsh just now."
Both
Tarma and Kethry came instantly alert;
they
changed their positions not so much as a hair
(Tarma
leaning on both arms that rested on the
table,
Kethry lounging a little against the wall) but
now
they both had dropped the veneer of careless
ease
they had worn, and beneath that thin skin the
wary
vigilance of the predator and hunter showed
plain.
"Why?"
Tarma asked carefully.
"Because
I have heard rumors in the beggar's
quarter
that some ill-directed soul is trying to re-
establish
the worship of Thalhkarsh in the old Tem-
ple of
Duross there. More than that, we have had
reports
of the same from, a young woman who ap-
parently
dwells there."
"Have
you?" Kethry pushed back the hood of her
buff-colored
robe. "Worshiping Thalhkarsh—that's
a bit
injudicious, considering what happened at
Delton,
isn't it?"
"Injudicious
to say the least," the priest replied,
"Since
they must know what will happen to them
if they
are discovered. The Prince is not minded to
have
light women slaughtered on altars instead of
paying
his venery taxes. I heard that after Thalh-
karsh's
depredations, his income from Delton was
halved
for the better part of three years. He took
care to
alter or tighten the laws concerning reli-
gious
practice after that. Human sacrifice in any
form is
punishable by enslavement; if the perpetra-
tor has
murdered taxpayers, he goes to the Prince's
mages
for their experiments."
Kethry
lifted an eyebrow; Tarma took a largish
mouthful
of wine. They'd both heard about how
Prince
Lothar's mages produced his monstrous mind-
less
bodyguards. They'd also heard that the process
from
normal man to twelve-foot-tall brute was far
from
pleasant—or painless. Lothar was sometimes
called
"the Looney"—but never to his face.
The
little priest met blue and green eyes in turn,
and
nodded. "Besides that," he continued, "There
are
several sects, mine included, who would wish
to deal
with the demon on other levels. We all want
him
bound, at the least. But so far it's all rumor.
The
temple has been empty every time anyone's
checked."
"So
you did check?"
"In
all conscience, yes—although the woman didn't
seem
terribly trustworthy or terribly bright. Pretty,
yes—rather
remarkably pretty under the dirt, but
she
seemed to be in a half-daze all the time. Brother
Thoser
was the one who questioned her, not I, or I
could
tell you more. My guess would be that she
was of
breeding, but had taken to the street to
supply
an addiction of some sort."
Tarma
nodded thoughtfully.
"Where
is this temple?"" Kethry's husky alto
almost
made the little priest regret his vow of chas-
tity;
and when she had moved into the light, and
he saw
that the sweet face beneath the hood matched
the
voice, he sighed a little for days long lost.
"Do
you know the beggar's quarter? Well then,
it's on
the river, just downwind of the slaughter-
house
and the tannery. It's been deserted since the
last
acolyte died of old age—oh, nearly fifteen years
ago.
It's beginning to fall apart a bit; the last time I
looked
at it, there didn't seem to be any signs that
anyone
had entered it in all that time."
"Is
it kept locked up?"
"Oh,
yes; not that there's anything to steal—
mostly
it's to keep children from playing where
they
might be hurt by falling masonry. The beggars
used it
for a bit as one of their meeting halls, before
the
acolyte died, but," he chuckled, "One-Eye Tham
told me
it was 'too perishin' cold and damp' and
they
moved to more comfortable surroundings."
Tarma
exchanged a look with her partner; We
need to
talk, she hand-signed.
Kethry
nodded, ever so slightly. We could be in
trouble,
she signed back.
Tarma's
grimace evidenced agreement.
"Well,
if you will allow me," the little priest
finished
the last of his wine, and shoved the bench
back
with a scrape, "I fear I have morning devo-
tions
to attend to. As always, Sworn One, the con-
versation
and company have been delightful, if
argumentative—''
Tarma
managed a smile; it transformed her face,
even if
it didn't quite reach her eyes. "My friend,
we have
a saying—it translates something like 'there
is room
in the universe for every Way.' You travel
yours;
should you need it, my sword will protect
you as
I travel mine."
"That
is all anyone could reasonably ask of one
who
does not share his faith," he replied, "And so,
good
night."
The two
mercenary women finished their own
wine
and headed for their room shortly after his
departure.
With Warrl padding after, Kethry took
one of
the candles from the little table standing by
the
entrance to the hall, lit it at the lantern above
the
table, and led the way down the corridor. The
wooden
walls were polished enough that their light
was
reflected; they'd been tended to recently and
Tarma
could still smell the ferris-oil that had been
used.
The sounds of snoring behind closed doors,
the
homelike scents of hot wax and ferris-oil, the
buzz of
conversation from the inn behind them—all
contrasted
vividly with the horror that had been
resurrected
in both their minds at the mention of
Thalhkarsh.
Their
room held two narrow beds, a rag rug, and a
table;
all worn, but scrupulously clean. They had
specified
a room with a window, so Warrl could
come
and go as he pleased; no one in his right mind
would
break into the room with any of the three of
them in
it, and their valuables were in the stable,
well-guarded
by their well-named warsteeds, Hells-
bane
and Ironheart.
When
the door was closed and bolted behind
them,
Kethry put the candle in its wall sconce and
turned
to face her partner with a swish of robes.
"If
he's there, if it's really Thalhkarsh, he'll be
after
us."
Tarma
paced the narrow confines of the room.
"Seems
obvious. If I were a demon, I'd want re-
venge.
Well, we knew this might happen someday.
I take
it that your sword hasn't given you any
indication
that there's anything wrong?"
"No.
At least, nothing more than what you'd ex-
pect in
a city this size. I wish Need would be a
little
more discriminating." Kethry sighed, and one
hand
caressed the hilt of the blade she wore at her
side
over her sorceress' robes in an unconscious
gesture
of habit. "I absolutely refuse to go sticking
my nose
into every lover's-quarrel in this town!
And—"
"Warrior's
Oath—remember the first time you
tried?"
Tarma's grim face lightened into a grin
with
the recollection.
"Oh,
laugh, go ahead! You were no help!"
"Here
you thought the shrew was in danger of
her
life—you went flying in the door and knocked
her man
out cold—and you expected her to throw
herself
at your feet in gratitude—" Tarma was tak-
ing
full revenge for Kethry's earlier hilarity at her
expense.
"And what did she do? Began hurling
crockery
at you, shrieking you'd killed her beloved!
Lady's
Eyes, I thought I was going to die!"
"I
wanted to take her over my knee and beat her
with
the flat of my blade."
"And
to add insult to injury, Need wouldn't let
you lay
so much as a finger on her! I had to go in
with a
serving dish for a shield and rescue you
before
she tore you to shreds!"
"She
could have done that with her tongue alone,"
Kethry
grimaced. "Well, that's not solving our prob-
lem
here. ..."
"True,"
Tarma conceded, sobering. She threw
herself
down on her bed, Warrl jumping up next to
her and
pushing his head under her hand. "Back to
the
subject. Let's assume that the rumor is true; we
can't
afford not to. If somebody has brought that
particular
demon back, we know he's going to want
our
hides."
"Or
worse."
"Or
worse. Now he can't have gotten too power-
ful, or
everybody in town would know about him.
Remember
Del ton."
Kethry
shifted restlessly from foot to foot, finally
going
over to the window to open the shutters with
a creak
of hinges and stare out into the night. "I
remember.
And I remember that we'd better do
something
about him while he's in that state."
"This
isn't a job for us, she'enedra. It's a job for
priests.
Powerful priests. I remember what he al-
most
did to me. He came perilously close to break-
ing my
bond with the Star-Eyed. And he boasted he
could
snap your tie to Need just as easily. I think
we
ought to ride up to the capital as fast as Hellsbane
and
Ironheart can carry us, and fetch us some
priests."
"And
come back to an empty town and a demon
transformed
to a godling?" Kethry turned away
from
the window to shake her head at her partner,
her
amber hair like a sunset cloud around her face,
and a
shadow of anger in her eyes. "What if we're
wrong?
We'll have some very powerful people very
angry
at us for wasting their time. And if we're
right—we
have to act fast. We have to take him
while
he's still weak or we'll never send him back
to the
Abyssal Planes at all. He is no stupid imp—
he's
learned from what we did to him, you can bet
on it.
If he's not taken down now, we'll never be
able to
take him at all."
"That's
not our job!"
"Whose
is it then?" Kethry dug her fingers into
the
wood of the windowframe behind her, as tense
and
worried as she'd ever been. "We'd better make
it our
job if we're going to survive! And I told you
earlier—I
don't want you cosseting me! I know what
I'm
doing, and I can protect myself!"
Tarma
sighed, and there was a shadow of guilt on
her
face as she rolled over to lie flat on her back,
staring
at the ceiling; her hands clasped under her
head,
one leg crossed over the other. "All right,
then. I
don't know a damn thing about magic, and
all I
care to know about demons outside of a book is
that
they scare me witless. I still would rather go
for
help, but if you don't think we'd have the time—
and if
you are sure you're not getting into more
than
you can handle—"
"I
know we wouldn't have the time; he's not
going
to waste time building up a power base,"
Kethry
replied, sitting down on the edge of Tarma's
bed,
making the frame creak.
"And
he may not be there at all; it might just be
a wild
rumor."
"It
might; I don't think I'd care to bet my life on
waiting
to see, though."
"So
we need information; reliable information."
"The
question is how to get it. Should I try
scrying?"
"Absolutely
not!" Tarma flipped back over onto
her
side, her hand chopping at the pillow for em-
phasis.
Warrl winced away and looked at her re-
proachfully.
"He caught that poor witch back in
Delton
that way, remember? That much even I
know.
If you scry, he'll have you on his ground. I
promise
I won't cosset you any more, but I will not
allow
you to put yourself in jeopardy when there
are any
other alternatives!"
"Well,
how then?"
"Me."
Tarma stabbed at her own chest with an
emphatic
thumb. "Granted, I'm not a thief—but I
am a
skilled scout. I can slip into and out of that
temple
without anyone knowing I've been there,
and if
it's being used for anything, I'll be able to
tell."
"No."
"Yes.
No choice, she'enedra."
"All
right, then—but you won't be going without
me. If
he and any followers he may have gathered
are
there and they're using magic to mask their
presence,
you won't see anything, but I can invoke
mage-sight
and see through any illusions."
Tarma
began to protest, but this time Kethry cut
her
short. "You haven't a choice either; you need
my
skill and I won't let you go in there without me.
Dammit
Tarma, I am your partner—your full part-
ner. If
I have to, I'll follow you on my own."
"You
would, wouldn't you?"
"You
can bet on it." Kethry scowled, then smiled
as
Tarma's resigned expression told her she'd won
the
argument. Warrl nudged Tarma's hand again,
and she
began scratching absentmindedly behind
his
ears. A scowl creased her forehead, but her
mouth,
too, was quirked in an almost-smile.
"Warrior's
Oath! I would tie myself to a head-
strong,
stubborn, foolish, reckless, crazed mage—"
"Who
loves her bond-sister and won't allow her
to
throw her life away."
"—who
is dearer to me than my own life."
Kethry
reached out at almost the same moment
as
Tarma did. They touched hands briefly, crescent-
scarred
palm to crescent-scarred palm, and ex-
changed
rueful smiles.
"Argument
over?"
"It's
over."
"All
right then," Tarma said after poignant si-
lence,
"Let's get to it now, while we've still got the
guts
for it."
Ten
Tarma
led the way, as soft- and sure-footed in
these
dark city streets as she would have been
scouting
a forest or creeping through grass on an
open
plain.
The
kyree Warrl served as their scout and their
eyes in
the darkness. The uninformed would have
thought
it impossible to hide a lupine creature the
size of
Warrl in an open street—a creature whose
shoulder
nearly came as high as Tarma's waist; but
Warrl,
although somewhere close at hand, was pres-
ently
invisible. Tarma could sense him, though—
now
behind them, now in front. From time to time
he
would speak a single word (or perhaps as many
as
three) in her mind, to tell her of the results of
his
scouting.
There
was little moonlight; the moon was in her
last
quarter. This was one of the poorest streets in
the
city, and there we're no cressets and no torches
to
spare to light the way by night—and if anyone
put one
up, it would be stolen within the hour. The
buildings
to either side were shut up tight; not
with
shutters, for they were in far too poor a state
of
repair to have working shutters, but with what-
ever
bits of wood and cloth or rubbish came to
hand.
What little light there was leaked through
the
cracks in these makeshift curtainings. The street
itself
was rutted mud; no wasting of paving bricks
on this
side of the river. Both the mercenaries wore
thin-soled
boots, the better to feel their way in the
darkness.
Kethry had abandoned her usual buff-
colored,
calf-length robe; she wore a dark, sleeved
tunic
over her breeches. Kethry's ensorcelled blade
Need
was slung at her side; Tarma's nonmagical
weapon
carried in its usual spot on her back. They
had
left cloaks behind; cloaks had a tendency to get
tangled
at the most inopportune moments. Better
to bear
with the chill.
They
had slipped out the window of their room
at the
inn, wanting no one to guess where they
were
going—or even that they were going out at all.
They
had made their way down back alleys with
occasional
detours through fenced yards or even
across
roofs. Although Kethry was no match for
Tarma
in strength and agility, she was quite capa-
ble of
keeping up with her on a trek like this one.
Finally
the fences had begun to boast more holes
than
entire boards; the houses leaned to one side or
the
other, almost as though they huddled together
to
support their sagging bones. The streets, when
they
had ventured out onto them, were either de-
serted
or populated by one or two furtively scurry-
ing
shadows. This dubious quarter where the aban-
doned
temple that their priestly friend had told
them of
stood—this was hardly a place either of
them
would have chosen to roam in daylight, much
less
darkness. Tarma was already beginning to re-
gret
the impulse that had led her here—the stub-
bornness
that had forced her to prove that she was
not
trying to shelter her partner unduly. Except
that
... maybe Kethry was right. Maybe she was
putting
a stranglehold on the mage. But Keth was
all the
Clan she had....
Tarma's
nose told her where they were; down-
wind of
the stockyards, the slaughterhouse, and the
tannery.
The reek of tannic acid, offal, half-tanned
hides
and manure was a little short of unbreathable.
From
far off there came the intermittent lowing
and
bleating of the miserable animals awaiting the
doom
that would come in the morning.
"Something
just occurred to me," Kethry whis-
pered
as they waited, hidden in shadows, for a
single
passerby to clear the street.
"What?"
"This
close to the stockyard and slaughterhouse,
Thalhkarsh
wouldn't necessarily need sacrifices to
build a
power base."
"You
mean—he could use the deaths of the
beasts?"
"Death-energy
is the same for man and beast.
Man
just has more of it, and of higher quality."
"Like
you can get just as drunk on cheap beer as
on
distilled spirits?"
"Something
of the sort."
"Lady's
Blade! And he feeds on fear and pain as
well—"
"There's
plenty of that at the slaughterhouse."
"Great.
That's just what I needed to hear." Tarma
brooded
for a moment. "Tell me something; why's
he
taking on human shape if he wants to terrify?
His own
would be better for that purpose."
"Well—this
is just a guess—you have to remem-
ber he
wants worship and devotion as well, and he
won't
get that in his real shape. That might be one
reason.
A second would be because what seems to
be
familiar and proves to be otherwise is a lot more
fear-inducing
than the openly alien. Lastly is Thalh-
karsh
himself—most demons like the Abyssal Planes,
and
their anger at being summoned is because
they've
been taken from home. They look on us as a
lower
form of life, a species of animal. But Thalh-
karsh
is perverse; he wants to stay here, he wants
to rule
over people, and I suspect he enjoys physi-
cally
coupling with humans. The Lady only knows
why."
"I...
don't suppose he can breed, can he?"
"Windborn!
Thank your Lady, no. Thank all the
gods
that demons even in human form are sterile
with
humans, or we might have more than Thalh-
karsh
to worry about—he might be willing to pro-
duce a
malleable infant. But the only way he can
reproduce
is to bud—and he's too jealous of his
powers
here to bud and create another on this Plane
with
like powers and a mind of its own. He won't
go
creating a rival, that much I'm sure of."
"Forgive
me if I don't break out into carols of
relief."
They
peered down the dark, shadow-lined street
in glum
silence. The effluvium of the stockyards
and
tannery washed over them, causing Tarma to
stifle
a cough as an acrid breath seared the back of
her
throat a little.
The
street is clear, a voice rang in Tarma's head.
"Warrl
says it's safe to go," Tarma passed the
word
on, then, crouching low, crossed the street
like
one of the scudding shadows cast on the street
by high
clouds against the moon.
She
moved so surely and so silently from the
shadows
of their own building to the shadows be-
low the
one across the street that even Kethry, who
knew
she was there, hardly saw her. Kethry was an
instant
behind her, not quite so sure or silent, but
furtive
enough. Warrl was already waiting for them,
and
snorted a greeting before slipping farther ahead
of them
in the direction of the temple.
Hugging
the rough wood and stone of the walls,
they
inched their way down the street, trying not
to
wince when their feet encountered unidentifi-
able
piles of something soft and mushy. The reek of
tannery
and stockyard overwhelmed any other taint.
From
within the buildings occasionally came sounds
of
revelry or conflict; hoarse, drunken singing, shout-
ing,
weeping, the splintering of wood, the crash of
crockery.
None of this was carried into the streets;
only
fools and the mad walked the streets of the
beggar's
quarter at night.
Fools,
the mad, or the desperate. Right now Kethry
had
both of them figured for being all three.
Finally
the walls of buildings gave way to a sin-
gle
stone wall, half again as tall as Tarma. This, by
the descriptions
she'd gotten, would be the wall of
the
temple. Beyond it, bulking black against the
stars,
Kethry could see the temple itself.
* * *
Tarma
surveyed the wall, deciding it would be
no
great feat to scale it.
You go
over first, Fur-face, she thought.
My
pleasure, Warrl sent back to her, overtones of
irony
so strong Tarma could almost taste the metal-
lic
emotional flavoring. He backed up six or seven
paces,
then flung himself at the wall. His forepaws
caught
the top of it; caught, and held, and with a
scrambling
of hindclaws that sounded hideously
loud to
Tarma's nervous ears, he was over and
leaping
down on the other side.
Now it
was her turn.
She
backed up a little, then ran at the wall,
leaping
and catching the top effortlessly, pulling
herself
up onto the stones that were set into the top
with
ease. She crouched there for a moment, peer-
ing
through the darkness into the courtyard beyond,
identifying
the odd-shaped shadows by what she'd
been
told to expect there.
In the
middle there stood a dried-out fountain,
its
basin broken, its statuary mostly missing limbs
and
heads. To the right were three stone boxes
containing
earth and dead trees. To the left had
been a
shrine, now a heap of rubble, that had been
meant
for those faithful who felt unworthy to enter
the
temple proper. All was as it should be; nothing
moved.
I'd
tell you if anything was here, wouldn't 1? Warrl
grumbled
at her lack of trust.
She
felt one corner of her mouth twitch at his
reply.
I can take it that all's well?
Nothing
out of the ordinary outside.
It's
inside I'm worried about.
She
saluted Kethry briefly, seeing the strained,
anxious
face peering whitely up at her in the moon-
shadows,
then slipped over the top to land on cat-
quiet
feet in the temple courtyard.
She
slid carefully along the wall, left foot testing
the
ground at the base of it for loose pebbles that
might
slip underfoot or be kicked away by accident.
The
moon was behind her; so her side of the wall
was
entirely in shadow so long as she stayed close
to it.
Five steps—twenty—fifty—her outstretched
hand
encountered a hinge, and wood. She'd come to
the
gate.
She
felt for the bar and eased it along its sockets
until
one half of the gate was freed. That gave
Kethry
her way in; now she would scout ahead.
She
waited for another of those scudding cloud-
shadows;
joining it as it raced across the courtyard.
Cobblestones
were hard and a trifle slippery be-
neath
her thin-soled boots; she was glad that the
first
sole was of tough, abrasive sharkskin. Dew
was
already beginning to collect on the cold stones,
making
them slick, but the sharkskin leather gave
her
traction.
She
reached the shelter of the temple entrance
without
incident; Warrl was waiting for her there,
a
slightly darker shadow in the shadows of the
doorway.
Ready?
she asked him. She felt his assent.
She
reached for the door, prepared to find it
locked,
and was pleasantly surprised when it wasn't.
She
nudged it open a crack; when nothing hap-
pened,
she opened it enough to peer carefully inside.
She saw
nothing but a barren antechamber. Warrl
stuck
his nose inside, and sniffed cautiously.
Nothing
here—but something on the other side of the
door
beyond; people for sure—and, I think, blood and
incense.
And magic, lots of magic.
Tarma
sighed; it would have been nice if this
had
been a false alarm. Sounds like we've come to the
right
place.
Shouldn't
we wait for Kethry?
You go
after her; I want to make sure there isn't
anyone
on guard in there.
Not
yet. 1 want to know you aren't biting off more
than
you can swallow. Warrl waited for her to move
on, one
shadow among many.
She
slipped in through the crack in the door,
Warrl a
hairsbreadth behind her. Moonlight shone
down
through a skylight above. The door on the
other
side of the antechamber stood open; between
it and
the door she had entered through was noth-
ing but
untracked dust.
She
hugged the wall, easing carefully around the
doorpost.
Once inside the sanctuary she could barely
see her
own hands; she continued to hug the wall,
making
her way by feel alone. She came to a corner,
paused
for a moment, and tried to see, but could
only
make out dim shapes in the small amount of
light
that came from various holes in the ceiling of
the
sanctuary. It was impossible to tell if those
sources
of light were more skylights, or the evi-
dence
of neglect. Dust filled the air, making her
nose
itch; other than that, lacking Ward's senses,
she
could only smell damp and mildew. The stones
beneath
her hands were cold and slightly moist.
Beneath
the film of moisture they were smooth and
felt a
little like polished granite.
She
went on, coming at last around behind the
statue
of the rain-god that stood at the far end of
the
room. The shadows were even deeper here; she
slowed
her pace to inch along the stuccoed wall,
one
hand feeling before her.
Then
her hand encountered emptiness.
A door.
I can
tell that! A door to where?
To
where the blood-smell is.
Then we
take it. I'm going on ahead; you go back
and
fetch Kethry.
Now she
was alone in pitchy darkness, with only
the
rough brick wall of the corridor as a guide, and
the
faint sound of her footsteps bouncing off the
walls
to tell her that it was a corridor. She held
back
impatience and continued to feel her way with
extreme
caution—until once again her hand en-
countered
open air.
She was
suddenly awash with light, frozen by it,
surrounded
by it on all sides. She would have been
prepared
for any attack but this, which left her
blind
and helpless, with tears of pain blurring what
little
vision she had. She went automatically into a
defensive
crouch, pulling her blade over her head
with
both hands from the sheath on her back; only
to hear
a laugh like a dozen brass bells from some
point
above her head.
"Little
warrior," the voice said caressingly. "I
have so
longed for the day when we might meet
again."
"I
can't say I feel the same about you," Tarma
replied
after a bit, trying to locate the demon by
sound
alone. "I suppose it's too much to expect you
to
stand and fight me honorably?" She could see
nothing
but angry red light, like flame, but without
the
heat; perhaps the light was a little brighter
above
and just in front of her. She tried to will her
eyes to
work, but they remained dazzled, with lances
of pain
shooting into her skull every time she
blinked.
There was a smell of blood and sex and
something
more that she couldn't quite identify.
Her
heart was racing wildly with fear, but she was
determined
not to let him see how helpless she felt.
"Honor
is for fools—and I may have been a fool
in the
past, but I am no longer quite so gullible. No,
little
warrior, I shall not stand and fight you. I shall
not
fight you at all. I shall simply—put you to
sleep."
A
sickly sweet aroma began to weave around her,
and
Tarma recognized it after a moment as black
tran-dust;
the most powerful narcotic she knew of.
She had
only that moment of recognition before she
felt
her control over herself suddenly melt away;
her
entire body went numb in a single breath, and
she
fell face down on the floor, mind and body alike
paralyzed,
sword falling from a hand that could no
longer
hold it.
And now
that you cannot fight me, said a silky
voice
in her mind, I shall make of you what I will...
and
somewhat more to my taste than the ice-creature
you are
now. And this time your Goddess shall not be
able to
help you. I am nearly a god now myself, and the
gods
are forbidden to war upon other gods.
The
last thing she heard was his laughter, like
bronze
bells slightly out of tune with one another.
Kethry
fretted inwardly, counting down the mo-
ments
until she was supposed to try the gate. This
was the
hardest part, for certain; the waiting. Any-
thing
else she could manage with equanimity. Wait-
ing
brought out the worst fears, roused her imagi-
nation
to a fever pitch. The plan was for Tarma
and
Warrl to check the courtyard, then unlock the
gates
for her. They would precede her into the
temple
as well. They were to meet in the sanctu-
ary,
after Tarma had declared it free of physical
hazards.
It was
a plan Kethry found herself misliking more
with
every passing moment. They were a team; it
went
against the grain to work separately. Granted,
Warrl
was with Tarma; granted that she was some-
thing
of a handicap in a skulk-and-hide situation
like
this—still, Kethry couldn't help thinking that
she'd
be able to detect dangers neither of the other
two
would notice. More than that—her place was
with
Tarma, not waiting in the wings. Now she
began
to wish she hadn't told the Shin'a'in that she
intended
to investigate this place. If she'd kept her
mouth
shut, she could have done this properly, by
daylight,
perhaps. Finally her impatience became
too
much; she felt her way along the wall to the
wooden
gates, and pushed very slightly on one of
them.
It
moved.
Tarma
had succeeded in this much, anyway; the
gates
were now unbarred.
She
pushed a little harder, slowly, carefully. The
gate
swung open just enough for her to squeeze
herself
through, scraping herself on the wooden
bulwarks
both fore and aft as she did so.
Before
her lay the courtyard, mostly open ground.
Remembering
all Tarma had taught her, she
crouched
as low as she could, waited until the
moon
passed behind a cloud, and sprinted for the
shelter
of the dried-up fountain.
Under
the rim, in shadows, she looked around;
watching
not for objects, but for movement, any
movement.
But there was no movement, anomalous
or
otherwise. She crawled under the rim until she
lay
hidden on the side facing the temple doors.
She
watched, but saw nothing; she listened, but
heard
only crickets and toads. She waited, aching
from
the strain of holding herself still in such an
awkward
position, until the moon again went be-
hind a
cloud.
She
sprinted for the temple doors, flinging her-
self
against the wall of the temple behind a pillar
as soon
as she reached them. It was then that she
realized
that there had been something very anom-
alous
at the gate.
The
aged gates, allegedly locked for fifteen years,
had
opened smoothly and without a sound—as if
they
had been oiled and put into working order
within
the past several days.
Something
was very wrong.
A
shadow bulked in front of her, and she started
with
alarm; she pulled the sword in a defensive
move
before she realized that her "enemy" was
Warrl.
He
reached for her arm and his teeth closed gently
on her
tunic; he tugged at her sleeve. That meant
Tarma
wanted her.
"You
didn't meet with anything?" Kethry whisp-
ered.
Warrl
snorted. I think that they are all asleep or
blind.
A cub could have penetrated this place.
This
was too easy; all her instincts were in an
uproar.
Too easy by far. She suddenly realized what
their
easy access to this place meant. This was a
trap!
And now
Kethry felt a shrill alarm course through
her
every nerve—a double alarm. Need was alerting
her to
a woman in the deadliest danger, and very
nearby—
—and
the bond of she'enedran was resonating with
soul-deep
threat to her blood-sister. Tarma was in
trouble.
As if
to confirm her fears, Warrl threw up his
head
and voiced his battle-cry, and charged within,
leaving
Kethry behind.
And
given the urgency of Need's pull, that could
only
mean one thing.
Thalhkarsh
was here—and he had the Sworn One
at his
nonexistent mercy.
The
time for subterfuge was over.
Kethry
pulled her ensorcelled blade with her left
hand,
and caused a blue-green witchlight to dance
before
her with a gesture from her right; then kicked
open
the doors of the temple and flung herself
frantically
through them. She landed hard against
the
dingy white-plastered wall of a tiny, cobwebbed
anteroom,
bruising her shoulder; and found herself
staring
foolishly at an empty chamber.
Another
door stood in the opposite wall, slightly
ajar.
She inched along the wall and eased it open
with
the tip of her blade. The witchlight showed
nothing
beyond it but a brick-walled tunnel that
led
deeper into the temple proper. Warrl must al-
ready
have run down this way.
She
moved stealthily through the door, and into
the
corridor, praying to find Tarma, and soon. The
internal
alerts of both her blade and her blood-bond
were
nigh-unbearable, and she hardly dared con-
template
what that meant to Tarma's well-being.
But the
corridor twisted and turned like a kadessa-
run,
seemingly without end. With every new cor-
ner she
expected to find something—but every time
she
rounded a corner she saw only another long,
dust-choked
extension of the corridor behind her.
The
dust showed no tracks at all, not even Warrl's.
Could
she have somehow come the wrong way? But
there
were only two directions to choose—forward,
or back
the way she had come. Back she would
never
go; that left only forward. And forward was
yard
after yard of blank-walled corridor, with never
a door
or a break of any kind. She slunk on and on
in a
kind of nightmarish entrancement in which
she
lost all track of time; there was only the end-
lessly
turning corridor before her and the cry for
help
within her. Nothing else seemed of any import
at all.
As the urgings of her geas-blade Need and
the
bond that tied her to Tarma grew more and
more
frantic, she was close to being driven nearly
mad
with fear and frustration. She was being dis-
tracted;
so successfully in fact, that it wasn't until
she'd
wasted far too much precious time trying to
thread
the maze that she realized what it must
be—
—a
magical construct, meant to delay her, aug-
mented
by spells of befuddlement.
"You
bastard!" she screamed at the invisible
Thalhkarsh,
enraged by his duplicity. He had made
a
serious mistake in doing something that caused
her to
become angry; that rage was useful, it fueled
her
power. She gathered it to her, made a force of it
instead
of allowing it to fade uselessly; sought and
found
the weak point of the spell. She sheathed
Need,
and spreading her arms wide over her head,
palms
facing each other, blasted with the white-
heat of
her anger.
Mage-energies
formed a glowing blue-white arc
between
her upraised hands; a sorcerer's wind be-
gan to
stir around her, forming a miniature whirl-
wind
with herself as the eye. With a flick of her
wrists
she reversed her hands to hold them palm-
outward
and brought her arms down fully extended
to
shoulder height; the mage-light poured from them
to form
a wall around her, then the wall expanded
outward.
The brick corridor walls about her flared
with
scarlet as the glowing wall of energy touched
them;
they shivered beneath the wrath-fired mage-
blast,
wavered and warped like the mirages they
were.
There was a moment of resistance; then,
soundlessly,
they vanished.
She saw
she was standing in what had been the
outer,
common sanctuary; an enormous room, sup-
ported
by two rows of pillars whose tops were lost
in the
shadows of the ceiling. Tracks in the dust
showed
she had been tracing the same circling path
all the
time she had thought she was traversing the
corridor.
Her anger brightened the witchlight; the
green-blue
glow revealed the far end of the sanctuary
—the
forgotten god stood there, behind his altar.
The
statue of the gentle god of rains had a forlorn
look;
he and his altar were covered with a blanket
of dust
and cobwebs. Dust lay undisturbed nearly
everywhere.
Nearly
everywhere—she was not the expert tracker
Tarma
was, but it did not take an expert to read
the trail
that passed from the front doors to some-
where
behind the god's statue. And in those dust
tracks
were paw prints.
Desperate
to waste no more time, she pulled her
blade
again and broke into a run, her blue-green
witchlight
bobbing before her, intent on following
that
trail to wherever it led. She passed by the
neglected
altar with never a second glance, and
found
the priests' door at the end of the trace in
the
dust; it lay just behind and beneath the statue.
It had
never been intended to be concealed, and
besides
stood wide open. She sent the witchlight
shooting
ahead of her and sprinted inside, panting
a
little.
But the
echoes of running feet ahead of her as
she
passed into another brick-walled corridor told
her
that her spell-breaking had not gone unnoticed.
Common
sense and logic said she should find a
corner
to put her back against and make a stand.
Therefore
she did nothing of the kind.
As the
first of four armed mercenaries came
pounding
into view around a corner ahead, she took
Need in
both hands and charged him, shrieking at
the top
of her lungs. Her berserk attack took the
demon-hireling
by surprise; he stopped dead in his
tracks,
staring, and belatedly raised his own weapon.
His
hesitation sealed his doom. Kethry let the el-
dritch
power of Need control her body, and the
bespelled
blade responded to the freedom by mov-
ing her
in a lightning blow at his unprotected side.
Screaming
in pain, the fighter fell, arm sheared off
at the
shoulder.
The
second hired thug was a little quicker to
defend
himself, but he, too, was no match for Need's
spell-imparted
skill. Kethry cracked his wooden
shield
in half with a strength far exceeding what
she
alone possessed, and swatted his blade out of
his
hands after only two exchanges, sending it clat-
tering
against the wall. She ran him through before
he
could flee her.
The
third and fourth sought to take her while—
they
presumed—Kethry's blade was still held fast
in the
collapsing body. They presumed too much;
Need
freed itself and spun Kethry around to meet
and
counter both their strokes in a display of swords-
manship
a master would envy. They saw death
staring
at them from the witchlight reflected on
the
blood-dripping blade, from the hate-filled green
eyes.
It was
more than they had the stomach to face—
and
their lives were worth far more to them than
their
pay. They turned and fled back down the way
they
had come, with Kethry in hot pursuit, too
filled
with berserk anger now to think that a charge
into
unknown danger might not be a wise notion.
There
was light ahead, Kethry noticed absently,
allowing
her rage to speed her feet. That might
mean
there were others there—and perhaps the
demon.
The
hirelings ran to the light as to sanctuary;
Kethry
followed—
She
stumbled to a halt, at first half-blinded by
the
light; then when her eyes adjusted, tripped on
nothing
and nearly fell to her knees, her mind and
heart
going numb at what she saw.
This
had once been the inner temple; Thalh-
karsh
had transformed it into his own perverted
place
of unholiness. It had the red-lit look of a
seraglio
in hell. It had been decorated with the
same
sort of carvings that had ornamented the de-
mon's
temple back in Delton. The subject was sex-
ual;
every perversion possible was depicted, provided
that it
included pain and suffering.
The far
end of the room had been made into a
kind of
platform, covered in silk and velvet cush-
ions,
plushly upholstered. It was a cliched setting;
an overdone
backdrop for an orgy. The demon cer-
tainly
enjoyed invoking pain, but it appeared that
he
himself preferred not to suffer the slightest dis-
comfort
while he was amusing himself. The plat-
form
was occupied by a clutch of writhing nude
and
partially clothed bodies. Only now were some
of
those on the platform beginning to disengage and
take
notice of the hirelings fleeing for the door on
the
opposite side. Evidently not even the demon
foresaw
that Kethry would be able to get this far on
her own.
The
demon and his followers had been inter-
rupted
by her entrance at the height of their plea-
sures.
And it was the sight of the demon's partner
that
had stricken Kethry to the heart—for the one
being
used by the demon himself was Tarma.
But it
was Tarma transformed; she wore the face
and
body the demon had given her when he had
first
tried to seduce her to his cause. Though smaller
and far
frailer, she was still recognizably herself—
but
with all her angularities softened, her harsh-
ness
made silken, her flaws turned to beauty. Her
clothing
was in rags, and she had the bruises and
the
look of a woman who has been passed from one
brutal
rape to another. That was bad enough, but
that
was not what had struck Kethry like a dagger
to the
heart; it was the absence of any mind or
sense
in Tarma's blank blue eyes.
Tarma
had survived rape before; were she still
aware
and in charge of herself, she would still be
fighting.
Mere brutal use would not have forced
her
mind from her, not when the slaughter of her
entire
Clan as well as her own abuse had failed to
do that
when she was a young woman and far more
innocent
than she was now. No—this had to be the
work of
the demon. Knowing he would be unable to
break
her spirit, Thalhkarsh had stolen Tarma's
mind;
stolen her mind or somehow forced her soul
out of
her body.
The
demon, wearing his form of a tall, beautiful
human
male, was the first to recover from surprise
at the
interruption.
"Amusing,"
he said, not appearing at all amused.
"I
had thought the skill of those I had paid would
more
than equal yours, even with that puny blade
to
augment it. It appears that I was mistaken."
Before
Kethry could make a move, he had seized
Tarma,
and pulled her before him—not as a shield,
but
with evident threat.
"Put
up your blade, sorceress," he purred bra-
zenly,
"or I tear her limb from limb."
Kethry
knew he was not bluffing, and Need clat-
tered
to the floor from her nerveless hand.
He
laughed, a hideous howl of triumph. "You dis-
appoint
me, my enemy! You have made my conquest
too
easy!" He stood up and tossed Tarma aside; she
fell to
the pile of cushions with the limpness of a
lifeless
doll, not even attempting to break her own
fall.
"Come forth, my little toy—" he continued,
turning
his back on his fallen victim and beckoning
to
someone lurking behind the platform.
From
out of the shadows among the hangings
came a
woman, and when she stepped far enough
into
the light that Kethry was able to get a good
look at
her, the sorceress reeled as if she had been
struck.
It couldn't be—
The
woman was the twin of an image she herself
had
once worn—and that she had placed on the
unconscious
form of the marauding bandit Lastel
Longknife
by way of appropriate punishment for
the
women and girls he had used and murdered. It
was an
image she had never expected to see again;
she had
assumed the bandit would have been treated
with
brutality equaling his own by what was left
of his
fellows. By all rights, he should have been
dead—long
dead.
"I
think the bitch recognizes me, my lord," the
dulcet
voice said, heavy irony in the title of subser-
vience.
Platinum hair was pushed back from ame-
thyst
eyes with a graceful but impatient hand.
"You
never expected to see me again, did you?"
Her
eyes blazed with helpless anger. "May every
god
damn you for what you did to me, woman.
Death
would have been better than the misery this
shape
put me through! If it hadn't been for a forgot-
ten
sword and an untied horse—"
She
came closer, hands crooked into claws. "I've
dreamed
of having you in my hands every night
since,
gods—but not like this." Her eyes betrayed
that
she was walking a very thin thread of sanity.
"What
you did to me was bad enough—but being
trapped
in this prison of a whore's carcass is more
than I
can bear—it's worse than Hell, it's—"
She
turned away, clenching her hands so tightly
that
the knuckles popped. After a moment of inter-
nal
struggle she regained control over herself, and
turned
to the demon. "Well, since it was my tales
to the
priests that lured them here, the time has
come
for you to keep your side of the bargain."
"You
wish to lose your current form? A pity—I
had
thought you had come to enjoy my attentions."
The woman
colored; Kethry was baffled. She had
only
placed the illusion of being female on the ban-
dit,
but this—this was a real woman! Mage-sight
showed
only exactly what stood before her in normal-
sight,
not the bandit of the desert hills!
"Damn
you," she snarled. "Oh, gods, for a demon-
slaying
blade! Yes, you bastard, I enjoy it! As you
very
well know, squirming like a vile snake inside
my
head! You've made me your slave as well as
your
puppet; you've addicted me to you, and you
revel
in my misery—you cursed me far worse than
ever
she did. And now, damn you, I want free of it
and you
and all else besides! I've paid my part of
the
bargain. Now you live up to your side!"
Thalhkarsh
smiled cruelly. "Very well, my pretty
little
toy—go and take her lovely throat in both
your
hands, and I shall free you of that body with
her
death."
One of
the acolytes scuttled around behind Kethry
and
seized her arms, pinioning them behind her
back.
He needn't have bothered; she was so in shock
she couldn't
have moved if the ceiling had begun to
fall in
on them. The slender beauty approached,
stark,
bitter hatred in her eyes, and seized Kethry's
throat.
A howl
echoed from behind her; a hurtling black
shape
leaped over her straight at the demon. It was
Warrl—who
evidently had met the same kind of
delaying
tactics as Kethry had. Now he had broken
free of
them, and he was in a killing rage. This time
Thalhkarsh
took no chances with Warrl; from his
upraised
hands came double bolts of crimson light-
ning.
Warrl was hit squarely in midair by both of
them.
He shrieked horribly, transfixed six feet above
the
floor, caught and held in midleap. He writhed
once,
shrieked again—then went limp. The aura of
the
demon's magic faded; the body of the kyree
dropped
to the ground like a shot bird, and did not
move
again.
Lastel
was not in the least distracted by this; she
tightened
her hands around Kethry's neck. Kethry
struggled
belatedly to free herself, managing to bring
her
heel down on the foot of the acolyte behind her,
catching
him squarely in the instep so that he yowled
and
dropped to the floor, clutching his ruined foot.
But
even when her arms were free, she was pow-
erless
against the bandit; she scratched at Lastel's
hands
and reached for her eyes with crooked
fingers—uselessly.
Her own hands would not re-
spond;
her lungs screamed for air, and she began to
black
out.
The
demon laughed, and again raised his hands;
Kethry
felt as if she'd been plunged into the heart
of a
fire. Crackling energies surrounded both of
them;
her legs gave beneath her and it was only
when a
new acolyte caught her arms and held her
up that
she remained erect. With narrowing vision
she
stared into Lastel's pale eyes, unable to look
away—
And suddenly
she found herself staring down
into
her own face, with her own neck between her
hands!
Kethry released her grip with a cry of dis-
belief;
stared down at at her hands, at herself,
horror
written plain on her own face. Lastel stared
up at
her out of her own eyes, hatred and black
despair
making a twisted mask of her face.
The
demon laughed at both of them, cruel enjoy-
ment
plain in his tone. He eased off the monstrous
pile of
silks and stalked proudly toward them, sweep-
ing the
bandit up onto her feet and into his arms as
he came
to stand over Kethry, who had sagged to
her
knees in shock.
"I
promised to change your form, fool—I did not
promise
into what image!" he chortled. "And you,
witch—I
have your rightful body in my keeping
now—and
you will never, never reverse a spell to
which I
and I alone hold the key!"
He
gestured at his acolyte, who dropped his hold
on
Kethry-now-Lastel and seized Lastel-now-Ke-
thry's
arms instead, hauling her roughly to her feet.
"My
foolish sorceress, my equally foolish toy,
how
easy it is to manipulate you! Little toy, did you
truly
think that I would release you when you take
such
delight in my attentions? That I would allow
such a
potent source of misery out of my posses-
sion?
As for you, dear enemy—I have only begun to
take my
revenge upon you. I shall leave you alive,
and in
full possession of your senses—unlike your
sword-sister.
No doubt you wonder what I have
done
with her? I have wiped her mind clean; in
time I
shall implant my teachings in her, so that I
shall
have an acolyte of complete obedience and
complete
devotion. It was a pity that I could not
force
her to suffer as you shall, but her will com-
bined
with her link to her chosen goddess was far
too
strong to trifle with. But now that her mind is
gone,
the link has gone with it, and she will be
mine
for so long as I care to keep her."
Kethry
was overwhelmed with agony and despair;
she
stifled a moan with difficulty. She felt tears
burning
her eyes and coursing down her cheeks;
her
vision was blurred by them. The demon smiled
at the
sight.
"As
for you, you will be as potent a source of
pain as
my little toy is; know that you will feed my
power
with your grief and anguish. Know that your
blood-sister
will be my plaything, willingly suffer-
ing
because I order it. Know all this, and know that
you are
helpless to prevent any of it! As for this—"
He
prodded the body of Warrl with one toe. His
smile
spread even wider as she tried involuntarily
to reach
out, only to have the acolytes hold her
arms
back.
"I
think that I shall find something suitable to
use it
for. Shall I have it mounted, or—yes. The fur
is
quite good; quite soft and unusual. I think I shall
have it
tanned—and it shall be your only bed, my
enemy!"
He
laughed, as Kethry struggled in the arms of
his
acolytes, stomach twisted and mind torn nearly
in
shreds by her grief and hatred of him. She sub-
sided
only when they threatened to wrench her
arms
out of their sockets, and hung limply in their
grasp,
panting with frustrated rage and weeping
soundlessly.
"Take
her, and take her friend. Put them in the
place I
prepared for them," Thalhkarsh ordered
with a
lift of one eyebrow. "And take that and that
as
well," he indicated the body of Warrl and Kethry's
sword
Need. "Put them where she can see them
until I
decide what to do with them. Perhaps, little
toy, I
shall give the blade to you."
Lastel's
hands clenched and unclenched as he
attempted
to control himself. "Do it, damn you! If
you do,
I'll use it on you, you bastard!"
"How
kind of you to warn me, then. But come—
you
wear a new body now, and I wish to see how it
differs
from the old—don't you?"
Kethry's
last sight of the demon was as he swept
Lastel
up onto the platform, then she and Tarma
were
hustled down another brick-lined corridor,
and
shoved roughly into a makeshift cage that took
up the
back half of a stone-lined storage room.
Warrl's
carcass and Need were both dumped un-
ceremoniously
on the slate table in front of the cage
door.
The
room lacked windows entirely, and had only
the one
door now shut and (from the sounds that
had
come after her guards had shut it), locked.
Light
came from a single torch in a holder near the
door.
The cage was made of crudely-forged iron
bars
welded across the entire room, with an equally
crude
door of similar bars that had been padlocked
closed.
There was nothing whatsoever in the cage;
she and
Tarma had only what they were wearing,
which
in Tarma's case was little more than rags,
and in
hers, the simple shift and breeches Lastel
had
been wearing. Though she searched, she found
no
weapons at all.
Tarma
sat blank-eyed in the corner of the cage
where
she'd been left, rocking back and forth and
humming
tunelessly to herself. The only thing that
the
demon hadn't changed was her voice; still the
ruined
parody of what it had been before the slaugh-
ter of
her Clan.
Kethry
went to her and knelt on the cold stone at
her
side. "Tarma?" she asked, taking her she'enedra's
hand in
hers and staring into those blank blue eyes.
She got
no response for a moment, then the eyes
seemed
to see her. One hand crept up, and Tarma
inserted
the tip of her index finger into her mouth.
"Tarma?"
the Shin'a'in echoed ingenuously. And
that
was all of intelligence that Kethry could coax
from
her; within moments her eyes had gone blank
again,
and she was back to her rocking and tuneless
humming.
Kethry
looked from the mindless Tarma to the
gone,
the link has gone with it, and she will be
mine
for so long as I care to keep her."
Kethry
was overwhelmed with agony and despair;
she
stifled a moan with difficulty. She felt tears
burning
her eyes and coursing down her cheeks;
her
vision was blurred by them. The demon smiled
at the
sight.
"As
for you, you will be as potent a source of
pain as
my little toy is; know that you will feed my
power
with your grief and anguish. Know that your
blood-sister
will be my plaything, willingly suffer-
ing
because I order it. Know all this, and know that
you are
helpless to prevent any of it! As for this—"
He
prodded the body of Warrl with one toe. His
smile
spread even wider as she tried involuntarily
to
reach out, only to have the acolytes hold her
arms
back.
"I
think that I shall find something suitable to
use it
for. Shall I have it mounted, or—yes. The fur
is
quite good; quite soft and unusual. I think I shall
have it
tanned—and it shall be your only bed, my
enemy!"
He
laughed, as Kethry struggled in the arms of
his
acolytes, stomach twisted and mind torn nearly
in
shreds by her grief and hatred of him. She sub-
sided
only when they threatened to wrench her
arms
out of their sockets, and hung limply in their
grasp,
panting with frustrated rage and weeping
soundlessly.
"Take
her, and take her friend. Put them in the
place I
prepared for them," Thalhkarsh ordered
with a
lift of one eyebrow. "And take that and that
as
well," he indicated the body of Warrl and Kethry's
sword
Need. "Put them where she can see them
until I
decide what to do with them. Perhaps, little
toy, I
shall give the blade to you."
Lastel's
hands clenched and unclenched as he
attempted
to control himself. "Do it, damn you! If
you do,
I'll use it on you, you bastard!"
"How
kind of you to warn me, then. But come—
you
wear a new body now, and I wish to see how it
differs
from the old—don't you?"
Kethry's
last sight of the demon was as he swept
Lastel
up onto the platform, then she and Tarma
were
hustled down another brick-lined corridor,
and
shoved roughly into a makeshift cage that took
up the
back half of a stone-lined storage room.
Warrl's
carcass and Need were both dumped un-
ceremoniously
on the slate table in front of the cage
door.
The room
lacked windows entirely, and had only
the one
door now shut and (from the sounds that
had
come after her guards had shut it), locked.
Light
came from a single torch in a holder near the
door.
The cage was made of crudely-forged iron
bars
welded across the entire room, with an equally
crude
door of similar bars that had been padlocked
closed.
There was nothing whatsoever in the cage;
she and
Tarma had only what they were wearing,
which
in Tarma's case was little more than rags,
and in
hers, the simple shift and breeches Lastel
had
been wearing. Though she searched, she found
no
weapons at all.
Tarma
sat blank-eyed in the corner of the cage
where
she'd been left, rocking back and forth and
humming
tunelessly to herself. The only thing that
the
demon hadn't changed was her voice; still the
ruined
parody of what it had been before the slaugh-
ter of
her Clan.
Kethry
went to her and knelt on the cold stone at
her
side. "Tarma?" she asked, taking her she'enedra's
hand in
hers and staring into those blank blue eyes.
She got
no response for a moment, then the eyes
seemed
to see her. One hand crept up, and Tarma
inserted
the tip of her index finger into her mouth.
"Tarma?"
the Shin'a'in echoed ingenuously. And
that
was all of intelligence that Kethry could coax
from
her; within moments her eyes had gone blank
again,
and she was back to her rocking and tuneless
humming.
Kethry
looked from the mindless Tarma to the
body of
the kyree and back again, slow tears etching
their way
down her cheeks.
"My
god, my god—" she wept, "Oh, Tarma, you
were
right! We should have gone for help."
She
tried to take her oathkin in her arms, but it
was
like holding a stiff, wooden doll.
"If
I hadn't been so damned sure of myself—if I
hadn't
been so determined to prove you were smoth-
ering
me—it's all my fault, it's all my fault! What
have I
done? What has my pride done to you?"
And
Tarma rocked and crooned, oblivious to ev-
erything
around her, while she wept with absolute
despair.
Eleven
You
lied to me, you bastard!" Green eyes blazed
passionately
with anger.
"You
didn't listen carefully enough," Thalhkarsh
replied
to the amber-haired hellion whom he had
backed
into a corner of his "couch." "I said I would
change
your form; I never said what I would change
it
into."
"You
never had any intention of changing me
back to
a man!" Lastel choked, sagging to the pad-
ded
platform, almost incoherent with rage.
"Quite
right." The demon grinned maliciously as
he sat himself
cross-legged on the padded platform,
carefully
positioning himself so as to make escape
impossible.
"Your emotions are strong; you are a
potent
source of power for me, and an ever-renew-
able
source. I had no intention of letting you free of
me
while I still need you." He arranged himself
more
comfortably with the aid of a cushion or two;
he had
Lastel neatly pinned, and his otherworldly
strength
and speed would enable him to counter
any
move the woman made.
"Then
when?"
"When
shall I release you? Fool, don't you ever
think
past the immediate moment?" For once the
molten-bronze
face lost its mocking expression; the
glowing
red-gold eyes looked frustrated. "Why should
you
want release? What would you do if I gave you
back
your previous form—where would you go?
Back to
your wastelands, back to misery, back to
petty
theft? Back to a life with every man's hand
against
you, having to hide like a desert rat? Is that
what
you want?"
"I_"
"Fool;
blind, stupid fool! Your lust for power is
nearly
as great as my own, yet you could accom-
plish
nothing by yourself and everything with my
aid!"
the demon rose to his feet, gesticulating.
"Think—for
one moment, think! You are in a mage-
Talented
body now; one in which the currents of
arcane
power flow strongly. You could have me as a
patron.
You could have all the advantages of being
my own
High Prelate when I am made a god! And
you
wish to throw this all away? Simply because
you do
not care for the responses of a perfectly
healthy
and attractive body?"
"But
it isn't mine! It's a woman!" Lastel shrank
back
into the corner, wailing. "I don't want this
body—"
"But
I want you in it. I desire you, creature I
have
made; I want you in a form attractive to me."
The
demon came closer and placed his hands on
the
walls to either side of Lastel, effectively ren-
dering
her immobile. "Your emotions run so high,
and
taste so sweetly to me that I sometimes think I
shall
never release you."
"Why?"
Lastel whispered. "Why me, why this?
And why
here? I thought all your kind hated this
world."
"Not
I." The demon's eyes smoldered as his ex-
pression
turned thoughtful. "Your world is beauti-
ful in
my eyes; your people have aroused more than
my
hunger, they have aroused my desire. I want
this
world, and I want the people in it! And I will
have
it! Just as I shall have you."
"No—"
Lastel whimpered.
"Then
I ask in turn, why? Or why not? What
have I
done save rouse your own passions? You are
well
fed, well clothed, well housed—nor have I
ever
harmed you physically."
"You're
killing me!" Lastel cried, his voice break-
ing.
"You're destroying my identity! Every time
you
look at me, every time you touch me, I forget
what it
was ever like, being a man! All I want is to
be your
shadow, your servant; I want to exist only
for
you! I never come back to myself until after
you've
gone, and it takes longer to remember what I
was
afterward—longer every time you do this to
me."
The
demon smiled again with his former cruelty,
and
brought his lips in to brush her neck. "Then,
little
toy," he murmured, "perhaps it is something
best
forgotten?"
Tarma
was lost; without sight, without hearing,
without
senses of any kind. Held there, and drained
weak
past any hope of fighting back. So tired—too
tired
to fight. Too tired to hope, or even care. Emp-
tied of
every passion—
Wake
UP!
The
thin voice in her mind was the first sign that
there
was any life at all in the vast emptiness
where
she abode, alone. She strained to hear it
again,
feeling ... something. Something besides the
apathy
that had claimed her.
Mind-mate,
wake!
It was
familiar. If only she could remember, re-
member
anything at all.
Wake,
wake, wake!
The
voice was stronger, and had the feel of teeth
in it.
As if something large and powerful was clos-
ing
fangs on her and shaking her. Teeth—
In the
name of the Star-Eyed! the voice said, fran-
tically.
You MUST wake!
Teeth.
Star-Eyed. Those things had meant some-
thing,
before she had become nothing. Had meant
something,
when she was—
Tarma.
She was
Tarma. She was Tarma still, Sworn One,
kyree-friend,
she'enedra.
Every
bit of her identity that she regained brought
more
tiny pieces back with it, and more strength.
She
fought off the gray fog that threatened to steal
those
bits away, fought and held them, and put
more
and more of herself together, fighting back
inch by
inch. She was Shin'a'in, of the free folk of
the
open plains—she would not be held and pri-
soned!
She—would—not—be—held!
Now she
felt pain, and welcomed it, for it was
one
more bridge to reality. Salvation lay in pain,
not in
the gray fog that sucked the pain and every-
thing
else away from her. She held the pain to her,
cherished
it, and reached for the voice in her mind.
She
found that, too, and held to it, while it re-
joiced
fiercely that she had found it.
No—not
it. He. The kyree, the mage-beast. Warrl.
The
friend of her soul, as Kethry was of her heart.
As if
that recognition had broken the last strand
of foul
magic holding her in the gray place, she
suddenly
found herself possessed again of a body—a
body
that ached in a way that was only too familiar.
A body
stiff and chilled, and sitting—from the feel
of the
air on her skin—nearly naked and on a cold
stone
floor. She could hear nothing but the sound of
someone
crying softly—and cautiously cracked her
eyes
open the merest slit to see where she was.
She was
in a cage; she could see the iron bars
before
her, but unless she changed position and
moved,
she couldn't see much else. She closed her
eyes
again in an attempt to remember what could
have
brought her to this pass. Her memories tum-
bled
together, confused, as she tried with an aching
skull
to sort them out.
But
after a moment, it all came back to her, and
with
it, a rush of anger and hatred.
Thalhkarsh!
The
demon—he'd tricked her, trapped her—then
overpowered
her, changed her, and done—something
to her
to send her into that gray place. But if
Thalhkarsh
had taken her, then where were Warrl
and
Kethry?
I'm
lying on the table, mind-mate, said the voice,
The
demon thinks he killed me; he nearly did. His
magic
sent me into little-death, and I decided to con-
tinue
the trance until we were all alone; it seemed
safer
that way. There was nothing I could do for you.
Your
she'enedra is in the same cage as you. It would be
nice to
let her know the demon hasn't destroyed your
mind
after all. She thinks that you're worse than dead,
and
blames herself entirely for what was both your
folly.
Tarma
moved her head cautiously; her muscles
all
ached. There was someone in the cage with her,
crumpled
in a heap in the corner; by the shaking of
her
shoulders, the source of the weeping—but—
That's not
Kethry!
Not her
body, but her spirit. The demon gave her
body to
the bandit.
What
bandit?
The
kyree gave a mental growl. It's too hard to
explain;
I'm going to break the trance. Tend to your
she'enedra.
Tarma
licked lips that were swollen and bruised.
She'd
felt this badly used once before, a time she
preferred
not to think about.
There
was something missing; something missing—
"No,"
she whispered, eyes opening wide with
shock,
all thought driven from her in that instant
by her realization
of what was missing. "Oh, no!"
The
stranger's head snapped up; swollen and
red-rimmed
amethyst eyes turned toward her.
"T-t-tarma?"
"It's
gone," she choked, unable to comprehend
her
loss. "The vysaka—the Goddess-bond—it's gone!"
She could
feel her sanity slipping; feel herself going
over
the edge. Without the Goddess-bond—
Take
hold of yourself! the voice in her mind
snapped.
It's probably all that damn demon's fault;
break
his spells and it will come back! And anyway,
you're
alive and I'm alive and Kethry's alive; I want us
all to
STAY that way!
Warrl's
annoyance was like a slap in the face; it
brought
her back to a precarious sanity. And with
his
reminder that Kethry was still alive, she turned
back
toward the stranger whose tear-streaked face
peered
through the gloom at her,
"Keth?
Is that you?"
"You're
back! Oh, Goddess bless, you're back!"
The
platinum-haired beauty flung herself into
Tarma's
arms, and clung there. "I thought he'd
destroyed
you, and it was all my fault for insisting
that we
do this ourselves instead of going for help
like
you wanted."
"Here,
now." Tarma gulped back tears of her
own,
and pushed Kethry away with hands that
shook.
"We're not out of this yet."
"T-tarma—Warrl—he's—''
Very
much alive, thank you. The great furry shape
on the
table outside their cage rose slowly to its
four
feet, and shook itself painfully. I hurt. If you
hurt
like I hurt, we are all in very sad condition.
Tarma
sympathized with Kethry's bewilderment.
"He
pulled a kyree trick on us all, she'enedra. He
told me
that when the demon's magic hit him, it
sent
him into little-death—a kind of trance. He
figured
it was better to stay that way until we were
alone."
She examined the confused countenance
before
her. "He also said something about you trad-
ing
bodies with a bandit .. . and don't I know that
face?"
"Lastel
Longknife," she replied shakily. "He lived;
he's
the one that had Thalhkarsh conjured up, and
I guess
he got more than he bargained for, because
the
demon turned him into a real woman. He was
the one
spreading the rumors to lure us in here, I'll
bet.
Now he's got my body—"
"I
have the sinking feeling that you're going to
tell me
you can't work magic in this one."
"Not
very well," she admitted. "Though I haven't
tried
any of the power magics that need more train-
ing
than Talent."
"All
right then; we can't magic our way out of
this
cage, let's see if we can think our way out."
Tarma
did her best to ignore the aching void
within
her and took careful stock of the situation.
Their
prison consisted of the back half of a stone-
walled
room; crude iron bars welded across the
middle
made their half into a cage. It had an equally
crude
door, padlocked shut. There was only one
door to
the room itself, in the front half, and there
were no
windows; the floor was of slate. In half of
the
room beyond their cage was a table on which
Warrl—and
something else—lay.
"Fur-face,
is that Need next to you?"
The
same.
"Then
Thalhkarsh just made one big mistake,"
she
said, narrowing her eyes with grim satisfaction.
"Get
your tail over here, and bring the blade with
you."
Warrl
snorted, picked up the hilt of the blade
gingerly
in his mouth, and jumped down off the
table
with it. He dragged it across the floor, com-
plaining
mentally to Tarma the entire time.
"All
right, Keth. I saw that thing shear clean
through
armor and more than once. Have a crack at
the
latch. It'll have to be you, she won't answer
physically
to me."
"But—"
Kethry looked doubtfully at the frail
arms of
her new body, then told herself sternly to
remember
that Need was a magical weapon, that it
responded
(as the runes on its blade said) to wom-
an's
need. And they certainly needed out of this
prison—
She
raised the sword high over her head, and
brought
it down on the latch-bar with all of her
strength.
With a
shriek like a dying thing, the metal sheared
neatly
in two, and the door swung open.
"You
are bold, priest," the demon rumbled.
"I
am curious; perhaps foolish—but never bold,"
responded
the plump, balding priest of Anathei. "I
was
curious when I first heard the rumors of your
return.
I was even more curious when the two who
were
responsible for your defeat before were miss-
ing
this morning. I will confess to being quite con-
fused
to find one of them here."
He cast
a meaningful glance at the demon's com-
panion,
curled sullenly on the velvet beside him.
The
sorceress did not appear to be happy, but she
also
did not appear coerced in any way. Come to
that,
there was something oddly different about
her...
.
"I
repeat, you are bold; but you amuse me. Why
are you
here?" Thalhkarsh settled back onto his
cushions,
and with a flicker of thought increased
the
intensity of the light coming from his crimson
lanterns.
The musky incense he favored wafted
upward
toward the ceiling from a brazier at the
edge of
the padded platform where he reclined.
This
priest had presented himself at the door and
simply
asked to be taken to the demon; Thalhkarsh's
followers
had been so nonplussed by his quiet air of
authority
that they had done as he asked. Now he
stood
before Thalhkarsh, an unimpressive figure in
a plain
brown cassock, plump and aging, with his
hands
tucked into the sleeves of his robe. And he,
in his
turn, did not seem the least afraid of the
demon;
nor did it appear that anything, from the
obscene
carvings to the orgy still in progress on the
platform
behind the demon, was bothering him the
slightest
bit.
And
that had the demon thoroughly puzzled.
"I
am here to try to convince you that what you
are
doing is wrong."
"Wrong?
Wrong?" The demon laughed heartily.
"I
could break you with one finger, and you wish to
tell me
that I am guilty of doing wrong?"
"Since
you seem to wish to live in this world, you
must
live by some of its rules—and one of those is
that to
cause harm or pain to another is wrong."
"And
who will punish me, priest?" The demon's
eyes
glowed redly, his lips thinning in anger. "You?"
"You
yourself will cause your own punishment,"
the
priest replied earnestly. "For by your actions
you
will drive away what even you must need—
admiration,
trust, friendship, love—"
He was
interrupted by the sound of shouting and
of
clashing blades; he stared in surprise to see
Tarma—a
transformed Tarma—wearing an acolyte's
tunic
and nothing else, charging into the room driv-
ing
several guards ahead of her. And with her was
the
platinum-haired child he had last seen at his
own
temple, telling his brothers of the rumors of
Thalhkarsh.
But the
blade in her hands was the one he had
last
seen in the sorceress' hands.
The
woman at the demon's side made a tight
little
sound of smothered rage as the demon's guards
moved
to bar the exits or interpose themselves be-
tween
the women and their target.
"Your
anger is strong, little toy," Thalhkarsh
laughed,
looking down at her. "Use it, then. Be-
come
the instrument of my revenge. Kill her, and
this
time I promise you that I shall give you your
man's
body back." He plucked a sword from the
hand of
the guard next to him and handed it to his
amber-tressed
companion.
And the
priest stared in complete bewilderment.
Given
the weapon, the bandit needed no further
urging,
and flung himself at Kethry's throat.
Kethry,
now no longer the tough, fit creature she
had
been, but a frail, delicate wraith, went down
before
him. Tarma tried to get to her, knowing that
she was
going to be too late—
But
Warrl intervened, bursting from behind the
crimson
velvet hangings, flinging himself between
the
combatants long enough for Kethry to regain
her
footing and recover Need. She fumbled it up
into a
pathetic semblance of guard position; then
stared
at her own hands, wearing a stupefied ex-
pression.
After a moment Tarma realized why. Need
was not
responding to her—because Need could not
act
against a woman, not even for a woman.
And
between Tarma and her she'enedra were a
dozen
or so followers of the demon.
But
some of them were the ones who had so
lately
been sharing her own body with their master.
She let
herself, for the first time since her awak-
ening,
truly realize what had been done to her—
physically
and mentally. Within an eyeblink she
had
roused herself to a killing battle-frenzy, a state
in
which all her senses were heightened, her reac-
tions
quickened, her strength nearly doubled. She
would
pay for this energized state later—if there
was a
later.
She
gathered herself carefully, and sprang at the
nearest,
taking with her one of the heavy silken
hangings
that had been nearest her. She managed,
despite
the handicap of no longer having her right-
ful,
battle-trained body, to catch him by surprise
and
tangle him in the folds of it. The only weapon
the
Shin'a'in had been able to find had been a heavy
dagger;
before the others had a chance to react to
her
first rush, she stabbed down at him, taking a
fierce
pleasure in plunging it into him again and
again,
until the silk was dyed scarlet with his
blood—
Kethry
was defending herself as best she could;
only
the fact that the bandit was once again not in a
body
that was his own was giving her any chance at
all.
Warrl's appearance had given her a brief mo-
ment of
aid when she most needed it. Now Warrl
was
busy with one of the other acolytes. And it was
apparent
that Tarma, too, had her hands full, though
she was
showing a good portion of her old speed
and
skill. At least she wasn't in that shocked and
bereft
half-daze she'd fallen into when she first
came
back to herself.
But
Kethry had enough to think about; she could
only
spare a scant second to rejoice at Tarma's
recovery.
She was doing more dodging than any-
thing
else; the bandit was plainly out for her death.
As had
occurred once before, the demon was merely
watching,
content to let his pawns play out their
moves
before making any of his own.
Tarma
had taken a torch and set the trapped
acolyte
aflame, laughing wildly when he tried to
free
himself of the entangling folds of the silk cov-
erlet
and succeeding only in getting in the way of
those
that remained. Warrl had disposed of one,
and was
heading off a second. Kethry was facing a
terrible
dilemma—Need was responding sluggishly
now,
but only in pure defense. She knew she dared
not
kill the former bandit. If she did, there would
be no
chance of ever getting her own body back.
There
was no way of telling what would happen if
she
killed what was, essentially, her body. She might
survive,
trapped in this helpless form that lacked
the
stamina and strength and mage-Talents of her
own—or
she might die along with her body.
Nor did
she have any notion of what Need might
do to
her if she killed another woman. Possibly
nothing—or
the magical backlash of breaking the
geas
might well leave her a burned-out husk, a fate
far
worse than simply dying.
Now
Tarma had laid hands on another sword—
one
lighter than the broadsword she was used to,
and
with an odd curve to it. She had never used a
weapon
quite like this before, but a blade was a
blade.
The rest of the acolytes made a rush for her,
forgetting
for the moment—if, indeed, they had ever
known—that
they were not dealing with an essen-
tially
helpless woman, given momentary strength
by
hysteria, but a highly trained martial artist.
Tarma's
anger and hysteria were as carefully chan-
neled
as a powerful stream diverted to turn a mill.
As they
rushed her, evidently intending to over-
power
her by sheer numbers, she took the hilt in
both
hands, rose and pivoted in one motion, and
made a
powerful, sweeping cut at waist level that
literally
sliced four of them in half.
Somewhere,
far in the back of her mind, a nor-
mally
calm, analytical part of her went wild with
joy.
This strange sword was better than any blade
she'd
ever used before; the curve kept it from lodg-
ing,
the edge was as keen as the breath of the North
Wind,
and the grip, with a place for her to curl her
forefinger
around it, made it almost an extension of
her
hand. It was perfectly balanced for use by ei-
ther
one hand or two. Her eyes lit with a kind of
fire,
and it wasn't all the reflection of torch-flames.
Her
remaining opponents stumbled over the bleed-
ing,
disemboweled bodies of their erstwhile com-
rades,
shocked and numb by the turn in fortunes.
Just
last night this woman had been their play-
thing.
Now she stood, blood-spattered and half-naked
as she
was, over the prone bodies of five of them.
They
hesitated, confused.
Warrl
leapt on two from the rear, breaking the
neck of
one and driving the other onto Tarma's
waiting
blade.
Eight
down, seven standing.
Seven?
There were only six—
Tarma
felt, more than saw, the approach of one
from
the rear. She pivoted, slashing behind her
with
the marvellously liquid blade as she did so,
and
caught him across the throat. Even as he went
down,
another, braver than the rest, lunged for her.
Her
kick caught him in the temple; his head snapped
to one
side and he fell, eyes glazing with more than
unconsciousness;
Warrl made sure of him with a
single
snap of his massive jaws, then dashed away
again
to vanish somewhere.
Five.
I come
from behind you.
Tarma
held her ground, and Warrl ran in from
under
the hangings. The man he jumped had both a
short
sword and shield, but failed to bring either
up in
time. Warrl tore his throat out and leapt
away,
leaving him to drown in his own blood.
Four.
Tarma
charged between two of those remaining,
slashing
with a figure-eight motion, knowing they
would
hesitate to strike at her with the swords
they'd
snatched from their sheaths for tear of strik-
ing
each other. She caught the first across the eyes,
the
second across the gut. The one she'd blinded
stumbled
toward her with blood pouring between
his
fingers, and she finished him as she whirled
around
at the end of her rush.
Two.
Kethry
tried to simply defend herself, but the
bandit
wasn't holding back.
So she
did the only thing she could; she cast
Need
away from her, and backed off far enough to
raise
her hands over her head, preparatory to blast-
ing the
bandit with a bolt of arcane power.
Warrl
leaped on the right-hand man; tore at his
thigh
and brought him down, then ripped out his
gut.
Tarma's final opponent was the first that
showed
any real ability or forethought; he was
crouching
where Warrl couldn't come at him from
the
rear, with a sword in one hand and a dagger in
the
other. His posture showed he was no stranger
to the
blade. She knew after a feint or two that he
was
very good, which was probably why he'd sur-
vived
his other companions. Now she had a prob-
lem.
There was no one to get in his way, and the
unfamiliar
feel of her transformed body was a dis-
traction
and a handicap. Then she saw his eyes
narrow
as she moved her new sword slightly—and
knew
she had a psychological weapon to use against
him.
This was his blade she held, and he wanted it
back.
Very badly.
She
made her plan, and moved.
She
pretended to make a short rush, then pre-
tended
to stumble, dropping the sword. When he
grabbed
for it, dropping his own blade, Tarma
snatched
a torch from the wall beside her and thrust
it at
his face, and when he winced away from it,
grabbed
a dagger from the litter of weapons on the
floor
and flung it straight for his throat, knowing
that
marksmanship was not a thing that depended
on
weight and balance, but on the coordination of
hand
and eye—things that wouldn't change even
though
her body had shifted form considerably. As
he went
down, gurgling and choking, to drown in
his own
blood like one of the men Warrl had taken
out,
she saw that Kethry was being forced to take
the
offensive—and saw the look of smug satisfac-
tion on
the demon's face as she did so.
And she
realized with a sudden flash of insight
that
they had played right into his hands.
"Why
do you do nothing?" the little priest asked
in pure
confusion.
"Because
this is a test, human," the demon re-
plied,
watching with legs stretched out comfortably
along
the platform. "I have planned for this, though
I shall
admit candidly to you that I did not expect
this
moment to come quite so soon, nor did I expect
that
the beast should regain its life and the swords-
woman
her mind. But these are minor flaws in my
plan;
however it comes out, I shall win. As you may
have
guessed, it is the sorceress' spirit that inhabits
my
servant's body; should he slay her, I shall be
well
rid of her, and my servant in possession of a
mage-Talented
form. Should the swordswoman die,
I shall
be equally well rid of her; should she live, I
shall
simply deal with her as I did before. Should
my
servant die, I shall still have the sorceress, and
her
geas-blade will blast her for harming a woman,
even
though she does not hold it in her hand—for
she has
been soul-bonded to it. And that will render
her
useful to me. Or should it kill her, she may
well be
damned to my realm, for the breaking of the
oaths
she swore. So you see, no matter the outcome,
I
win—and I am in no danger, for only my own
magics
could touch me in any way."
"I
... see," the priest replied, staring at the
bloody
combat before them, mesmerized by the sight.
Tarma
realized that they were once again playing
right
into the demon's hands. For if Kethry killed
the one
wearing her form, she would damn herself
irrevocably,
once by committing a kind of suicide,
and
twice by breaking the geas and the vow her
bond
with Need had set upon her—never to raise
her
hand against a woman—three times by break-
ing her
oath to her she'enedra.
And by
such a betrayal she would probably die,
for
surely Thalhkarsh had warded his creature
against
magics. Or Need would blast her into death
or
mindlessness. Should she die, she could damn
herself
forever to Thalhkarsh's particular corner of
the
Abyssal Plane, putting herself eternally in his
power.
It was a good bet he had planned that she
must
slay the bandit by magic, since Need would
not
serve against a woman—and certainly he had
woven a
spell that would backlash all her unleashed
power
on the caster. Kethry would be worse than
dead—for
she would be his for the rest of time, to
wreak
revenge on until even he should grow weary
of it.
Unless
Tarma could stop her before she commit-
ted
such self-damnation. And with time running
out,
there was only one way to save her.
With an
aching heart she cried out in her mind to
Warrl,
and Warrl responded with the lightning-fast
reactions
of the kyree kind, born in magic and bred
of it.
He
leapt upon the unsuspecting Kethry from the
rear,
and with one crunch of his jaws, broke her
neck
and collapsed her windpipe.
Both
Kethry and the bandit collapsed—
Tarma
scrambled after the discarded mage-blade,
conscious
now only of a dim urge to keep Kethry's
treasured
weapon out of profane hands, and to use
the
thing against the creature that had forced her
to kill
the only human she cared for. Need had hurt
the
demon before—
But she
had forgotten one thing.
She
wasn't a mage, so Need's other gift came into
play; the
gift that protected a woman warrior from
magic,
no matter how powerful. No magic not cast
with
the consent of the bearer could survive Need
entering
its field.
The
spell binding Tarma was broken, and she
found
herself in a body that had regained its nor-
mal
proportions.
This
was just such a moment that the priest had
been
praying for. The spell-energy binding Kethry
into
Lastel's body was released explosively with
the
death-blow. The priest took full control of that
energy,
and snatched her spirit before death had
truly
occurred. Using the potent energies released,
he sent
Lastel's spirit and Kethry's back to their
proper
containers.
There
were still other energies being released;
those
binding Lastel's form into a woman's shape,
and
those altering Tarma. Quicker than thought
the
priest gained hold of those as well. With half of
his
attention he erected a shield over the swords-
woman
and her partner; with the other he sent
those
demon-born magics hurtling back to their
caster.
Kethry
had been stunned by Warrl's apparent
treachery;
had actually felt herself dying—
—and
now suddenly found herself very much
alive,
and back in her proper body. She sat up,
blinking
in surprise.
Beside
her on the marble floor was a dead man,
wearing
the garments she herself had worn as Lastel.
Warrl
stood over him, growling, every hair on end.
But her
mage-sense for energy told her that the tale
had not
yet seen its end. As if to confirm this, a
howl of
anguish rose behind her
"Noooooooooooo...."
The
voice began a brazen bass, and spiralled up to
a
fragile soprano.
Kethry
twisted around, staring in astonishment.
Behind
her was Thalhkarsh—
A demon
no longer. A male no longer. Instead,
from
out of the amethystine eyes of the delicate
mortal
creature he had mockingly called his toy
stared
Thalhkarsh's hellspawn spirit—dumbfounded,
glassy-eyed
with shock, hardly able to comprehend
what
had happened to him. Powerless now—and as
female
and fragile as either of the two he had thought
to take
revenge upon—and a great deal more helpless.
"This—cannot—be—"
she whispered, staring at
her
thin hands. "I cannot have failed—"
"My
poor friend."
The
little priest, whom Kethry had overlooked in
the
fight, having eyes only for the demon, his ser-
vants,
and Lastel, reached for one of the demon's
hands
with true and courageous sympathy.
"I
fear you have worked to wreak only your own
downfall—as
I warned you would happen."
"No—"
"And
you have wrought far too well, I fear—for
if I
read this spell correctly, it was meant to be
permanent
unto death. And as a demon, except
that
you be slain by a specific blade, you cannot
die. Am
I not correct?"
The
demon's only response was a whimper, as
she
sank into a heap of loose limbs among the cush-
ions of
what once had been her throne, her eyes
fogging
as she retreated from the reality she herself
had
unwittingly created.
Tarma
let her long legs fold under her and sat
where
she had stood, trembling from head to toe,
saying
nothing at all, a look of glazed pain in her
eyes.
Kethry
dragged herself to Tarma's side, and sat
down
with a thump.
"Now
what?" Tarma asked in a voice dulled by
emotional
and physical exhaustion, rubbing her eyes
with
one hand. "Now what are we going to do with
him?"
"I—I
don't know."
"I
shall take charge of her," the priest said, "She
is in
no state to be a threat to us, and we can easily
keep
her in a place from which she shall find es-
cape
impossible until she has a true change of heart.
My
child," he addressed himself to Tarma, concern
in his
eyes, "what is amiss?"
"My
bond—it's gone—" she looked up at the
priest's
round, anxious face, and the look in her
eyes
was of one completely lost.
"Would
you fetch my fellows from the temple?"
he
asked Kethry. "That one is locked within her-
self,
but I may have need of them."
"Gladly,"
Kethry replied, "but can you help her?"
"I
will know better when you return."
She
ran—or tried to—to fetch the little priest's
fellow
devotees. She all but forced herself past a
skeptical
novice left to guard the door by night; the
noise
she made when she finally was driven to lose
her
temper and shout at him brought the High
Prelate
of Anathei to the door himself. He was
more
than half asleep, wrapped in a blanket, but he
came
awake soon enough when she'd begun to re-
late
the night's adventures. He snapped out a series
of
orders that were obeyed with such prompt alac-
rity
that Kethry's suspicions as to their friend's
true
rankings were confirmed long before three nov-
ices
brought her his robes—those of an arch-priest—
and
half the members of the order, new-roused
from
their beds.
Though
simple, hardly more ornate than what he
had
worn to the inn, the robes radiated power that
Kethry
could feel even without invoking mage-senses.
A
half-dozen other members of his order scurried
away
from the convocation at the cloister door and
came
back wearing ceremonial garments and carry-
ing
various arcane implements. Kethry led the pro-
cession
of cowled, laden priest-mages through the
predawn
streets at a fast trot. The night-watch took
one
look at the parade and respectfully stepped
aside,
not even bothering with hailing them.
When
she got them as far as the open door of the
temple,
her own strength gave out, and she stopped
to
rest, half-collapsed against the smiling image of
the
rain-god. By the time she reached the inner
sanctum,
they had the situation well in hand. The
bodies
had been carried off somewhere, the obscene
carvings
shrouded, a good deal of the blood cleaned
up,
and—most importantly—Thalhkarsh placed un-
der
such tight arcane bindings that not even a demi-
god
could have escaped.
"I
believe I can restore what was lost to your
friend,"
the priest said when Kethry finally gath-
ered up
enough courage to approach him. "But I
shall
need the assistance of both yourself and the
kyree."
"Certainly,
anything—but why? It will help if I
know
what I'm supposed to be doing."
"You
are familiar with her goddess, and as
Shin'a'in
adopted, She shall hear you where she
might
not hear me. You might think of yourself as
the
arrow, and myself as the bow. I can lend your
wish
the power to reach the Star-Eyed, but only
you of
all of us know Her well enough to pick Her
aspect
from all the other aspects of the Lady."
"Logical—what
do I do? Warrl says—'whatever
you
want he'll do'—"
"Just
try to tell her Warrior that the bond has
been
broken and needs to be restored—or Tarma
may well—"
"Die.
Or go mad, which is the same thing for a
Shin'a'in."
Kethry
knelt at the priest's feet on the cold mar-
ble of
the desecrated temple floor, Warrl at her
side.
Tarma remained where she was, sunk in mis-
ery and
loss so deep that she was as lost to the
world
around her as Thalhkarsh was.
Kethry
concentrated with all her soul as the priest
murmured
three words and placed his hand on her
head
and Tarma's in blessing.
Please
Lady—please hear me, she thought in de-
spair,
watching Tarma's dead eyes. I've—I've been
less
understanding than I could have been. I forgot—
because
I wanted to—that I'm all the Clan she has left.
1 only
thought of the freedom I thought I was losing. 1
don't
know You, but maybe You know me—
There
was no answer, and Kethry shut her eyes
in
mental agony. Please, hear us! Even if You don't
give a
damn about us, she pledged herself to You—
Foolish
child.
The
voice in her mind startled her; it was more
like
music than a voice.
I am
nothing but another face of your own Lady
Windborn—how
could 1 not know you ? Both of you
have
been wrong—but you have wrought your own
punishment.
Now forgive yourselves as you forgive each
other—and
truly be the two-made-one—
Kethry
nearly fainted at the rush of pure power
that
passed through her; when it ebbed, she stead-
ied
herself and glanced up in surprise.
The
little priest was just removing his hand from
Tarma's
bowed head; his brow was damp with
sweat,
but relief showed in the smiling line of his
mouth.
As Tarma looked up, Kethry saw her ex-
pression
change from one of pathetic bereavement
to the
utter relief of one who has regained some-
thing
thought gone forevermore.
A heavy
burden of fear passed from Kethry's
heart
at the change. She closed her eyes and breathed
her own
prayer of thanks.
So
profound was her relief that it was several
moments
before she realized Tarma was speaking
to the
priest.
"I
don't know how to—"
"Then
don't thank me," he interrupted. "I sim-
ply
re-opened what the demon had closed; my plea-
sure
and my duty. Just as tending to the demon as
she is
now is my duty."
"You're
certain you people can keep him—or
should
I say her?—from any more trouble?" she
asked
doubtfully of her erstwhile debating partner
as
Kethry shook off her weariness and looked up at
them.
To the sorceress' profound gratitude, Tarma
looked
to be most of the way back to normal—a
rapid
recovery, but Kethry was used to rapid recov-
cries
from the Shin'a'in. The face she turned to
Kethry
was calm and sane once again, with a hint
of her
old sense of humor. She reached out a hand,
and
Tarma caught it and squeezed it once, without
taking
her attention from the priest.
"Sworn
One, we are placing every safeguard
known
to mortal man upon her and the place where
we
shall keep her," the little priest said soberly.
"The
being Thalhkarsh shall have no opportunity
for
escape. Her only chance will be to truly change,
for the
spells we shall use will not hold against an
angelic
spirit, only one of evil intent. Truly you
have
given us the opportunity we have long dreamed
of."
"Well,"
Tarma actually grinned, though it was
weakly.
"After all, it isn't every day someone can
present
you with a captive demon to preach to. Not
to put
too fine a point on it, we're giving you folk a
chance
to prove yourselves." She managed a ghost
of a
chuckle. "Though I'll admit I had no notion
you
were capable of restraining demons so handily."
"As
you yourself pointed out, Sworn One, when
one
goes to preach to demons, the preacher had
best be
either agile or a very fine magician." The
balding
priest's brown eyes vanished in smile wrin-
kles.
"And as your partner has rightly told me,
while
Thalhkarsh seems helpless now, there is no
guarantee
that she will remain so. We prefer to
take no
chance. As you say, this is our unlooked-for
opportunity
to prove the truth of our way to the
entire
world, and as such, we are grateful to you
beyond
telling."
With
that, the little priest bowed to both of them,
and his
train of underlings brought the once-demon
to her
feet, bound by spells that at the moment
were
scarcely needed. She was numbly submissive,
and
they guided her out the way they had come,
bound
for their own temple.
Kethry got
to her feet and silently held out her
hand to
Tarma, who took it once again with no sign
of
resentment, and pulled herself to her feet by it.
They
left the scene of slaughter without a back-
ward
glance, moving as quickly as their aching bod-
ies
would allow, eager to get out into the clean air.
"Warrior's
Oath—how long have we been in
there?"
Tar ma exclaimed on seeing the thin sliver
of moon
and the positions of the stars.
"About
twenty-four candlemarks. It's tomorrow
morning.
Is—that's not your sword, is it?" Kethry,
lagging
a little behind, saw that the shape strapped
to
Tarma's back was all wrong.
"
'No disaster without some benefit,' she'enedra,"
Tarma
lifted a hand to caress the unfamiliar hilt.
"I've
never in my life had a weapon like this one.
There's
no magic to it beyond exquisite balance,
fantastic
design, and the finest steel I've ever seen,
but it
is without a doubt the best blade I've ever
used.
It acted like part of my arm—and you're
going
to have to cut off that arm to get it away from
me!"
Briefly
alarmed by her vehemence, Kethry stretch-
ed
weary mage-senses one more time, fearing to
find
that the blade was some kind of ensorcelled
trap,
or bore a curse.
She
found nothing, and sighed with relief. Tarma
was
right, there was no hint of magic about the
blade,
and her partner's reaction was nothing more
than
that of any warrior who has just discovered
her
ideal dreamed-of weapon.
They
limped painfully back to their inn with
Warrl
trailing behind as guard against night-thugs,
stopping
now and then to rest against a handy wall
or
building. The night-watch recognized Kethry and
waved
them on. The cool, clean air was heavenly
after
the incense and perfume-laden choke of the
temple.
When they finally reached their inn, they
used
the latchstring on their window to let them-
selves
back inside and felt their way into their
room
with only the banked embers of the hearth-
fire
for light. Kethry expended a last bit of mage-
power
and lit a candle, while Tarma dropped her
weapons
wearily. Beds had never looked so inviting
before.
And yet, neither was quite ready to sleep.
"This
time we've really done it, haven't we?"
Tarma
ventured, easing her "borrowed" boots off
her
feet and pitching them out the open window
for
whoever should find them in the morning to
carry
away. She stripped as quickly as her cuts and
bruises
would permit, and the clothing followed
the
boots as the Shin'a'in grimaced in distaste;
Kethry
handed her clean breeches and an undertunic
from
her pack and Tarma eased herself into them
with a
sigh and numerous winces.
"You
mean, we've locked him up for good? I
think
so; at least insofar as I can ever be sure of
anything.
And we aren't going to make the mistake
of forgetting
about him again."
"Lady
Bright, not bloody likely!" Tarma shud-
dered.
"We'll be getting messages from the Temple
every
two months, like clockwork; that was part of
the
agreement I made with little Nemor. Huh, think
of him
as archpriest—seems logical now, but he
sure
doesn't look the part."
"Until
he puts on the authority. I could almost
feel
sorry for old Thalhkarsh. I can't imagine a
worse
punishment for a demon than to have sweet-
ness-and-light
preached at him for as long as he
lives—which
might well be forever."
"And
besides—" Tarma smiled, getting up with
a
muffled groan and another grimace, and walking
over to
the window. She leaned out, letting the
breeze
lift her hair and cool her face. "Who knows?
They
might succeed in redeeming him...."
"Tarma—all
this—we both nearly died. I would
have
died with a broken promise to you on my
soul."
Kethry
paused for a long moment, so long that
Tarma
was afraid she wasn't going to finish what
she had
begun to say.
She turned
from looking out the window to re-
gard
her partner soberly, knowing that Kethry had
something
troubling her gravely. Even Warrl looked
up from
where he lay on Tarma's bed, ears pricked
and
eyes unfathomable. Finally Kethry sighed and
continued.
"I
guess what I want to ask you is this. Do you
want
me—us—to stop this wandering? To go back
to the
Plains? After all, it's me that's been keeping
us on
the road, not you. I—haven't found any man
I'd
care to spend more than a night or two with, but
that
really doesn't matter to my promise. It doesn't
take
liking to get children. Oh, hell, there's always
Justin
and Ikan, I do like them well enough to share
a bed
with them for a bit. And once we had some
children,
I could keep myself in practice easily
enough.
I could establish a White Winds school
even
without the cash—I'm getting close enough to
Adept
to do that now. I'd rather have better cir-
cumstances
to do that than we have right now, but
I could
scrape along. We certainly have the reputa-
tion
now to attract good pupils."
Tarma
turned back to gaze up at the waning
moon,
troubled. It was true that the most important
thing
in the world to her was the re-founding of her
slaughtered
Clan—and they had nearly died with-
out
being any closer to that goal.
There
were times when she longed for the tents
of her
people and the open Plains with all her soul.
And
there were other negatives to this life they
were
leading. There was no guarantee something
like
this couldn't happen again. Being gang-raped,
or so
she suspected, had been the least of the un-
speakable
things she'd suffered unaware in Thalh-
karsh's
hands.
Far
worse was the absence of the Star-Eyed's
presence
in her soul when she'd returned to her-
self.
And when her goddess had not returned to her
with
Thalhkarsh's transformation, she'd been afraid
for a
moment that the Warrior would not take her
back
with her celibacy violated.
That
had turned out to be a foolish fear, as her
priest-friend
had proved to her. No sooner had he
cleansed
her of the last of Thalhkarsh's magic-
bindings,
then she felt the Warrior's cool and sup-
portive
presence once again in her heart; the asexual
psychic
armor of the Sword Sworn closed around
her
again, and she could regard the whole experi-
ence as
something to learn and benefit from. She
was
heart-whole and healed again—in spirit if not
in
body.
Still,
none of this would have happened if they'd
returned
to the Plains; in the very home of the
Goddess
of the Four Winds the demon would have
been
powerless, no matter what he had claimed;
the
bandit would never have made his way past the
Outer
Clans. And—Warrior's Oath, how Tarma
longed
to see the Tale'sedrin banner flying above a
full
encampment, with bright-faced children within
and fat
herds without. Kethry's wandering feet had
nearly
caused their deaths this time, and Tale'sedrin
had
nearly died with them. And her Clan, as for
any
Shin'a'in, was the most important thing in
Tarma's
life.
But no,
it wasn't the most important thing, not
anymore.
Not if Kethry was going to be made a
captive
to see that dream achieved. A willing cap-
tive
she would be, perhaps, but still a captive.
Kethry
had been right—she had been stifling her
friend,
and with the best of intentions. She had
been
putting invisible hobbles on her, or trying to.
Her
Shin'a'in soul rebelled at the notion—"You
do not
hobble your hound, your horse, your hawk,
your
lover, or your she'enedren," went the saying,
"love
must live free." A prisoner was a prisoner, no
matter
how willingly the bonds were taken. And
how
truly Shin'a'in could Kethry be, bound? And if
she
were not Shin'a'in in her heart, how could her
children
follow the Clan-ways with whole spirits?
And
yet—and yet—there remained Kethry's oath,
and her
dream. If Kethry died .. .
She
closed her eyes and emptied her heart, and
hoped
for an answer.
And
miraculously, one came.
A tiny
breath of chill wind wafted out of the
north,
and coiled around her body, enclosing her in
silence.
And in that silence, an ageless voice spoke
deep in
her soul.
What is
your Clan but your sister? Trust in her as
your
left-hand blade, as she trusts in you, and you shall
keep
each other safe.
Tarma's
heart lifted and she turned back to face
her
partner with a genuine smile.
"What,
and turn you into 'another Shin'a'in brood
mare'?
Come now, she'enedra, we treat our stock
better
than that! A warsteed mates when she is
ready,
and not before. Surely you don't reckon your-
self as
less than Hellsbane!" Tarma's smile turned
wicked.
"Or should I start catching handsome young
men and
parading them before you to tempt your
appetite.
. . ?"
Kethry
laughed with mingled chagrin and relief,
blushing
hotly.
"Perhaps
I ought to begin a collection, hmm?
That's
what we do for our warsteeds, you know,
present
them with a whole line of stallions until
one
catches their fancy. Shall I start a picket line
for you
? Or would you rather I acquired a house of
pleasure
and stocked the rooms so that you could
try
their paces at your leisure before choosing?"
Kethry
rolled up into the covers to hide her
blushes,
still laughing.
Tarma
joined the laughter, and limped back to
her own
bed, blowing out their candle and falling
into
the eiderdowns to find a dreamless and heal-
ing
sleep.
For
there were going to be tomorrows, she was
sure of
that now—and they'd better be in shape to
be
ready for them.